never_o be_v possible_a for_o it_o have_v be_v to_o small_a purpose_n if_o they_o have_v oppugn_v those_o their_o other_o error_n only_o &_o withal_o have_v iustify_v the_o form_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o the_o call_n of_o their_o ministry_n which_o our_o forefather_n must_v have_v do_v if_o our_o say_a assertion_n have_v not_o be_v true_a and_o so_o they_o must_v have_v tarry_v still_o ordinary_a member_n under_o the_o government_n of_o the_o same_o church_n again_o to_o small_a purpose_n have_v they_o oppugn_v those_o other_o error_n if_o they_o have_v leave_v to_o obloquy_n their_o own_o ministry_n which_o likewise_o they_o must_v have_v do_v if_o our_o say_a assertion_n be_v not_o true_a for_o as_o in_o warfare_n good_a weapon_n and_o much_o strength_n without_o iustifyable_a authority_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n will_v in_o short_a time_n bring_v ruin_n and_o confusion_n to_o they_o that_o use_v the_o same_o even_o so_o it_o be_v in_o this_o cause_n yea_o much_o more_o here_o it_o be_v true_a though_o we_o seem_v to_o cut_v down_o popish_a error_n with_o the_o sword_n of_o god_n word_n yet_o if_o we_o do_v not_o clear_v our_o ministry_n and_o justify_v our_o call_v &_o give_v good_a satisfaction_n to_o man_n conscience_n for_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o our_o handle_n the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n and_o spiritual_a government_n we_o shall_v quick_o labour_v in_o vain_a and_o that_o appear_v certain_o to_o much_o at_o this_o day_n in_o england_n the_o great_a be_v our_o woe_n not_o only_o in_o respect_n of_o popery_n but_o in_o other_o respect_n also_o well_o will_v our_o adversary_n say_v the_o protestant_n ministry_n be_v iustify_v sufficient_o against_o the_o papist_n albeit_o the_o people_n have_v no_o consent_n in_o their_o minister_n call_v oh_o will_v god_n our_o learned_a man_n in_o england_n will_v show_v this_o substantial_o then_o will_v i_o for_o my_o part_n quick_o conform_v as_o before_o also_o i_o protest_v but_o otherwise_o let_v they_o be_v assure_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v what_o they_o can_v will_v get_v ground_n of_o they_o in_o england_n and_o this_o make_v i_o to_o lay_v this_o to_o heart_n as_o i_o do_v every_o day_n we_o be_v challenge_v by_o the_o etc._n the_o d._n kellison_n treatise_n of_o faith_n a._n d._n john_n fraser_n etc._n etc._n papist_n to_o prove_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o our_o ministry_n in_o england_n and_o of_o our_o call_v to_o it_o what_o say_v our_o learned_a man_n hereunto_o a_o direct_a and_o a_o full_a and_o a_o steadfast_a answer_n must_v be_v make_v to_o this_o man_n conscience_n will_v not_o be_v satisfy_v with_o dilatory_a and_o shift_a answer_n nor_o if_o we_o leave_v scruple_n &_o difficulty_n in_o that_o we_o speak_v to_o justify_v the_o call_v of_o our_o ministry_n in_o england_n and_o to_o prove_v the_o lawfulness_n thereof_o ministry_n the_o true_a justification_n of_o the_o protestant_n ministry_n we_o must_v plain_o show_v that_o the_o person_n who_o give_v this_o call_v with_o we_o have_v good_a authority_n in_o deed_n to_o give_v the_o same_o this_o be_v the_o very_a point_n let_v our_o learned_a man_n make_v this_o clear_a and_o then_o the_o papist_n be_v stop_v then_o all_o man_n be_v satisfy_v for_o it_o be_v a_o plain_a case_n and_o grant_v of_o all_o that_o every_o true_a ministry_n in_o the_o church_n must_v be_v receive_v from_o some_o person_n who_o have_v good_a and_o just_a authority_n to_o give_v it_o and_o this_o be_v essential_a to_o every_o true_a ministry_n some_o there_o be_v in_o england_n who_o affirm_v the_o minister_n authority_n be_v only_o a_o inward_a call_v and_o gift_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o so_o have_v no_o absolute_a necessity_n to_o be_v outward_o receive_v from_o any_o other_o which_o in_o deed_n be_v not_o fit_a for_o any_o wise_a man_n or_o honest_a christian_n to_o hold_v it_o be_v the_o worst_a answer_n of_o a_o thousand_o and_o in_o a_o word_n mere_o anabaptisticall_a some_o other_o there_o be_v who_o say_v that_o this_o authority_n of_o the_o ministry_n and_o of_o exercise_v excommunication_n also_o be_v derive_v original_o from_o the_o magistrate_n even_o from_o the_o king_n and_o parliament_n with_o us._n and_o so_o they_o expound_v that_o ordinance_n of_o our_o saviour_n 18.17_o saviour_n mat._n 18.17_o tell_v the_o church_n to_o be_v tell_v the_o civil_a magistrate_n very_o they_o may_v also_o as_o well_o expound_v these_o word_n 86.18_o word_n mat._n 86.18_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n to_o signify_v upon_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n upon_o the_o prince_n christ_n build_v his_o church_n for_o thus_o they_o make_v christ_n visible_a church_n under_o the_o gospel_n only_o a_o civil_a society_n and_o a_o humane_a polity_n which_o profane_a opinion_n be_v so_o unworthy_a of_o all_o true_a christian_a people_n that_o it_o deserve_v to_o be_v explode_v no_o less_o than_o the_o other_o these_o answer_n against_o the_o papist_n we_o may_v think_v will_v do_v but_o little_a good_a for_o as_o it_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a that_o a_o true_a minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v his_o calling_n give_v he_o outward_o from_o some_o person_n and_o that_o these_o person_n have_v good_a and_o just_a authority_n to_o give_v it_o so_o likewise_o it_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a that_o every_o true_a minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v his_o calling_n give_v he_o by_o those_o who_o be_v by_o christ_n himself_o or_o his_o holy_a spirit_n in_o the_o apostle_n authorize_v to_o give_v it_o for_o thus_o only_o can_v a_o ordinary_a minister_n call_v be_v of_o god_n which_o be_v 10.15_o be_v joh._n 3.27_o heb._n 5.4_o mat._n 21.25_o 1._o cor_fw-la 12.5_o rom._n 10.15_o necessary_a and_o not_o of_o man_n and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o we_o call_v essential_a in_o every_o ordinary_a ecclesiastical_a minister_n minister_n who_o be_v the_o person_n that_o have_v power_n from_o christ_n to_o make_v minister_n again_o as_o i_o say_v this_o will_v sound_o answer_v the_o papist_n and_o nothing_o else_o but_o now_o all_o the_o matter_n will_v be_v who_o be_v the_o person_n which_o have_v power_n &_o authority_n from_o christ_n to_o give_v a_o call_v to_o a_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n here_o as_o touch_v myself_o when_o i_o deal_v with_o papist_n as_o often_o i_o have_v do_v i_o affirm_v as_o d._n tilenus_n in_o this_o case_n answer_v the_o l._n lavall_n in_o france_n which_o 43._o which_o pag._n 43._o before_o i_o remember_v viz._n that_o the_o people_n consent_v together_o in_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v from_o christ_n power_n and_o authority_n first_o to_o forsake_v all_o sacrilegious_a priest_n and_o their_o ministry_n and_o then_o to_o give_v a_o true_a and_o lawful_a call_n of_o ministry_n to_o some_o who_o themselves_o do_v like_a wherein_o tilenus_n show_v cyprian_n judgement_n also_o agree_v with_o he_o cyprian_a there_o affirm_v likewise_o that_o this_o power_n of_o the_o people_n be_v from_o divine_a authority_n as_o 57_o as_o pag._n 56._o 57_o before_o also_o be_v show_v and_o other_o very_a plain_a proof_n hereof_o act._n 1.23.26_o and_o 6.3.5.6_o and_o 14.23_o i_o have_v general_a have_v reas._n for_o reform_v pag._n 45._o 46._o 47._o etc._n etc._n divine_a beginning_n of_o christ_n visib_n church_n argum._n 9_o a_o definition_n general_a twice_o set_v down_o at_o large_a out_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n beside_o all_o which_o there_o be_v very_o pregnant_a reason_n also_o for_o the_o same_o for_o christian_a people_n whether_o few_o or_o many_o join_v together_o in_o a_o constant_a society_n of_o one_o ordinary_a congregation_n to_o serve_v god_n according_a to_o his_o word_n be_v a_o true_a visible_a church_n of_o christ_n every_o true_a visible_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v his_o kingdom_n upon_o earth_n his_o dear_a spouse_n his_o own_o body_n etc._n etc._n now_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o christ_n have_v give_v power_n to_o his_o kingdom_n to_o his_o spouse_n to_o his_o body_n to_o govern_v itself_o to_o preserve_v itself_o to_o provide_v for_o itself_o when_o it_o want_v all_o thing_n ordain_v for_o it_o in_o the_o best_a manner_n it_o can_v this_o may_v not_o be_v doubt_v therefore_o such_o a_o society_n under_o the_o gospel_n want_v minister_n must_v have_v power_n to_o ordain_v minister_n for_o herself_o likewise_o the_o apostle_n say_v all_o thing_n be_v they_o and_o they_o christ_n and_o christ_n go_n then_o 2â.23_n 1._o cor._n 3_o 2â.23_n when_o they_o want_v minister_n they_o can_v want_v power_n to_o provide_v they_o to_o themselves_o see_v god_n have_v make_v they_o they_o further_o the_o apostle_n require_v the_o christian_n people_n to_o try_v the_o spirit_n of_o their_o teacher_n whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n or_o no._n 4.1_o 1._o joh._n 4.1_o and_o christ_n say_v his_o sheep_n hear_v his_o voice_n a_o
assembly_n see_v how_o lively_o he_o paint_v out_o and_o tax_v also_o our_o church_n state_n in_o england_n though_o primary_o he_o intend_v the_o papist_n and_o remember_v that_o to_o every_o of_o these_o church_n he_o allow_v a_o bishop_n as_o 104._o as_o pag._n 104._o before_o i_o have_v note_v so_o that_o the_o d._n may_v have_v spare_v his_o proud_a boast_n that_o 7._o that_o pag._n 7._o all_o the_o disciplinarian_o in_o the_o world_n be_v not_o able_a to_o show_v that_o there_o be_v or_o aught_o to_o have_v be_v after_o the_o division_n of_o parish_n any_o more_o than_o one_o bishop_n for_o a_o whole_a diocese_n neither_o shall_v he_o have_v call_v we_o for_o this_o our_o assertion_n 14._o assertion_n pag._n 14._o new_a foolish_a disciplinarian_o his_o worship_n doubtless_o be_v wise_a when_o all_o these_o our_o attestator_n and_o abettor_n be_v fool_n also_o that_o 21._o that_o pag._n 21._o his_o great_a challenge_n to_o his_o adversary_n be_v thus_o answer_v now_o to_o proceed_v he_o say_v it_o be_v not_o probable_a that_o jerusalems_n church_n in_o the_o act_n 89._o act_n pag._n 89._o do_v ordinary_o meet_v in_o one_o place_n i_o answer_v yet_o it_o be_v certain_a they_o have_v not_o then_o many_o ordinary_a set_v and_o constant_a company_n meet_v together_o which_o be_v the_o point_n we_o stand_v on_o will_v he_o never_o see_v it_o further_o he_o say_v 90._o say_v pag._n 90._o the_o apostle_n be_v never_o intend_v to_o be_v member_n all_o or_o any_o of_o they_o of_o one_o parish_n which_o be_v not_o so_o they_o be_v true_o member_n of_o every_o church_n or_o parish_n occasional_o that_o be_v where_o &_o when_o they_o be_v present_a though_o constant_o and_o necessary_o they_o be_v not_o of_o any_o one_o again_o he_o say_v the_o meeting_n act._n 6.1_o &_o 15.22_o 26_o be_v not_o parishional_a burr_n synodical_a they_o be_v parishional_a indeed_o the_o late_a be_v both_o i_o take_v it_o where_o the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n meet_v first_o synodical_o a_o part_n to_o debate_v the_o controversy_n but_o parishional_o or_o with_o the_o whole_a church_n when_o they_o decree_v and_o set_v down_o their_o resolution_n before_o he_o say_v these_o meeting_n of_o the_o church_n be_v meeting_n be_v pag._n 8_o 9_o panegyrical_n meeting_n panegyricall_a &_o not_o ordinary_a which_o again_o be_v not_o true_a such_o meeting_n be_v out_o of_o many_o city_n and_o country_n but_o here_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n only_o assemble_v and_o in_o the_o 15_o of_o the_o act_n 2._o or_o 3._o out_o of_o antioch_n again_o those_o be_v when_o sundry_a ordinary_a set_v assembly_n do_v meet_v in_o one_o but_o these_o all_o be_v of_o one_o church_n as_o i_o say_v have_v in_o it_o not_o many_o ordinary_a set_a assembly_n last_o here_o matter_n be_v handle_v which_o pertain_v to_o a_o church_n to_o perform_v ordinary_o so_o oft_o as_o occasion_n be_v therefore_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v call_v extraordinary_a much_o less_o be_v they_o like_o the_o meeting_n at_o paul_n cross_n or_o at_o the_o spital_n as_o he_o say_v lest_o of_o all_o be_v they_o panegyricall_a his_o objection_n from_o act._n 21.20_o of_o the_o many_o 10000_o believe_a jew_n i_o have_v answer_v 31_o answer_v declarat_fw-la pag._n 30._o 31_o elsewhere_a the_o rest_n be_v of_o no_o moment_n in_o his_o 6._o chapter_n he_o set_v against_o some_o other_o of_o our_o reason_n viz._n touch_v the_o church_n of_o corinth_n ephesus_n &_o antioch_n under_o the_o apostle_n of_o all_o of_o they_o he_o say_v 2.103_o say_v def._n 2.103_o though_o it_o shall_v be_v grant_v that_o each_o of_o these_o church_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n do_v ordinary_o assemble_v together_o in_o one_o place_n yet_o will_v it_o not_o follow_v that_o therefore_o each_o of_o they_o be_v but_o a_o parish_n much_o less_o that_o all_o church_n shall_v be_v but_o parish_n and_o that_o every_o parish_n shall_v have_v a_o bishop_n very_o all_o this_o do_v follow_v neither_o have_v he_o with_o any_o true_a reason_n deny_v it_o but_o all_o reason_n be_v for_o it_o as_o 213_o as_o pa_z 208._o 213_o before_o i_o have_v show_v then_o beginning_n with_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n 104._o corinth_n pag._n 104._o he_o deal_v deceitful_o leave_v out_o our_o principal_a proof_n viz._n 1._o cor._n 14.23_o the_o whole_a church_n come_v together_o in_o one_o which_o can_v not_o be_v such_o as_o may_v be_v write_v to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o he_o say_v most_o untrue_o of_o this_o i_o have_v say_v more_o 27._o more_o declarat_fw-la pag._n 26._o 27._o elsewhere_o to_o act._n 20.28_o of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n he_o say_v it_o need_v not_o signify_v only_o the_o congregation_n of_o a_o parish_n yet_o the_o word_n be_v attend_v or_o ãâã_d or_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d cleave_v close_o unto_o all_o the_o flock_n and_o the_o apostle_n name_v it_o also_o ãâã_d also_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d a_o congregation_n which_o be_v take_v for_o a_o visible_a company_n be_v ever_o more_o with_o authentic_a grecian_n a_o ordinary_a congregation_n only_o as_o i_o have_v oft_o observe_v so_o that_o proper_o and_o true_o it_o can_v not_o be_v as_o he_o will_v have_v it_o either_o the_o universal_a or_o a_o nationall_n or_o provincial_n or_o diocesan_n church_n neither_o can_v the_o pastor_n of_o such_o cleave_v close_o to_o all_o such_o sâockes_n nor_o possible_o be_v present_a to_o the_o whole_a but_o they_o must_v be_v nonresident_n which_o questionless_a these_o ephesin_n pastor_n be_v not_o as_o have_v be_v say_v wherefore_o this_o place_n still_o be_v a_o good_a argument_n for_o us._n and_o so_o be_v that_o touch_v antioch_n also_o where_o act._n 14.27_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n gather_v the_o church_n together_o into_o one_o particular_a assembly_n as_o the_o text_n import_v it_o be_v untrue_a and_o against_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o text_n to_o say_v as_o he_o do_v some_o of_o the_o chief_a perhaps_o not_o many_o perhaps_o not_o any_o beside_o the_o clergy_n theâe_n perhapse_n be_v miserable_a and_o desperate_a shift_n and_o what_o forbid_v husband_n wife_n servant_n and_o child_n of_o ripe_a year_n and_o understanding_n to_o have_v be_v there_o hitherto_o he_o have_v labour_v to_o show_v that_o the_o church_n mention_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v not_o each_o of_o they_o only_o one_o ordinary_a congregation_n but_o that_o they_o be_v diocesan_n church_n which_o how_o unsufficient_o he_o have_v do_v every_o child_n may_v perceive_v by_o the_o way_n he_o obtrude_v a_o foolish_a conceit_n on_o we_o as_o if_o by_o 102.104_o by_o def._n 2._o pag._n 102.104_o these_o aforesaid_a place_n of_o the_o n._n testament_n we_o intend_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n still_o remain_v till_o 200._o year_n of_o christ_n such_o as_o we_o hold_v they_o be_v at_o the_o first_o but_o let_v he_o take_v that_o collection_n to_o himself_o it_o be_v none_o of_o our_o meaning_n yet_o where_o he_o make_v so_o much_o a_o do_v about_o the_o space_n of_o 200._o year_n that_o we_o shall_v say_v for_o so_o long_a time_n there_o be_v no_o diocesan_n church_n the_o truth_n thereof_o be_v very_o perspicuous_a and_o certain_a &_o let_v the_o d._n know_v that_o i_o can_v easy_o maintain_v it_o church_n for_o the_o space_n of_o 200._o year_n after_o christ_n there_o be_v no_o diocesan_n church_n therefore_o let_v we_o see_v what_o he_o have_v against_o it_o where_o first_o i_o will_v note_v what_o a_o cavil_n he_o have_v against_o we_o for_o abridge_n and_o restrain_v the_o primitive_a church_n to_o 200._o year_n only_o to_o which_o i_o answer_v in_o respect_n of_o take_v the_o primitive_a church_n as_o a_o pattern_n for_o we_o to_o follow_v so_o we_o restrain_v it_o yet_o short_a even_o to_o the_o apostle_n time_n only_o yea_o to_o the_o time_n of_o write_v the_o n._n testament_n yea_o to_o the_o n._n testament_n itself_o only_o and_o we_o affirm_v if_o any_o do_v follow_v any_o authority_n beside_o they_o do_v profane_o irreligious_o adulterous_o &_o no_o better_o so_o that_o in_o this_o our_o d._n &_o d._n bilson_n likewise_o where_o be_v without_o all_o proof_n in_o christ_n testament_n they_o heap_v up_o father_n upon_o father_n and_o most_o eager_o cry_v out_o that_o we_o hold_v against_o etc._n against_o def._n 2.128.142_o &_o def._n 4._o etc._n etc._n perp._n gov_fw-mi 25â_n 259._o etc._n etc._n the_o universal_a &_o perpetual_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n if_o they_o can_v make_v some_o show_n hereof_o yet_o i_o say_v see_v they_o have_v not_o nor_o can_v bring_v one_o sound_a proof_n for_o themselves_o in_o christ_n testament_n therefore_o they_o use_v here_o but_o a_o carnal_a reason_n and_o contrary_a to_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n they_o 5â_n they_o jer._n 17_o 5â_n make_v flesh_n their_o arm_n and_o put_v not_o
luther_n bucer_n p._n martyr_n viret_n calvin_n beza_n danaeus_n vrsinees_n gualther_n etc._n etc._n and_o not_o the_o late_a only_o but_o the_o elder_n christian_n also_o for_o all_o these_o we_o have_v see_v do_v consent_n with_o we_o in_o our_o profession_n and_o it_o be_v a_o slander_n that_o in_o geneva_n or_o any_o where_o else_o the_o reform_a church_n do_v substantial_o differ_v from_o our_o judgement_n as_o may_v be_v see_v through_o out_o the_o 3._o &_o 4._o chapter_n before_o if_o any_o thing_n dissonant_n from_o those_o testim_fw-la may_v now_o be_v find_v in_o some_o of_o these_o church_n which_o i_o will_v not_o deny_v than_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v with_o they_o as_o with_o goodly_a and_o fair_a house_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n which_o be_v inhabit_v by_o man_n will_v need_v sweep_v very_o oft_o if_o they_o be_v not_o sweep_v &_o clean_v they_o will_v soon_o become_v foul_a and_o so_o true_o it_o may_v be_v in_o some_o of_o the_o church_n before_o name_v which_o can_v be_v no_o prejudice_n to_o we_o who_o see_v transgression_n creep_v in_o do_v wish_v all_o man_n and_o even_o they_o also_o ad_fw-la originem_fw-la reverti_fw-la eccles._n cyprian_a count_n epist_n stephan_n de_fw-fr vnit._n eccles._n to_o return_v to_o the_o original_n and_o first_o plantation_n both_o of_o they_o self_n in_o particular_a and_o special_o of_o all_o church_n at_o the_o first_o in_o the_o which_o only_o there_o be_v safety_n as_o for_o this_o intemperate_a doctor_n rail_v word_n in_o call_v this_o our_o doctrine_n 4.80.99_o doctrine_n def._n 1.41_o &_o 4.80.99_o brownistical_a anabaptisticall_a 4.81_o anabaptisticall_a def._n 3.142_o &_o 4.81_o fanatical_a fantastical_a dotage_n frenzy_n etc._n etc._n we_o will_v bear_v it_o know_v as_o cyprian_n say_v of_o some_o such_o in_o his_o day_n 4.2_o day_n cyprian_n epist_n 4.2_o non_fw-la possunt_fw-la laudare_fw-la nos_fw-la qui_fw-la recedunt_fw-la à _fw-la nobis_fw-la we_o must_v look_v for_o hateful_a and_o âââlent_a word_n from_o they_o that_o fall_v from_o us._n yet_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n let_v he_o know_v also_o that_o in_o this_o he_o reproach_v not_o so_o much_o we_o as_o those_o pillar_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n before_o name_v zuinglius_fw-la luther_n bucer_n martyr_n viret_n calvin_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o who_o we_o have_v direct_o receive_v this_o doctrine_n and_o profession_n these_o be_v our_o master_n herein_o as_o in_o the_o beginning_n i_o say_v our_o do._n object_v often_o that_o these_o be_v partial_a &_o that_o this_o be_v their_o own_o cause_n and_o that_o as_o well_o we_o may_v cite_v 4.30_o cite_v def._n 4.30_o mai._n cartwright_n and_o mai._n travers_n as_o some_o of_o these_o yea_o he_o will_v have_v jerome_n also_o to_o be_v 4.137_o be_v def._n 4.137_o partial_a yet_o we_o frank_o acknowledge_v jerome_n to_o be_v they_o touch_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o diocese_n simple_o jerome_n not_o we_o simple_o bishop_n although_o he_o and_o many_o other_o of_o the_o father_n beside_o be_v with_o we_o in_o this_o that_o diocesan_n bishop_n be_v not_o apostolical_a but_o humane_a and_o this_o very_o they_o teach_v far_o from_o partiality_n partial_a they_o may_v be_v for_o the_o say_a prelacy_n not_o against_o it_o and_o the_o truth_n be_v they_o be_v notorious_o partial_a for_o it_o it_o be_v indeed_o their_o own_o cause_n partial_a who_o be_v partial_a they_o may_v be_v partial_a &_o be_v wont_v so_o to_o be_v count_v who_o be_v likely_a to_o get_v by_o their_o opinion_n some_o temporal_a commodity_n not_o they_o who_o lose_v by_o it_o now_o the_o father_n erotema_fw-la cui_fw-la bono_fw-mi cassianun_n erotema_fw-la special_o under_o constantine_n &_o after_o by_o approve_v diocesan_n prelacy_n get_v great_a honour_n power_n and_o rule_v among_o the_o people_n and_o wealth_n and_o pleasure_n what_o they_o desire_v which_o by_o oppose_v against_o it_o they_o shall_v have_v lose_v whence_o certain_o it_o be_v that_o d._n downame_n may_v as_o well_o cite_v b._n whitgift_n b._n bancroft_n and_o b._n bilson_n for_o his_o author_n as_o some_o of_o those_o ancients_n viz._n as_o well_o as_o b._n eusebius_n b._n epiphanius_n b._n theodoret_n b._n damasus_n b._n leo_n b._n chrysostom_n etc._n etc._n who_o questionless_a in_o this_o point_n be_v very_o partial_a and_o no_o les_fw-fr if_o not_o more_o may_v be_v think_v of_o some_o of_o those_o diocesan_n l._n bishop_n who_o begin_v our_o church_n reformation_n in_o england_n they_o by_o proceed_v no_o further_a do_v get_v much_o temporal_a commodity_n which_o by_o set_v the_o church_n state_n near_o to_o the_o form_n apostolic_a they_o must_v needs_o have_v lose_v and_o so_o they_o though_o otherwise_o as_o likewise_o those_o ancient_n be_v good_a and_o godly_a father_n yet_o they_o be_v man_n and_o may_v easy_o be_v partial_a in_o this_o men._n good_a and_o godly_a father_n yeâ_n men._n which_o and_o more_o we_o may_v think_v of_o many_o of_o our_o diocesan_n lord_n bishop_n since_o most_o of_o all_o of_o d._n downame_n himself_o who_o beside_o these_o temporal_a hope_n be_v a_o diocesan_n l._n bishop_n fonne_n have_v need_n of_o much_o grace_n i_o confess_v to_o cause_v he_o to_o degenerate_v but_o i_o pray_v then_o have_v he_o do_v wise_o to_o object_n as_o he_o do_v every_o foot_n against_o those_o singular_a instrument_n and_o very_o effectual_a reformer_n our_o attestator_n &_o other_o like_o they_o that_o they_o be_v partial_a and_o that_o this_o be_v their_o own_o cause_n indeed_o they_o be_v partial_a that_o be_v they_o take_v part_v thorough_o with_o the_o sincerity_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o stand_v against_o all_o papal_a and_o pontifical_a overrule_a of_o god_n people_n spiritual_o &_o so_o shall_v this_o doct._n and_o other_o do_v well_o if_o they_o be_v partial_a likewise_o but_o partial_a otherwise_o they_o neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v viz._n they_o do_v not_o get_v but_o lose_v by_o this_o their_o proceed_n great_a worldly_a honour_n much_o power_n and_o rule_v among_o the_o people_n large_a wealth_n dainty_a pleasure_n and_o ease_n which_o we_o now_o do_v abound_v with_o as_o all_o the_o world_n see_v whereby_o the_o world_n see_v likewise_o which_o side_n may_v rather_o plead_v partiality_n to_o be_v in_o those_o who_o they_o take_v to_o be_v their_o adversary_n in_o many_o place_n d._n downame_n signifi_v that_o the_o godly_a late_a defender_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v mislike_v only_o 4.151.157.158.161_o only_o def._n 4.151.157.158.161_o popish_a tyrannize_a bishop_n not_o orthodoxal_a bishop_n as_o he_o presume_v we_o to_o be_v but_o let_v he_o know_v that_o those_o be_v orthodoxal_a who_o imitate_v the_o apostle_n and_o the_o pattern_n of_o the_o church_n leave_v we_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o they_o be_v tyrannize_v &_o not_o orthodox_n this_o orthodox_n viz._n in_o this_o nor_o true_o believe_v who_o imitate_v the_o popish_a though_o otherwise_o they_o be_v not_o papist_n cicero_n say_v well_o to_o antony_n 2._o antony_n cicer._n philippic_n 2._o miror_fw-la te_fw-la antoni_fw-la quorum_fw-la fasta_fw-la imitere_fw-la corum_fw-la exitus_fw-la non_fw-la perhorrescere_fw-la i_o wonder_v antony_n say_v he_o that_o thou_o fear_v not_o their_o judgement_n who_o deed_n thou_o imitate_v now_o how_o we_o imitate_v the_o very_a form_n of_o the_o popish_a church-government_n all_o the_o world_n see_v and_o the_o gospel_n ruth_n what_o mean_v the_o rack_n and_o the_o wrack_n of_o many_o conscience_n viz._n the_o oath_n ex_fw-la officio_fw-la what_o the_o bishop_n deprive_v and_o impose_v of_o minister_n without_o church-governement_n imitation_n of_o popish_a church-governement_n yea_o contrary_a to_o the_o congregation_n what_o mean_v also_o such_o excommunication_n what_o their_o imprison_n of_o christian_n and_o punish_v their_o purse_n with_o fee_n fine_n etc._n etc._n be_v these_o the_o part_n of_o orthodox_n bishop_n be_v these_o thing_n approve_v of_o those_o godly_a writer_n nothing_o less_o likewise_o his_o vain_a and_o frivolous_a seek_v to_o avoid_v the_o waldense_n wickliff_n hus_n zuinglius_fw-la luther_n oecolampadius_n bucer_n martyr_n calvin_n etc._n etc._n our_o tindal_n fr._n and_o joh._n lambert_n bradsord_n bale_n etc._n etc._n be_v of_o no_o worth_n some_o of_o they_o signify_v that_o they_o disallow_v not_o diocesan_n bishop_n simple_o well_o no_o more_o do_v i_o as_o i_o have_v show_v 15.16.73.89.97_o show_v pag._n 15.16.73.89.97_o before_o yet_o hereby_o appear_v no_o allowance_n of_o we_o in_o england_n our_o old_a english_a translator_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n &_o some_o other_o writer_n since_o do_v express_v the_o word_n church_n by_o congregation_n but_o say_v our_o doctor_n here_o by_o they_o mean_v the_o 2.106.107.108_o the_o def._n 2.106.107.108_o vnivesall_n church_n which_o answer_n be_v untrue_a and_o absurd_a that_o be_v where_o they_o speak_v of_o a_o visible_a &_o ministe_n church_n of_o which_o only_o our_o question_n be_v speak_v of_o this_o that_o they_o
government_n differ_v substantial_o which_o difference_n i_o know_v not_o who_o have_v touch_v heretofore_o and_o include_v in_o any_o definition_n in_o so_o much_o that_o from_o hence_o have_v arisen_a no_o small_a occasion_n of_o grievous_a error_n howbeit_o yet_o for_o the_o precise_a name_n of_o definition_n or_o description_n i_o strive_v not_o let_v man_n call_v it_o what_o they_o will_n only_a i_o take_v i_o to_o be_v convertible_a with_o christ_n true_a visib_n church_n under_o the_o gospel_n and_o that_o suffice_v i_o further_o some_o think_v it_o long_o for_o who_o sake_n i_o will_v here_o again_o set_v down_o in_o effect_n the_o same_o definition_n though_o in_o other_o word_n &_o more_o short_a thus_o it_o be_v church_n a_o definition_n of_o christ_n true_a visible_a church_n a_o visible_a church_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o spiritual_a body_n politic_a of_o no_o mo_z ordinary_a congregation_n then_o one_o the_o people_n also_o have_v power_n of_o free_a consent_n in_o their_o ordinary_a government_n this_o be_v short_a &_o yet_o as_o full_a as_o the_o other_o second_o whereas_o do._n downame_n in_o his_o book_n of_o his_o sermon_n and_o defence_n pick_v out_o i_o in_o particular_a beside_o his_o proper_a antagonist_n to_o traduce_v and_o calumniat_fw-la i_o hold_v it_o necessary_a to_o answer_v he_o in_o the_o point_n that_o concern_v i_o and_o by_o the_o way_n some_o other_o adversary_n now_o and_o then_o who_o oppugn_v this_o cause_n also_o which_o be_v the_o original_n of_o all_o their_o ill_a will_n against_o i_o profess_v for_o my_o part_n that_o my_o purpose_n be_v hereafter_o to_o cease_v this_o manner_n of_o deal_n in_o this_o matter_n unless_o i_o may_v do_v it_o upon_o more_o equal_a condition_n which_o i_o do_v not_o expect_v the_o lord_n i_o doubt_v not_o will_v raise_v up_o other_o that_o shall_v more_o effectual_o bear_v witness_n unto_o this_o truth_n in_o due_a time_n even_o until_o the_o toleration_n hereof_o in_o england_n which_o have_v be_v most_o christianly_o supplicate_v for_o shall_v find_v grace_n and_o favour_n in_o his_o majesty_n eye_n for_o the_o which_o i_o shall_v not_o cease_v to_o pray_v continual_o three_o whereas_o the_o write_n and_o dispute_n about_o this_o cause_n have_v be_v and_o be_v very_o many_o intricat_a and_o tedious_a i_o have_v here_o endeavour_v to_o make_v the_o understanding_n thereof_o short_a easy_a and_o perspicuous_a namely_o by_o reduce_v the_o whole_a substance_n of_o this_o controversy_n only_o to_o 2._o head_n controversy_n the_o sumnââ_n and_o substance_n of_o all_o our_o controversy_n viz._n the_o people_n free_a consent_n in_o their_o ordinary_a church_n government_n and_o that_o the_o extent_n of_o christ_n true_a visible_a church_n under_o the_o gospel_n contain_v one_o and_o not_o many_o ordinary_a congregation_n which_o 2._o point_n be_v plain_o and_o honest_o handle_v will_v bring_v a_o end_n of_o other_o difference_n also_o which_o be_v usual_o consider_v in_o our_o general_a controversy_n i_o hope_v therefore_o this_o my_o endeavour_n will_v be_v profitable_a to_o such_o as_o will_v understand_v this_o cause_n brief_o and_o distinct_o at_o least_o my_o intent_n be_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v be_v myself_o very_o desirous_a to_o draw_v our_o long_a contention_n as_o much_o as_o i_o can_v to_o a_o short_a issue_n four_o i_o desire_v that_o this_o and_o all_o other_o my_o writing_n may_v be_v not_o sinister_o take_v be_v with_o much_o vehemency_n charge_v that_o for_o no_o just_a cause_n i_o have_v refuse_v to_o conform_v to_o the_o church_n order_n in_o england_n i_o can_v therefore_o do_v no_o less_o but_o give_v out_o yea_o unto_o posterity_n the_o the_o true_a and_o most_o important_a reason_n of_o my_o dissent_v herein_o also_o i_o have_v be_v constrain_v by_o do._n downame_n and_o such_o other_o to_o clear_v and_o confirm_v the_o say_v reason_n and_o this_o be_v the_o only_a true_a cause_n as_o the_o lord_n know_v of_o all_o my_o writing_n which_o how_o just_a it_o be_v i_o desire_v all_o fear_v god_n upright_o to_o consider_v five_o i_o pray_v all_o good_a christian_n not_o to_o forget_v nor_o neglect_v the_o due_a consideration_n of_o this_o matter_n but_o to_o weigh_v with_o themselves_o how_o important_a it_o be_v indeed_o which_o i_o have_v somewhat_o large_o open_v before_o in_o the_o etc._n the_o consequent_a 5.6.7_o 8._o pag._n 129._o etc._n etc._n 7._o chapter_n in_o divers_a and_o sundry_a respect_n it_o preserve_v christ_n honour_n &_o ordinance_n and_o cast_v out_o humane_a tradition_n it_o bring_v to_o ourselves_o true_a assurance_n and_o cut_v of_o from_o the_o papist_n and_o other_o all_o pretence_n which_o otherwise_o against_o we_o be_v not_o little_a six_o the_o very_a attestation_n of_o those_o most_o worthy_a divine_n and_o church_n which_o here_o i_o allege_v gather_v out_o of_o their_o public_a record_n shall_v i_o hope_v abundant_o acquit_v both_o myself_o and_o many_o other_o faithful_a servante_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o honest_a and_o sound_n christian_n from_o the_o most_o injurious_a slander_n give_v out_o by_o d._n downame_n and_o other_o adversary_n to_o our_o reproach_n among_o the_o ignorant_a as_o namely_o where_o they_o call_v we_o shismatike_n innovator_n enemy_n of_o unity_n etc._n etc._n when_o man_n shall_v perceive_v that_o we_o be_v indeed_o teach_v these_o assertion_n which_o we_o hold_v not_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o scripture_n out_o of_o zuinglius_fw-la luther_n bucer_n f._n martyr_n viret_n musculus_fw-la bullinger_n gualther_n chemnieius_n vrsinus_n junius_n danaeus_n calvin_n and_o beza_n with_o many_o other_o like_o rare_a man_n of_o god_n all_o consent_v together_o in_o the_o substance_n of_o these_o point_n as_o before_o i_o have_v show_v more_o at_o large_a than_o it_o will_v be_v a_o sufficient_a satisfaction_n to_o they_o on_o our_o behalf_n and_o our_o adversary_n shall_v find_v it_o to_o be_v well_o with_o they_o if_o they_o themselves_o can_v stand_v clear_a of_o the_o say_a crime_n of_o schism_n novelty_n enmity_n to_o unity_n peace_n and_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n nay_o very_o they_o can_v not_o stand_v clear_a of_o these_o crime_n last_o of_o all_o these_o our_o worthy_a attestator_n &_o teacher_n shall_v i_o hope_v likewise_o yet_o have_v so_o much_o credit_n and_o honour_n yield_v to_o they_o in_o england_n that_o their_o disciple_n shall_v not_o for_o their_o doctrine_n only_o be_v afflict_v imprison_a and_o more_o severe_o punish_v then_o those_o that_o profess_v to_o be_v the_o disciple_n of_o the_o romish_a enemy_n a_o enemy_n indeed_o not_o conceit_a both_o to_o christ_n to_o our_o king_n &_o the_o realm_n in_o which_o hope_n and_o full_a persuasion_n i_o humble_o commend_v all_o this_o that_o i_o have_v lud_n to_o god_n holy_a providence_n &_o gracious_a blessing_n &_o to_o all_o christian_n chatable_a &_o upright_o judgement_n to_o god_n only_o wise_a through_o jesus_n christ_n be_v praise_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o amen_o a_o addition_n that_o the_o abuser_n of_o mai._n beza_n and_o mai._n calvin_n about_o mat._n 18.17_o may_v see_v their_o ill_n do_v i_o think_v good_a to_o set_v down_o here_o some_o more_o of_o their_o testimony_n a_o part_n by_o themselves_o which_o show_v plain_o that_o howsoever_o they_o seem_v sometime_o to_o speak_v not_o so_o wary_o as_o they_o may_v touch_v the_o word_n ecclesia_fw-la in_o this_o place_n calling_z it_o the_o church-senat_n or_o presbytery_n yet_o their_o true_a and_o right_a meaning_n indeed_o be_v that_o here_o ecclesia_fw-la signifi_v not_o the_o church_n senat_n only_o &_o mere_o as_o some_o obstinate_o charge_v they_o to_o mean_v they_o do_v here_o in_o this_o word_n comprehend_v also_o the_o people_n and_o their_o power_n of_o free_a consent_n in_o excommunication_n which_o be_v the_o matter_n speak_v of_o by_o christ_n in_o this_o place_n of_o math._n i_o say_v here_o in_o this_o word_n they_o include_v the_o people_n also_o &_o teach_v that_o they_o must_v be_v tell_v and_o that_o they_o must_v be_v hearken_v unto_o in_o a_o degree_n &_o in_o a_o certain_a order_n viz._n mediate_o &_o final_o they_o intend_v not_o that_o christ_n here_o commit_v this_o business_n to_o the_o presbytery_n only_o and_o absolute_o thus_o say_v beza_n upon_o this_o word_n 18.17_o word_n bez._n annotat_fw-la in_o mat._n 18.17_o doceo_fw-la aristocratiam_fw-la non_fw-la esse_fw-la novum_fw-la institutum_fw-la dei_fw-la verbo_fw-la &_o democratiae_fw-la ecclesiastica_fw-la repugnans_fw-la sicut_fw-la nonnull_v ex_fw-la unicâ_fw-la voculâ_fw-la temerè_fw-la arreptâ_fw-la sunt_fw-la arbitrati_fw-la and_o present_o before_o âe_n say_v neque_fw-la verò_fw-la oligarchiam_fw-la velim_fw-la in_o âcclesiam_fw-la dei_fw-la invehi_fw-la quae_fw-la illam_fw-la tantopere_fw-la deârmavit_fw-la atque_fw-la adeò_fw-la penitùs_fw-la transformavit_fw-la also_o 16.18_o also_o in_o mat._n 16.18_o vocabulo_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la significari_fw-la civium_fw-la ânventum_fw-la nemo_fw
they_o who_o late_o publish_v that_o book_n of_o d._n bill_n in_o latin_a so_o to_o do_v unless_o they_o mean_v to_o show_v abroad_o further_o his_o most_o impertinent_a ambiguous_a &_o uncertain_a writing_n &_o yet_o fraught_v with_o bitterness_n enough_o against_o us._n in_o a_o word_n we_o desire_v that_o all_o man_n shall_v know_v that_o our_o question_n be_v not_o whether_o bishop_n and_o their_o government_n be_v apostolical_a about_o the_o prove_v whereof_o the_o great_a part_n of_o these_o two_o doctor_n book_n be_v spend_v further_o though_o we_o deny_v diocesan_n &_o provincial_n bishop_n of_o any_o sort_n to_o be_v apostolical_a yet_o we_o do_v not_o 38_o not_o see_v reas_n for_o reform_v pag._n 7._o &_o 38_o simple_o deny_v but_o that_o some_o kind_n of_o they_o also_o may_v be_v lawful_a be_v it_o not_o that_o certain_a weighty_a circumstance_n in_o these_o our_o day_n do_v stand_v against_o they_o yea_o there_o be_v circumstance_n now_o very_o evident_a and_o pregnant_a against_o the_o best_a sort_n of_o diocesan_n bishop_n which_o be_v not_o in_o 200._o or_o 300._o year_n after_o christ_n so_o that_o no_o reason_n can_v be_v make_v because_o they_o be_v lawful_a in_o the_o second_o or_o three_o age_n therefore_o they_o be_v lawful_a now_o the_o case_n be_v thus_o it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o the_o dd._n do_v not_o propound_v the_o true_a question_n between_o us._n for_o if_o the_o people_n free_a consent_n in_o their_o own_o church-governement_n be_v not_o as_o it_o be_v christ_n ordinance_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n certain_o not_o circumstance_n nor_o any_o thing_n else_o can_v make_v diocesan_n or_o provincial_n bishop_n at_o all_o reprovable_a for_o which_o cause_n the_o true_a question_n indeed_o between_o the_o prelacy_n and_o we_o or_o the_o principal_a &_o main_a question_n be_v whether_o the_o people_n ought_v to_o have_v always_o their_o free_a consent_n in_o their_o own_o church_n government_n but_o this_o special_o 4.80.99_o special_o see_v his_o defen_n 1_o 38.47_o &_o 4.80.99_o d._n downame_n put_v away_o from_o he_o with_o high_a disdain_n contempt_n rail_v hateful_a accusation_n and_o exclamation_n so_o that_o with_o this_o he_o will_v not_o vouchsafe_v to_o meddle_v wherein_o true_o we_o may_v see_v he_o to_o be_v i_o can_v not_o say_v learn_v but_o a_o cunning_a bold_a and_o exquisite_a sophister_n and_o this_o may_v be_v in_o general_a a_o sufficient_a answer_n even_o to_o his_o whole_a defence_n although_o for_o some_o other_o respect_n i_o hope_v some_o body_n will_v one_o day_n examine_v his_o particular_a passage_n more_o exact_o in_o a_o place_n for_o the_o purpose_n but_o to_o our_o point_n in_o hand_n we_o clear_o see_v by_o this_o that_o it_o be_v the_o people_n conâent_n in_o the_o affair_n of_o their_o own_o spiritual_a that_o be_v church_n government_n which_o make_v the_o matter_n &_o put_v the_o difference_n in_o deed_n between_o the_o ecclesiastical_a reformation_n which_o in_o all_o dutifulness_n we_o seek_v and_o that_o church-governement_n which_o the_o l._n bishop_n in_o engl._n do_v exercise_n i_o say_v this_o concern_v the_o people_n right_a herein_o be_v it_o which_o tonch_v the_o life_n of_o our_o controversy_n where_o understand_v note_n note_n that_o i_o mean_v only_o such_o people_n as_o be_v not_o ignorant_a in_o religion_n nor_o scandalous_a in_o their_o life_n for_o only_o of_o such_o christ_n visible_a church_n ought_v to_o consist_v well_o to_o proceed_v they_o with_o our_o point_n questionless_a hence_o it_o be_v that_o general_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o forename_a reformation_n do_v so_o strange_o reject_v yea_o so_o hateful_o resist_v and_o strive_v against_o this_o same_o christian_a doctrine_n here_o propound_v concern_v the_o church_n only_o true_a government_n with_o the_o people_n free_a consent_n as_o they_o do_v wherein_o they_o express_v &_o show_v little_a christian_a patience_n for_o they_o prosecute_v those_o that_o hold_v &_o teach_v the_o same_o though_o out_o of_o mere_a conscience_n with_o all_o bitter_a reproach_n base_a skoffing_n injurious_a slander_n and_o unmerciful_a deal_n and_o all_o this_o it_o be_v plain_a not_o for_o any_o manner_n of_o evil_n that_o they_o find_v in_o this_o doctrine_n or_o for_o any_o inconvenience_n therein_o for_o in_o truth_n there_o be_v none_o at_o all_o as_o partly_o i_o have_v show_v 28_o show_v reas._n for_o reform_v pag._n 28_o heretofore_o &_o it_o will_v further_o be_v manifest_v hereafter_o but_o they_o so_o hate_v this_o doctrine_n only_o because_o of_o the_o inevitable_a consequence_n of_o the_o say_a reformation_n which_o it_o bring_v with_o it_o which_o cross_v &_o overturn_v whole_o their_o divers_a enormous_a worldly_a &_o carnal_a desire_n as_o any_o man_n that_o look_v into_o the_o case_n may_v easy_o see_v howsoever_o it_o be_v yet_o the_o truth_n and_o the_o agreeablenes_n hereof_o with_o the_o holy_a gospel_n of_o jesus_n christ_n &_o with_o the_o assure_v of_o our_o soul_n in_o the_o way_n to_o eternal_a life_n as_o it_o have_v appear_v to_o the_o world_n ever_o since_o the_o discovery_n of_o antichrist_n more_o clear_o than_o it_o do_v for_o many_o year_n before_o so_o doubtless_o it_o will_v more_o and_o more_o appear_v yet_o still_o &_o be_v make_v further_o manifest_v to_o all_o man_n even_o where_o the_o gospel_n be_v receive_v as_o it_o be_v in_o many_o place_n yet_o not_o so_o sincere_o as_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v etc._n see_v chap_v 7._o pag._n 156._o etc._n etc._n for_o my_o part_n because_o i_o well_o perceive_v that_o the_o antichristian_a idolatry_n and_o tyranny_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v by_v divinity_n be_v sound_o resist_v as_o experience_n in_o time_n will_v show_v neither_o be_v it_o resist_v by_o our_o forefather_n at_o the_o beginning_n but_o by_o maintain_v this_o evangelicall_n point_n of_o doctrine_n among_o other_o therefore_o i_o have_v condescend_v the_o more_o willing_o after_o diligent_a inquiry_n thereinto_o to_o approve_v the_o say_a point_n of_o doctrine_n viz._n that_o the_o church_n government_n ought_v to_o be_v exercise_v always_o with_o the_o people_n free_a consent_n which_o also_o even_o for_o 7._o for_o for_o that_o the_o papa_n cie_n else_o will_v come_v in_o see_v chap._n 7._o this_o same_o cause_n i_o can_v not_o but_o believe_v to_o be_v the_o holy_a ordinance_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o his_o church_n under_o the_o gospel_n and_o to_o have_v be_v deliver_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o perpetual_a practice_n of_o church-governement_n but_o special_o see_v for_o the_o same_o we_o have_v the_o most_o sure_a evidence_n of_o god_n word_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o i_o 48._o i_o argnm._n 3_o &_o 9_o of_o the_o divine_a beginning_n of_o chrst_n visible_a church_n declarat_fw-la pag._n 20_o â1_n reas._n for_o reform_v pag._n 45._o 46_o 47._o 48._o have_v heretofore_o gather_v and_o observe_v at_o large_a second_o see_v we_o have_v for_o it_o a_o plentiful_a and_o clear_a attestation_n of_o many_o learned_a godly_a and_o famous_a divine_n both_o new_a and_o old_a confirm_v our_o faith_n and_o strengthen_v our_o conscience_n therein_o which_o attestation_n i_o have_v think_v it_o needful_a at_o this_o time_n and_o in_o this_o place_n to_o gather_v and_o produce_v for_o many_o cause_n first_o my_o desire_n be_v that_o it_o may_v lie_v open_a to_o the_o sight_n of_o all_o man_n what_o a_o great_a &_o holy_a agreement_n of_o good_a man_n herein_o we_o have_v which_o be_v add_v to_o the_o forenote_v fundamental_a certainty_n thereof_o in_o god_n word_n give_v so_o full_a a_o satisfaction_n to_o every_o good_a christian_a that_o who_o can_v desire_v more_o second_o all_o christian_a civil_a magistrate_n may_v hereby_o take_v good_a content_n and_o be_v satisfy_v touch_v the_o innocence_n of_o this_o way_n in_o the_o church_n government_n which_o we_o hold_v for_o when_o they_o shall_v see_v with_o what_o a_o cloud_n of_o such_o witness_n we_o be_v compass_v in_o defence_n of_o this_o matter_n they_o can_v not_o imagine_v any_o inconvenience_n by_o it_o to_o their_o government_n notwithstanding_o all_o the_o clamour_n and_o invective_n of_o partial_a adversary_n against_o it_o last_o hereby_o also_o our_o adversary_n virulent_a tongue_n and_o pen_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a may_v be_v ashamed_a to_o abuse_v we_o as_o they_o do_v with_o all_o kind_n of_o unworthy_a reproach_n and_o slander_n when_o they_o shall_v see_v who_o they_o hate_v and_o persecute_v &_o revile_v together_o with_o us._n wherefore_o for_o the_o publish_n of_o this_o matter_n there_o appear_v every_o way_n very_o great_a and_o necessary_a reason_n chap._n ii_o the_o method_n and_o order_n of_o this_o treatise_n now_o herein_o i_o purpose_v to_o proceed_v thus_o first_o i_o will_v show_v who_o among_o the_o new_a writer_n be_v our_o master_n &_o teacher_n in_o this_o point_n of_o doctrine_n
have_v to_o that_o purâise_n handle_v in_o my_o 3._o and_o 9_o argument_n of_o the_o divine_a beginning_n and_o institution_n of_o christ_n visible_a and_o ministerial_a church_n do_v well_o show_v and_o testify_v to_o we_o so_o much_o chap._n vi_o our_o very_a adversary_n do_v acknowledge_v with_o we_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o doctrine_n sometime_o in_o plain_a term_n 6._o chap._n 6._o and_o sometime_o to_o the_o same_o full_a effect_n special_o when_o they_o deal_v against_o the_o papist_n the_o force_n and_o evidence_n of_o this_o truth_n viz._n touch_v the_o people_n right_a for_o their_o free_a consent_n in_o church_n government_n be_v such_o that_o also_o our_o very_a adversary_n sometime_o in_o plain_a term_n sometime_o to_o the_o same_o full_a effect_n do_v acknowledge_v it_o among_o many_o i_o will_v content_v myself_o with_o two_o for_o the_o present_a viz._n d._n bilson_n and_o d._n downame_n the_o first_o of_o these_o in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o apology_n of_o the_o seminary_n pristes_fw-fr and_o jesuit_n write_v thus_o 353.356_o thus_o d._n bila_n against_o the_o seminar_n part_n 2_o 353.356_o we_o have_v the_o word_n and_o warrant_v of_o the_o h._n ghost_n for_o that_o which_o we_o say_v etc._n etc._n viz._n that_o the_o people_n can_v and_o aught_o to_o disceme_v and_o try_v the_o doctrine_n and_o spirit_n of_o the_o teacher_n &c_n &c_n so_o to_o choose_v and_o refuse_v they_o as_o they_o by_o the_o word_n shall_v see_v good_a thus_o say_v he_o and_o what_o can_v be_v speak_v by_o any_o of_o our_o self_n more_o plain_o and_o more_o full_o to_o our_o purpose_n if_o the_o people_n can_v and_o aught_o to_o choose_v their_o teacher_n and_o to_o refuse_v who_o they_o find_v worthy_a to_o be_v refuse_v then_o why_o be_v they_o not_o allow_v so_o to_o do_v in_o england_n if_o the_o word_n and_o warrant_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v for_o it_o than_o who_o may_v impeach_v it_o who_o may_v resist_v it_o what_o be_v they_o that_o revile_v and_o persecute_v this_o way_n he_o add_v here_o in_o this_o place_n that_o the_o people_n 355._o people_n pag._n 355._o have_v skill_n and_o leave_v to_o discern_v both_o viz._n to_o discern_v the_o teacher_n &_o their_o doctrine_n where_o also_o he_o discourse_v much_o upon_o this_o right_n of_o the_o people_n as_o be_v christ_n ordinance_n and_o press_v it_o against_o the_o papist_n yea_o in_o another_o book_n where_o he_o plead_v to_o the_o contrary_a purpose_n against_o we_o yet_o he_o write_v thus_o 300._o perpet_n gov_fw-mi pag_n 300._o *_o the_o apostle_n leave_v election_n indifferent_o to_o the_o people_n and_o clergy_n of_o jerusalem_n the_o people_n have_v as_o much_o right_a to_o choose_v their_o pastor_n as_o the_o clergy_n that_o have_v more_o skill_n to_o judge_v 339._o judge_v pag_n 339._o well_o may_v the_o people_n interest_n stand_v upon_o the_o ground_n of_o reason_n &_o nature_n and_o be_v derive_v from_o the_o rule_n of_o christian_a equity_n 359._o equity_n pag._n 359._o the_o late_a bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o cease_v curse_v and_o fight_v till_o exclude_v both_o prince_n and_o people_n they_o reduce_v the_o election_n whole_o to_o the_o clergy_n but_o he_o tell_v they_o that_o by_o their_o leave_n apply_v hereunto_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n mat._n 19_o 8._o it_o be_v not_o so_o from_o the_o beginning_n again_o he_o say_v 330._o say_v pag._n 330._o i_o a_o knowledge_n each_o church_n and_o people_n stand_v frâe_v by_o god_n law_n to_o admit_v maintain_v and_o obey_v no_o man_n as_o their_o pastor_n without_o their_o like_n where_o in_o deed_n he_o add_v to_o the_o contrary_a unless_o by_o law_n custom_n or_o consent_v they_o restrain_v themselves_o but_o this_o he_o himself_o elsewhere_a answer_v roundly_o 221._o roundly_o pag._n 221._o what_o authority_n have_v other_o after_o the_o apostle_n death_n to_o change_v the_o apostolic_a government_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o so_o from_o the_o beginning_n which_o before_o he_o answer_v be_v a_o full_a confutation_n also_o of_o this_o exception_n as_o also_o where_o he_o call_v man_n ordinance_n in_o church_n government_n 19_o government_n pag._n 19_o corruption_n of_o time_n invention_n of_o man_n and_o a_o transgress_a of_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n for_o the_o tradition_n of_o man_n and_o where_o he_o call_v such_o ordinance_n 111._o ordinance_n pag._n 111._o intrusion_n and_o presumption_n as_o for_o that_o he_o say_v elsewhere_o in_o this_o book_n 82._o book_n pag_n 82._o the_o multitude_n he_o mean_v the_o christian_a people_n neither_o can_v not_o can_v judge_v of_o the_o gift_n and_o ability_n of_o pastor_n no_o more_o then_o blind_a man_n of_o colour_n this_o show_v plain_o his_o variable_a mind_n &_o contradiction_n to_o himself_o as_o for_o the_o matter_n it_o be_v speak_v mere_o out_o of_o a_o humour_n and_o partiality_n against_o we_o and_o that_o his_o lordship_n in_o spiritual_a thing_n over_o christ_n people_n may_v be_v establish_v but_o before_o against_o the_o main_a adversary_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o papist_n he_o teach_v the_o truth_n as_o the_o scripture_n there_o allege_v do_v show_v but_o here_o in_o this_o last_o place_n he_o turn_v about_o &_o join_v with_o they_o rather_o than_o he_o will_v seem_v to_o consent_v with_o us._n nevertheless_o his_o former_a most_o clear_a and_o sincere_a testimony_n on_o our_o behalf_n can_v not_o be_v blot_v out_o again_o in_o the_o same_o book_n speak_v of_o bishop_n in_o plain_a term_n thus_o he_o say_v 340._o say_v pag._n 340._o they_o have_v no_o power_n to_o impose_v a_o pastor_n on_o any_o church_n against_o their_o will_n nor_o to_o force_v they_o to_o yield_v he_o obedience_n or_o maintenance_n against_o their_o like_n if_o this_o be_v ingenuous_o acknowledge_v and_o profess_v &_o practise_v likewise_o religious_o we_o shall_v desire_v no_o more_o for_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o matter_n as_o it_o have_v be_v often_o say_v our_o agreement_n together_o touchinge_v church-governement_n will_v soon_o appear_v but_o he_o when_o he_o list_v will_v tell_v we_o that_o timothy_n and_o tââs_n who_o he_o esteem_v bishop_n have_v power_n to_o make_v presbyter_n to_o church_n and_o the_o apostle_n also_o 88_o also_o pag._n 88_o without_o the_o people_n or_o their_o consent_n wherefore_o what_o to_o reckon_v of_o his_o say_n and_o speech_n we_o know_v not_o only_o his_o foresay_a agreement_n with_o we_o in_o word_n be_v manifest_a next_o to_o he_o we_o will_v consider_v of_o doctor_n downame_n he_o in_o a_o certain_a place_n though_o it_o seem_v full_a sore_n against_o his_o will_n yet_o through_o the_o force_n of_o the_o truth_n be_v compel_v acknowledge_v and_o yield_v unto_o we_o that_o 4.99_o that_o d_o down_n def._n 4.99_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n by_o right_n be_v seat_v in_o the_o whole_a church_n or_o congregation_n in_o case_n of_o necessity_n wherein_o both_o the_o succession_n of_o their_o own_o clergy_n fail_v and_o the_o help_n of_o other_o want_v the_o right_n be_v devolve_v to_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n in_o which_o word_n i_o desire_v all_o man_n to_o observe_v how_o this_o doctor_n grant_v we_o the_o cause_n in_o full_a effect_n and_o agree_v whole_o to_o our_o purpose_n for_o that_o which_o here_o he_o say_v and_o which_o necessary_o follow_v from_o these_o word_n be_v all_o that_o weâ_n desire_n wherefore_o i_o pray_v the_o christian_a reader_n to_o mark_v well_o these_o seven_o consequentes_fw-la which_o follow_v from_o these_o word_n of_o d._n downame_n and_o can_v be_v deny_v by_o any_o honest_a and_o true-hearted_a christian_a first_o in_o that_o he_o hold_v that_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n by_o right_n be_v seat_v in_o the_o particular_a congregation_n in_o case_n of_o necessity_n it_o be_v certain_a therefore_o that_o he_o must_v hold_v that_o this_o right_a and_o power_n be_v seat_v in_o the_o whole_a particular_a congregation_n by_o christ_n and_o by_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n for_o no_o person_n or_o person_n can_v at_o any_o time_n nor_o in_o any_o respect_n have_v such_o power_n by_o man_n ordinance_n it_o can_v not_o be_v either_o natural_o or_o civil_o give_v or_o receive_v wherefore_o in_o who_o soever_o that_o power_n be_v seat_v &_o at_o what_o time_n soever_o doubtless_o it_o be_v in_o they_o supernatural_o god_n by_o his_o special_a grace_n give_v it_o and_o christ_n by_o his_o holy_a ordinance_n seat_v it_o in_o they_o yea_o though_o it_o be_v in_o any_o case_n of_o necessity_n whatsoever_o for_o thus_o it_o be_v write_v â7_n write_v job_n 3._o â7_n a_o man_n can_v receive_v nothing_o except_o it_o be_v give_v he_o from_o heaven_n that_o be_v no_o dignity_n no_o authority_n no_o power_n in_o the_o church_n can_v be_v but_o from_o god_n and_o it_o be_v speak_v absolute_o touch_v all_o
be_v before_o note_v whence_o it_o be_v that_o doct._n downame_n here_o say_v true_o the_o succession_n of_o their_o own_o clergy_n fail_v and_o the_o help_n of_o other_o want_v the_o right_n be_v devolve_v to_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n if_o the_o doctor_n will_v reply_v &_o say_v that_o this_o power_n and_o right_n be_v not_o essential_o in_o the_o whole_a congregation_n always_o nor_o at_o all_o time_n but_o sometime_o only_o that_o be_v in_o the_o case_n of_o necessity_n aforesaid_a i_o answer_v than_o the_o d._n folly_n and_o want_v of_o true_a reason_n will_v be_v manifest_a to_o all_o man_n for_o what_o soever_o be_v essential_a to_o any_o thing_n at_o sometime_o be_v essential_a to_o the_o same_o always_o and_o evermore_o that_o which_o be_v essential_a once_o be_v essential_a still_o so_o that_o if_o the_o congregation_n power_n &_o right_a to_o consent_v in_o make_v of_o minister_n &_o in_o censure_n be_v essential_a at_o sometime_o as_o he_o acknowledge_v it_o be_v then_o certain_o it_o be_v essential_a therein_o at_o all_o time_n and_o evermore_o the_o truth_n hereof_o can_v never_o be_v deny_v and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o luther_n say_v if_o titus_n will_v not_o finem_fw-la luth._o the_o ministr_n eccles_n instit_fw-la propâ_n finem_fw-la the_o congregation_n may_v ordain_v minister_n to_o themselves_o and_o of_o excommunication_n zuinglius_fw-la say_v 31._o say_v artic._n 31._o non_fw-la quod_fw-la solus_fw-la episcopus_fw-la hac_fw-la facere_fw-la debeat_fw-la cuique_fw-la hoc_fw-la âââest_fw-la si_fw-la episcopus_fw-la fuerit_fw-la negligens_fw-la any_o man_n may_v do_v this_o if_o the_o bishop_n be_v negligent_a he_o mean_v any_o man_n appoint_v by_o the_o church_n may_v do_v it_o in_o which_o respect_n also_o that_o sentence_n of_o epiphanius_n that_o 75._o that_o epiph._n haereââ_n 75._o biââops_n can_v beget_v father_n to_o the_o church_n but_o presbyter_n can_v not_o be_v to_o be_v refuse_v as_o untrue_a and_o erroneous_a for_o before_o we_o have_v see_v that_o only_o the_o congregation_n do_v beget_v father_n that_o be_v make_v minister_n essential_o the_o bishop_n do_v it_o but_o instrumental_o and_o ministerial_o and_o so_o a_o presbyter_n may_v do_v it_o as_o well_o as_o he_o who_o they_o name_v a_o bishop_n yea_o any_o other_o also_o may_v do_v it_o as_o luther_n and_o zuinglius_fw-la before_o affirm_v when_o the_o church_n employ_v they_o to_o that_o usâ_n our_o two_o doctor_n before_o cite_v even_a aâ_n the_o papist_n also_o do_v hold_v strong_o with_o those_o word_n of_o 75._o of_o âaereâ_n 75._o epephanius_n to_o the_o great_a prejudice_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o their_o bare_a opinion_n &_o name_n be_v nothing_o to_o our_o clear_a and_o certain_a reason_n for_o the_o contrary_a before_o set_v down_o neither_o be_v the_o bare_a opinion_n and_o naked_a name_n of_o any_o other_o man_n whosoever_o any_o better_a worth_n seven_o ãâã_d last_o of_o all_o hence_o it_o follow_v so_o that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v deny_v that_o see_v thâ_n whole_a congregation_n do_v always_o give_v the_o call_v of_o ordinary_a minister_n essential_o therefore_o the_o whole_a congregation_n ought_v always_o of_o necessity_n tâ_n give_v their_o free_a consent_n to_o their_o minister_n at_o least_o so_o far_o forth_o that_o nonâ_n be_v impose_v on_o they_o whether_o they_o will_v or_o no._n the_o like_a also_o be_v to_o be_v saiâ_n of_o their_o power_n in_o jurisdiction_n and_o these_o point_n we_o must_v imagine_v that_o they_o be_v acknowledge_v and_o hold_v by_o d._n downame_n or_o sure_o that_o he_o ought_v to_o acknowledge_v they_o all_o see_v by_o force_n of_o true_a reason_n they_o all_o do_v follow_v from_o those_o his_o word_n which_o he_o affirm_v &_o hold_v as_o before_o i_o have_v declare_v now_o this_o be_v all_o that_o we_o profess_v touch_v the_o pleoples_n right_a tâ_n church_n government_n for_o we_o deniâ_n not_o but_o in_o the_o ordinary_a &_o peaceable_a and_o right_a state_n of_o the_o church_n when_o all_o thing_n be_v carry_v well_o the_o chief_a diâection_n &_o sway_v of_o the_o whole_a government_n belong_v to_o the_o bishop_n or_o paâtor_n the_o people_n be_v on_o their_o part_n âo_o hearken_v to_o their_o teacher_n &_o to_o follow_v their_o guide_n obedient_o &_o dutieâully_o 1.41_o d._n down_o deââ_n 1.41_o their_o power_n to_o judge_v and_o to_o provide_v otherwise_o for_o themselves_o be_v when_o they_o see_v their_o guide_n to_o fail_v which_o see_v it_o be_v his_o mind_n also_o set_v down_o in_o his_o own_o word_n before_o rehearse_v i_o have_v true_o affirm_v that_o âouching_v our_o present_a cause_n even_o this_o doctor_n agree_v with_o we_o sometime_o in_o âull_a effect_n &_o by_o good_a consequence_n of_o âeason_n from_o his_o express_a word_n though_o at_o other_o time_n he_o do_v as_o some_o report_n cicero_n say_v to_o sallust_n sallust_n sallust_n orat._n ãâã_d cicer._n ãâã_d sallust_n aliud_fw-la stans_fw-la ââââd_fw-la sedens_fw-la de_fw-fr repub_fw-la sentis_fw-la of_o the_o common_a âealth_n thou_o think_v one_o thing_n stand_v another_z sitting_z of_o christ_n visible_a church_n and_o the_o government_n thereof_o very_o our_o doctor_n do_v likewise_o chapter_n vii_o 7._o chap._n 7._o consequence_n of_o great_a importance_n follow_v upon_o the_o people_n free_a consent_n in_o their_o church_n government_n &_o inconvenience_n in_o religion_n not_o sufferable_a follow_v from_o the_o contrary_n after_o the_o forerehearsed_a witness_n for_o this_o doctrine_n we_o will_v now_o show_v certain_a clear_a and_o necessary_a consequence_n which_o follow_v from_o the_o same_o also_o some_o true_a and_o great_a inconvenience_n to_o faith_n and_o godly_a life_n and_o to_o civil_a authority_n such_o as_o be_v not_o to_o be_v tolerate_v which_o yet_o can_v be_v avoid_v where_o man_n profess_v to_o be_v christian_n embrace_v not_o this_o point_n of_o all_o fort_n i_o will_v here_o observe_v eight_o great_a and_o weighty_a consequentes_fw-la hereupon_o first_o this_o be_v receive_v as_o the_o ordinance_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n consequent_a 1._o consequent_a that_o the_o church_n government_n ought_v to_o be_v always_o with_o the_o people_n free_a consent_n it_o follow_v that_o every_o church_n be_v only_o 35._o only_o as_o be_v also_o show_v in_o the_o declaration_n pag._n 12._o 13._o 14._o 35._o one_o ordinary_a congregation_n and_o not_o any_o proper_a diocesan_n or_o provincial_n church_n or_o large_a understanding_n always_o the_o people_n free_a consent_n to_o be_v orderly_o &_o convenient_o take_v and_o practise_v so_o as_o christ_n intend_v that_o 14.40_o that_o 1._o cor._n 14.40_o every_o thing_n shall_v be_v do_v in_o his_o church_n for_o where_o the_o people_n free_a consent_n be_v orderly_a and_o convenient_o practise_v always_o in_o the_o church_n government_n there_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n can_v not_o be_v so_o large_a as_o a_o diocese_n much_o less_o as_o a_o province_n or_o nation_n and_o least_o of_o all_o so_o large_a as_o a_o universal_a church_n see_v all_o this_o people_n can_v not_o possible_o by_o any_o mean_n give_v their_o free_a consent_n in_o the_o ordinary_a church-governement_n neither_o can_v any_o person_n take_v it_o of_o all_o they_o just_o orderly_o and_o convenient_o this_o to_o say_v the_o truth_n be_v not_o possible_a for_o in_o such_o a_o state_n when_o only_o some_o main_a part_n of_o the_o church_n government_n be_v exercise_v it_o will_v be_v always_o with_o much_o defect_n and_o also_o with_o great_a disturbance_n and_o tumult_n oftentimes_o i_o say_v where_o it_o be_v extend_v so_o large_o &_o so_o wide_a &_o with_o concurrence_n of_o such_o multitude_n of_o people_n this_o be_v true_a first_o in_o very_a reason_n and_o withal_o often_o experience_n have_v show_v it_o in_o former_a time_n under_o most_o christian_a &_o careful_a prince_n after_o the_o nicen_n council_n as_o at_o alexandria_n at_o antioch_n at_o rome_n at_o constantinople_n and_o in_o infinite_a place_n mo_z a_o great_a part_n whereof_o the_o evagrius_n the_o euseâ_n socrat._n zozomeâ_n theodoret._n evagrius_n story_n do_v record_n in_o which_o church_n action_n though_o do_v with_o to_o inconvenient_a liberty_n of_o the_o people_n yet_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o people_n who_o the_o effect_n of_o those_o business_n reach_v unto_o be_v absent_a and_o so_o want_v their_o right_n &_o those_o which_o be_v present_a be_v full_a of_o confusion_n and_o tumult_n neither_o can_v it_o be_v otherwise_o but_o god_n be_v the_o god_n of_o equity_n of_o order_n and_o of_o peace_n wherefore_o this_o disorder_n can_v nor_o be_v fit_a for_o god_n church_n and_o so_o neither_o can_v a_o diocesan_n circuit_n 26.27_o râas_n for_o reform_v p._n 26.27_o or_o large_a in_o which_o this_o disorder_n will_v arise_v necessary_o if_o all_o that_o people_n together_o have_v their_o free_a consent_n in_o their_o church-governement_n which_o the_o whole_a
people_n of_o every_o church_n always_o aught_o to_o have_v by_o christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n ordinance_n as_o 3.4.5_o as_o pag._n 19_o &_o chap._n 3.4.5_o before_o we_o have_v see_v nay_o to_o come_v near_o no_o proper_a and_o perfect_a diocesan_n church_n or_o large_a ever_o do_v or_o do_v admit_v the_o people_n free_a consent_n in_o their_o ordinary_a government_n universal_o and_o always_o it_o be_v so_o &_o indeed_o it_o can_v not_o be_v otherwise_o for_o where_o each_o ordinary_a congregation_n have_v their_o free_a consent_n in_o their_o ordinary_a government_n there_o certain_o each_o congregation_n be_v a_o entire_a and_o independent_a body_n politic_a spiritual_a and_o be_v endue_v with_o power_n in_o itself_o immediate_o under_o christ_n and_o so_o every_o of_o they_o be_v true_a &_o proper_a church_n so_o that_o these_o congregation_n admit_v not_o where_o they_o be_v any_o proper_a diocesan_n church_n or_o large_a neither_o do_v the_o proper_a diocesan_n church_n or_o large_a admit_v entire_a and_o independent_a ordinary_a congregation_n which_o as_o i_o say_v have_v their_o free_a consent_n in_o their_o ordinary_a government_n they_o be_v indeed_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d such_o as_o 23.25_o as_o reas._o for_o ãâã_d form_n pag._n 23.25_o can_v stand_v together_o possible_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v likewise_o that_o which_o heretofore_o 8â_n heretofore_o ibid_fw-la pag._n 8â_n i_o have_v affirm_v and_o so_o do_v still_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n there_o be_v not_o any_o diocesan_n church_n or_o large_a to_o be_v find_v which_o point_n though_o i_o have_v in_o my_o declaration_n prove_v it_o by_o this_o and_o 6._o other_o reason_n yet_o i_o will_v here_o draw_v it_o into_o this_o syllogism_n again_o no_o church_n hold_v the_o people_n free_a consent_n in_o their_o ordinary_a government_n with_o just_a and_o decent_a order_n be_v diocesan_n or_o large_a every_o visible_a church_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n hold_v the_o people_n free_a consent_n in_o their_o ordinary_a government_n with_o just_a and_o decent_a order_n therefore_o no_o visible_a church_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v diocesan_n or_o large_a the_o first_o proposition_n be_v manifest_a of_o itself_o and_o i_o have_v show_v it_o more_o etc._n more_o pag._n 84_o 8â_n 86._o etc._n etc._n full_o before_o the_o assumption_n or_o 2._o proposition_n be_v at_o large_a prove_v &_o confirm_v in_o those_o place_n which_o be_v note_v in_o the_o margin_n before_o viz._n pag._n 19_o and_o be_v mention_v again_o particular_o pag._n 76._o to_o which_o purpose_n also_o the_o whole_a 3.4_o &_o 5._o chap._n do_v help_n where_o i_o be_o to_o add_v moreover_o that_o this_o conclusion_n be_v true_a not_o only_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n but_o also_o in_o the_o age_n follow_v a_o long_a while_n after_o that_o be_v no_o such_o diocesan_n church_n be_v find_v till_o 420._o year_n after_o christ_n yea_o till_o 680._o and_o more_o be_v pass_v which_o i_o show_v before_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o five_o chap._n as_o also_o i_o touch_v it_o in_o my_o declaration_n pag._n 24.25_o but_o let_v it_o be_v remember_v that_o here_o i_o speak_v precise_o of_o proper_a diocesan_n church_n and_o large_a there_o be_v therefore_o necessary_o a_o distinction_n to_o be_v make_v of_o diocesan_n church_n there_o be_v proper_a diocesan_n church_n and_o large_a &_o there_o be_v improper_a the_o proper_a diocesan_n church_n and_o large_a be_v where_o the_o people_n have_v no_o power_n free_o to_o consent_v in_o the_o affair_n of_o their_o ordinary_a church_n government_n the_o improper_a diocesan_n church_n and_o large_a be_v where_o although_o there_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o diocesan_n or_o large_a consociation_n of_o many_o ordinary_a congregation_n in_o spiritual_a government_n under_o one_o general_a presidencie_n or_o superiority_n yet_o the_o ordinary_a congregation_n have_v their_o free_a consent_n at_o least_o they_o have_v nothing_o by_o their_o spiritual_a governor_n impose_v on_o they_o against_o their_o will_n which_o kind_n of_o diocese_n church_n be_v due_o order_v we_o do_v not_o gainsay_v there_o be_v hereof_o also_o two_o kind_n the_o one_o be_v 15.2.3.6.7_o be_v act._n 15.2.3.6.7_o apostolical_a viz._n where_o many_o ordinary_a congregation_n consociate_a together_o in_o their_o spiritual_a government_n have_v a_o diocesan_n or_o large_a synod_n or_o presbytery_n over_o they_o for_o their_o better_a direction_n such_o the_o foreign_a reform_a church_n at_o this_o day_n do_v enjoy_v the_o other_o kind_n be_v where_o many_o ordinary_a congregation_n so_o consociate_a together_o have_v one_o person_n a_o constant_a precedent_n during_o life_n over_o they_o who_o man_n after_o the_o apostle_n call_v a_o diocesan_n bishop_n &_o some_o a_o metropolitan_a and_o such_o like_a other_o name_n albeit_o of_o these_o there_o be_v without_o question_n divers_a kind_n and_o sort_n some_o exercise_v great_a power_n and_o authority_n some_o less_o that_o be_v the_o ancient_a have_v less_o the_o late_a for_o the_o most_o part_n always_o have_v their_o power_n great_a and_o great_a 1._o ad_fw-la âvagr_n &_o in_o tit._n 1._o for_o of_o these_o jerome_n say_v most_o true_o both_o that_o their_o matoritie_n over_o the_o presbyter_n of_o congregation_n be_v by_o humane_a ordinance_n and_o also_o that_o it_o come_v in_o &_o grow_v great_a paâlatim_fw-la by_o little_a and_o little_a that_o be_v by_o degree_n albeit_o i_o say_v therefore_o that_o these_o diocesan_n bishop_n be_v of_o divers_a kind_n &_o sort_n yet_o the_o first_o of_o they_o neither_o be_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n neither_o be_v they_o immediate_o after_o the_o apostle_n contrariwise_o d._n downame_n affirm_v that_o mark_n the_o evangelist_n ordain_v in_o alexandria_n a_o diocesan_n church_n consist_v of_o many_o ordinary_a congregation_n which_o he_o think_v to_o prove_v by_o some_o word_n of_o 2.15_o of_o euseb_n 2.15_o eusebius_n who_o say_v mark_v first_o 2.124_o first_o d._n down_n def._n 2.124_o constitute_v church_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d in_o alexandria_n itself_o as_o he_o false_o translate_v it_o i_o say_v this_o he_o false_o translate_v as_o 3.25.16_o as_o 3.137_o &_o 3.25.16_o doct._n douâ_n also_o do_v before_o he_o whereupon_o the_o whole_a ground_n of_o their_o error_n do_v rest_n ââ_o def_n pag._n 17_o ââ_o which_o their_o falsification_n i_o shall_v by_o god_n help_n show_v plain_o out_o of_o eusebius_n himself_o even_o in_o this_o very_a place_n the_o preposition_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d do_v not_o here_o signify_v in_o a_o place_n as_o they_o untrue_o imagine_v but_o it_o signifi_v to_o a_o place_n and_o so_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v translate_v in_o latin_a we_o shall_v say_v ad_fw-la alexandriaâ_n ipsam_fw-la or_o usque_fw-la ad_fw-la that_o be_v to_o alexandria_n or_o unto_o alexandria_n itself_o this_o be_v eusebius_n true_a meaning_n for_o he_o will_v show_v that_o mark_n be_v the_o first_o that_o constitute_v church_n in_o the_o country_n of_o egypt_n and_o withal_o that_o he_o do_v so_o even_o unto_o the_o chief_a city_n thereof_o viz._n alexandria_n and_o this_o be_v all_o that_o he_o mean_v here_o twice_o in_o this_o very_a place_n beside_o eusebius_n use_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d in_o this_o same_o construction_n and_o sense_n both_o immediate_o before_o the_o word_n in_o question_n and_o immediate_o after_o before_o thus_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d to_o egypt_n or_o unto_o egypt_n after_o thus_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d to_o rome_n or_o unto_o rome_n not_o in_o rome_n nor_o in_o egypt_n wherefore_o so_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d signifi_v likewise_o in_o this_o place_n which_o we_o have_v in_o hand_n see_v it_o run_v in_o one_o context_v together_o with_o the_o former_a and_o be_v all_o one_o manner_n of_o phrase_n beside_o eusebius_n straight_o after_o allege_v philo_n concern_v this_o same_o people_n who_o mark_v convert_v say_v that_o he_o speak_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d of_o the_o church_n about_o in_o the_o country_n and_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d about_o alexandria_n not_o in_o alexandria_n last_o of_o all_o eusebius_n utter_v this_o as_o he_o do_v the_o next_o forego_n clause_n likewise_o with_o this_o term_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d they_o say_v or_o some_o report_n by_o which_o and_o the_o like_a term_n he_o use_v to_o relate_v uncertain_a and_o apocryphal_a thing_n yea_o sometime_o fabulous_a and_o untrue_a for_o eusebius_n be_v not_o precise_a in_o set_v down_o all_o his_o matter_n chief_o those_o which_o he_o have_v only_o upon_o rumour_n and_o report_n and_o where_o he_o seem_v to_o require_v credit_n in_o deed_n he_o be_v not_o spare_v to_o name_v his_o author_n as_o egesippus_fw-la clemens_n dionysius_n and_o such_o other_o wherefore_o divers_a way_n d._n downame_n presumptuous_a assertion_n and_o which_o he_o do_v so_o boast_v of_o that_o mark_v institute_v many_o church_n in_o alexandria_n want_v
that_o the_o church_n of_o bishop_n tun_v together_o i_o will_v not_o save_v conspire_v together_o be_v no_o other_o church_n hen_n such_o as_o the_o prophet_n name_v melignant_a fâr_o that_o which_o iâ_n beside_o the_o truth_n be_v of_o evil_a and_o god_n only_o be_v true_a and_o every_o man_n alyar_n therefore_o what_o soever_o be_v of_o god_n be_v just_a true_a and_o good_a whatsoever_o come_v of_o man_n be_v unru_v false_a and_o evil_a this_o their_o church_n be_v not_o of_o god_n it_o be_v therefore_o of_o evil_a if_o any_o desire_n more_o hereof_o let_v he_o read_v out_o conclusion_n he_o mean_v those_o article_n above_o cite_v last_o of_o all_o see_v his_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n mention_v in_o act._n 20.28_o say_v he_o archirâââ_n he_o in_o archirâââ_n ecce_fw-la gregem_fw-la ecce_fw-la speculatores_fw-la ecce_fw-la concionem_fw-la pascendam_fw-la non_fw-la regendam_fw-la ecce_fw-la concionem_fw-la non_fw-la homenis_fw-la sed_fw-la deâ_n behold_v a_o flock_n behold_v watchman_n behold_v a_o particular_a congregation_n to_o be_v feed_v not_o to_o be_v ruse_v he_o mean_v not_o to_o be_v rule_v by_o the_o watchman_n absolute_a power_n but_o with_o relation_n to_o the_o like_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o flock_n behold_v not_o man_n but_o god_n congregation_n now_o i_o desire_v the_o reader_n to_o note_v that_o zuinglius_fw-la though_o he_o speak_v indeed_o against_o popish_a bishop_n and_o synod_n in_o the_o place_n above_o cite_v yet_o he_o speak_v direct_o against_o those_o point_n in_o they_o which_o some_o protestant_a bishop_n and_o synod_n do_v stand_v upon_o and_o therefore_o thus_o far_o they_o be_v all_o togeathet_n in_o one_o &_o the_o same_o condemnation_n according_a to_o his_o doctrine_n second_o note_n that_o here_o he_o do_v plain_o condemn_v all_o imperious_a synod_n &_o representative_a church_n and_o that_o also_o with_o more_o vehement_a &_o sharp_a term_n than_o be_v use_v now_o adays_o three_o he_o affirm_v here_o the_o church_n in_o math._n 18.17_o &_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n and_o of_o ephesus_n under_o the_o apostle_n yea_o all_o church_n in_o the_o world_n at_o that_o time_n to_o be_v each_o of_o they_o but_o a_o particular_a ordinary_a congregation_n for_o here_o he_o call_v the_o same_o concio_fw-la &_o portion_n laris_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la a_o particular_a assembly_n elsewhere_o a_o parish_n as_o where_o he_o say_v a_o church_n be_v compar_fw-la be_v ad_fw-la valent_n compar_fw-la vnaquaque_fw-la paraecia_fw-la and_o ibid._n and_o ibid._n singula_fw-la paraecie_fw-la and_o 31._o and_o artic._n 31._o quam_fw-la paraeciam_fw-la vocamus_fw-la and_o 8._o and_o artic._n 8._o quo_fw-la commodè_fw-la in_o unum_fw-la locum_fw-la conveniunt_fw-la which_o meet_v convenient_o in_o one_o place_n and_o pastor_n and_o pastor_n episcopus_fw-la parochus_n plebanus_n praedicator_n &_o pastor_n that_o be_v a_o bishop_n and_o a_o parish_n minister_n he_o make_v all_o one_o four_o he_o most_o peremptory_o affirm_v that_o only_a god_n may_v institute_v his_o visible_a church_n and_o the_o form_n of_o outward_a government_n therein_o and_o that_o such_o a_o form_n of_o a_o church_n &_o government_n as_o be_v not_o institute_v by_o god_n or_o not_o find_v in_o his_o word_n be_v altogether_o unlawful_a and_o wicked_a yea_o malignant_a so_o that_o here_o it_o be_v manifest_v how_o he_o condemn_v every_o diplodophilus_n diplodophilus_n diplodophilus_n that_o be_v whosoever_o approve_v two_o way_n or_o form_n of_o church-governement_n viz._n every_o one_o who_o like_v the_o divine_a and_o apostolic_a ordinance_n where_o it_o may_v be_v have_v and_o yet_o hold_v that_o upon_o necessity_n it_o may_v be_v alter_v and_o another_o form_n may_v be_v use_v which_o d._n downame_n very_o divine-like_a 9_o divine-like_a des_fw-mi 4.104_o &_o answ_n to_o the_o pres_n pag_n 3._o 9_o maintain_v neither_o be_v he_o alone_o such_o a_o diplodophilus_n he_o have_v too_o many_o consort_n in_o this_o profane_a opinion_n with_o he_o five_o zuinglius_fw-la here_o express_o teach_v that_o the_o particular_a congregation_n be_v command_v in_o math._n 18.17_o to_o âât_n off_o the_o infect_a member_n so_o that_o he_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v christ_n very_a commandment_n not_o a_o permission_n only_o that_o the_o people_n shall_v have_v the_o power_n of_o church_n government_n at_o least_o to_o consent_v free_o therein_o and_o the_o truth_n be_v that_o the_o word_n in_o the_o text_n be_v imperative_fw-it tell_v the_o church_n etc._n etc._n wherefore_o why_o ought_v they_o not_o so_o to_o be_v take_v certain_o it_o be_v christ_n very_a commandment_n in_o deed_n and_o therefore_o never_o to_o be_v alter_v by_o any_o mean_n but_o to_o return_v to_o the_o matter_n of_o synod_n this_o man_n of_o god_n zuinglius_fw-la here_o we_o see_v reprove_v not_o so_o much_o popish_a synod_n as_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o those_o synod_n which_o be_v hold_v to_o be_v a_o representative_a church_n and_o to_o have_v power_n to_o impose_v their_o decree_n on_o the_o people_n of_o their_o circuit_n whether_o they_o will_v or_o no_o yea_o though_o the_o same_o grieve_v and_o burden_v their_o conscience_n which_o very_o thing_n our_o adversary_n at_o this_o day_n do_v hold_v likewise_o against_o us._n and_o d._n downame_n presume_v that_o he_o have_v 4._o have_v des_fw-mi 1.109_o &_o 2_o 4._o find_v such_o synod_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o zuinglius_fw-la can_v find_v 101._o find_v as_o above_o pag._n 101._o no_o where_o now_o unto_o this_o noble_a witness_n of_o josus_n christ_n i_o will_v add_v other_o mo_z consent_n in_o effect_n with_o he_o calvin_n to_o this_o purpose_n say_v thus_o â_o thus_o it._n stit_fw-la 4.9_o â_o quicquid_fw-la de_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la dicitur_fw-la id_fw-la mox_fw-la papista_fw-la ad_fw-la concilia_fw-la transferunt_fw-la quum_fw-la corum_fw-la opinion_n ecclesiam_fw-la representent_fw-fr whatsoever_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o church_n that_o present_o the_o papist_n refer_v to_o council_n because_o in_o their_o opinion_n council_n do_v represent_v the_o church_n where_o he_o note_v this_o opinion_n to_o be_v popish_a viz._n that_o a_o council_n be_v a_o church_n representative_a another_o learned_a divine_a one_o jacobus_n acontius_n condemn_v vehement_o likewise_o this_o kind_n of_o synod_n or_o council_n in_o his_o four_o book_n 4._o book_n jac._n acont_n lib_n 4._o stratagematum_fw-la satana_n at_o home_n doctor_n whitaker_n join_v with_o those_o abroad_o for_o concern_v synod_n in_o these_o day_n who_o decree_n may_v be_v impose_v on_o a_o nation_n or_o country_n he_o say_v thus_o 35_o thus_o whitak_n de_fw-fr council_z pa_z 35_o etsires_n ipsa_fw-la de_fw-la quibus_fw-la in_o concil_n deliberatur_fw-la &_o consultatur_fw-la sint_fw-la sacrae_fw-la &_o religiosae_fw-la tamen_fw-la hoc_fw-la ipsum_fw-la congregare_fw-la episcopos_fw-la est_fw-la merè_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d although_o the_o thing_n consider_v &_o consult_v of_o in_o a_o council_n be_v holy_a and_o religious_a yet_o this_o thing_n to_o assemble_v bishop_n or_o pastor_n of_o divers_a church_n together_o be_v mere_o civil_a and_o then_o consequent_o the_o impose_v of_o their_o decree_n be_v civil_a yea_o so_o such_o a_o council_n itself_o be_v civil_a that_o be_v it_o stand_v and_o have_v life_n &_o force_n by_o civil_a power_n all_o which_o we_o willing_o agree_v unto_o again_o this_o learned_a man_n write_v of_o these_o council_n thus_o 23._o thus_o pag._n 23._o concilia_fw-la si_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la necessaria_fw-la sint_fw-la christus_fw-la alicubi_fw-la precepisset_fw-la celebrari_fw-la aut_fw-la cius_fw-la saltem_fw-la apostoli_fw-la quod_fw-la tamen_fw-la nusquam_fw-la ab_fw-la illis_fw-la factam_fw-la esse_fw-la legimur_fw-la if_o council_n be_v simple_o necessary_a christ_n somewhere_o will_v have_v command_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v keep_v or_o at_o least_o his_o apostle_n will_v have_v so_o command_v which_o yet_o we_o read_v they_o do_v not_o where_o here_o he_o plain_o deny_v that_o council_n exercise_v spiritual_a jurisdiction_n and_o government_n for_o such_o he_o must_v mean_v of_o necessity_n be_v not_o at_o all_o of_o divine_a institution_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n wherein_o he_o express_o say_v as_o zuinglius_fw-la before_o say_v contrary_a to_o d._n downame_n but_o yet_o nevertheless_o i_o grant_v d._n whitaker_n in_o this_o book_n allow_v &_o approve_v council_n even_o spiritual_o exercise_v government_n if_o withal_o the_o people_n who_o it_o concern_v be_v not_o bereave_v of_o their_o free_a consent_n therein_o for_o so_o i_o understand_v he_o where_o he_o say_v 44._o say_v pag._n 44._o quod_fw-la omnes_fw-la attingit_fw-la ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la approbari_fw-la debet_fw-la that_o which_o touch_v all_o aught_o to_o be_v approve_v of_o all_o and_o so_o do_v we_o also_o affirm_v last_o doct._n bilson_n say_v 383._o say_v do_v bill_n against_o the_o semina_fw-la part_n 2._o pag_n 371._o also_o see_v he_o allege_v in_o reas._n for_o reform_v pag._n 2d_o and_o perp._n gov_n pa._n 382_o 383._o a_o general_a council_n be_v not_o the_o church_n and_o a_o
ecclesiae_fw-la forniam_fw-la quam_fw-la apostol_n constituerunt_fw-la in_fw-la quà _fw-la tamen_fw-la unicum_fw-la habemus_fw-la verae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la exemplar_n à _fw-la quo_fw-la si_fw-la quis_fw-la vel_fw-la minimùm_fw-la deflectit_fw-la abârat_fw-la i_o will_v not_o press_v you_o so_o precise_o as_o to_o call_v you_o back_o to_o that_o form_n of_o the_o church_n which_o the_o apostle_n set_v in_o which_o form_n notwithstanding_o we_o have_v the_o only_a pattern_n of_o a_o true_a church_n from_o which_o if_o any_o decline_n never_o so_o little_a he_o err_v he_o mean_v be_v will_v take_v it_o well_o at_o the_o cardinal_n hand_n if_o he_o can_v reduce_v he_o to_o the_o form_n of_o the_o church_n which_o 4.4_o which_o instit_fw-la 4.4_o the_o father_n use_v suppose_v about_o 200._o till_o 300._o year_n after_o christ_n &_o after_o for_o some_o while_n howbeit_o he_o absolute_o affirm_v that_o in_o the_o form_n which_o the_o apostle_n set_v in_o the_o scripture_n the_o only_a pattern_n of_o a_o true_a church_n be_v to_o be_v have_v and_o that_o if_o any_o decline_n never_o so_o little_a from_o it_o he_o err_v which_o be_v all_o one_o with_o that_o where_o he_o say_v extern_a 4.1.1_o extern_a instit_fw-la 4.1.1_o subsidia_fw-la quoque_fw-la deus_fw-la addidit_fw-la quò_fw-la infirmitati_fw-la nostrae_fw-la consuleret_fw-la the_o outward_a help_n and_o mean_v god_n have_v add_v also_o to_o the_o end_n that_o he_o may_v provide_v for_o our_o weakness_n if_o god_n have_v add_v they_o &_o appoint_v they_o for_o we_o what_o arrogancy_n shall_v it_o be_v for_o man_n to_o alter_v they_o and_o chief_o the_o form_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n like_o to_o these_o p._n martyr_n say_v 3.21_o say_v p._n mart._n in_o rom._n 3.21_o forma_fw-la reipublica_fw-la quandoque_fw-la variatur_fw-la quod_fw-la attinet_fw-la ad_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la non_fw-la mutat_fw-la formam_fw-la the_o form_n of_o a_o civil_a state_n sometime_o be_v change_v but_o as_o touch_v the_o church_n it_o change_v not_o her_o form_n all_o this_o be_v very_o contrary_a to_o our_o forename_a adversary_n nay_o which_o be_v to_o our_o great_a shame_n the_o very_a papist_n in_o this_o general_a point_n be_v near_o to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n than_o such_o unworthy_a protestant_n be_v for_o they_o religious_o and_o most_o strict_o do_v hold_v this_o that_o 6_o that_o saunder_n vifib_n monatch_v â_o 6_o christ_n only_o be_v the_o teacher_n and_o instituter_n of_o the_o form_n of_o his_o visible_a church_n and_o that_o no_o man_n may_v ever_o change_v it_o from_o that_o same_o which_o be_v set_v down_o in_o christ_n testament_n in_o the_o particular_a indeed_o they_o err_v in_o set_v up_o under_o the_o gospel_n a_o universal_a church_n exercise_v government_n which_o be_v not_o christ_n spouse_n but_o the_o queen_n of_o pride_n nevertheless_o in_o the_o general_a they_o hold_v clear_o the_o truth_n as_o i_o have_v show_v whereby_o they_o put_v many_o of_o we_o to_o shame_v who_o bear_v a_o name_n of_o profess_v the_o gospel_n and_o so_o much_o of_o the_o consequentes_fw-la which_o high_o touch_v the_o honour_n and_o office_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o dignity_n of_o his_o new_a testament_n there_o be_v also_o consequentes_fw-la from_o our_o adversary_n opinion_n which_o great_o touch_v ourselves_o first_o whosoever_o of_o the_o protestant_n do_v refuse_v our_o foresay_a uniform_a opinion_n of_o the_o people_n consent_n must_v of_o necessity_n hold_v two_o distinct_a form_n of_o christ_n visible_a church_n heaven_n two_o way_n to_o heaven_n and_o two_o distinct_a form_n of_o church-governement_n to_o be_v lawful_a that_o be_v both_o that_o where_o the_o people_n be_v absolute_o exclude_v &_o that_o where_o they_o be_v admit_v the_o one_o ordinary_a and_o best_a as_o they_o say_v the_o other_o extraordinary_a and_o only_a in_o case_n of_o necessity_n as_o before_o have_v be_v show_v now_o to_o hold_v two_o distinct_a &_o opposite_a form_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n &_o church-governement_n be_v direct_o all_o one_o as_o to_o hold_v two_o way_n to_o heaven_n distinct_a and_o opposite_a in_o themselves_o which_o be_v very_o scandalous_a in_o religion_n and_o that_o which_o can_v not_o stand_v with_o truth_n for_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o church-governement_n be_v plain_o the_o way_n to_o heaven_n and_o the_o outward_a mean_n which_o must_v bring_v we_o thither_o or_o else_o ordinary_o we_o can_v not_o come_v there_o that_o be_v ordinary_o faith_n repentance_n sanctification_n and_o at_o last_o glorification_n in_o heaven_n come_v only_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o god_n word_n and_o none_o can_v lawful_o administer_v but_o be_v send_v now_o in_o these_o day_n by_o the_o visible_a church_n according_a to_o their_o authority_n in_o this_o case_n give_v they_o of_o christ_n thus_o the_o only_a outward_a mean_n and_o way_n to_o heaven_n be_v christ_n visible_a church_n and_o the_o exercise_v of_o her_o authority_n in_o such_o form_n and_o manner_n as_o christ_n her_o lord_n have_v appoint_v she_o which_o be_v only_o one_o way_n it_o can_v not_o be_v two_o way_n there_o be_v only_o one_o form_n ordain_v of_o christ_n and_o so_o only_o one_o be_v true_a &_o one_o lawful_a which_o soever_o it_o be_v 78._o be_v as_o before_o also_o i_o note_v pag._n 78._o two_o way_n can_v be_v d._n dewname_n answer_v that_o there_o be_v other_o way_n which_o he_o allow_v which_o be_v 4.99_o be_v def._n 3.108_o &_o 4.99_o by_o necessity_n and_o necessity_n have_v no_o law_n nay_o himself_o be_v lawless_a god_n servant_n at_o no_o time_n be_v free_v from_o god_n law_n as_o well_o in_o necessity_n as_o in_o plenty_n in_o adversity_n no_o less_o then_o in_o prosperity_n they_o be_v so_o tie_v to_o the_o rule_n of_o his_o word_n which_o be_v always_o one_o that_o they_o profess_v it_o always_o unlawful_a for_o they_o to_o take_v up_o any_o invention_n of_o their_o own_o upon_o any_o pretence_n indeed_o in_o humane_a affair_n sometime_o necessity_n do_v excuse_v we_o fton_a follow_v man_n law_n and_o so_o the_o proverb_n be_v verify_v necessity_n have_v no_o law_n but_o in_o god_n matter_n and_o in_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v cause_n touch_v our_o soul_n no_o necessity_n nor_o prosperity_n can_v free_v we_o as_o i_o say_v from_o god_n law_n and_o ordinance_n appoint_v for_o us._n so_o far_o at_o least_o that_o we_o may_v never_o take_v up_o any_o invention_n of_o man_n which_o in_o god_n service_n be_v evermore_o the_o way_n of_o commandment_n of_o see_v my_o exposition_n of_o the_o 2._o commandment_n error_n and_o not_o of_o truth_n as_o for_o do._n dwname_n i_o remember_v the_o time_n when_o he_o be_v stout_a and_o resolut_a for_o vnica_fw-la methodus_fw-la in_o philosophy_n but_o the_o world_n be_v so_o change_v with_o he_o since_o that_o in_o divinity_n he_o be_v now_o a_o profess_a diplodophilus_n one_o that_o think_v there_o be_v two_o way_n to_o heaven_n dioplodophilus_n dioplodophilus_n two_o way_n and_o form_n of_o administer_a christ_n visible_a church_n of_o call_v the_o ministry_n of_o exercise_v holy_a censure_n which_o matter_n as_o before_o i_o show_v be_v the_o ordinary_a way_n to_o heaven_n for_o every_o soul_n the_o outward_a instrumental_a mean_n sanctify_v of_o christ_n to_o save_v his_o people_n by_o now_o he_o profess_v two_o form_n of_o administer_a they_o essential_o distinct_a and_o opposite_a the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o and_o yet_o both_o to_o be_v lawful_a which_o indeed_o be_v evidence_n enough_o that_o he_o be_v in_o error_n for_o the_o way_n of_o truth_n be_v only_o one_o as_o before_o have_v be_v note_v but_o error_n be_v manifold_a wherefore_o among_o the_o protestant_n see_v only_o we_o hold_v a_o uniform_a &_o constant_a opinion_n in_o this_o matter_n of_o christ_n visible_a church_n which_o be_v for_o the_o people_n consent_n in_o the_o ordinary_a government_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o we_o only_o have_v the_o truth_n and_o our_o adversary_n be_v in_o error_n and_o here_o withal_o this_o follow_v from_o our_o opinion_n that_o we_o only_o have_v comfortable_a assurance_n to_o our_o conscience_n man_n comfortable_a assurance_n on_o christ_n ordinance_n not_o in_o man_n which_o the_o adversary_n can_v not_o sound_o have_v we_o hold_v only_o upon_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n &_o practice_n of_o his_o apostle_n of_o which_o we_o have_v reason_n to_o be_v confident_a and_o wherein_o we_o may_v well_o have_v assurance_n for_o when_o we_o build_v the_o form_n and_o frame_v &_o whole_a administration_n of_o christ_n visible_a church_n upon_o the_o rock_n mention_v in_o the_o gospel_n math._n 16.18_o that_o be_v upon_o christ_n and_o his_o word_n alone_o who_o can_v make_v we_o to_o doubt_v but_o that_o god_n will_v crown_v his_o own_o work_n and_o bless_v his_o own_o ordinance_n and_o sanctify_v his_o own_o way_n certain_o we_o ought_v with_o all_o cheerfulnes_n to_o expect_v and_o to_o
cut_v off_o and_o excommunicate_a from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n he_o can_v not_o after_o that_o have_v any_o power_n as_o derive_v from_o they_o to_o make_v minister_n nor_o to_o do_v any_o other_o bishoplie_o act_n second_o we_o all_o know_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o very_a antichrist_n chief_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o clergy_n and_o spiritual_a government_n and_o most_o chief_o of_o all_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o pope_n from_o who_o all_o the_o rest_n as_o from_o the_o head_n do_v take_v their_o power_n and_o authority_n now_o shall_v we_o say_v that_o very_a antichrist_n can_v have_v power_n from_o christ_n to_o make_v minister_n or_o that_o we_o can_v have_v a_o lawful_a ministry_n derive_v from_o those_o who_o have_v their_o power_n only_o from_o he_o it_o can_v not_o be_v 15._o be_v 2._o cor._n 6.14_o 15._o what_o communion_n have_v light_a with_o darkness_n what_o concord_n have_v christ_n with_o belial_n and_o so_o what_o have_v christ_n to_o do_v with_o antichrist_n nothing_o at_o all_o thus_o than_o our_o conscience_n can_v have_v no_o assurance_n we_o can_v not_o have_v confidence_n in_o such_o estate_n of_o the_o ministry_n but_o certain_o christ_n true_a minister_n among_o we_o in_o england_n have_v a_o better_a original_a they_o this_o wherefore_o this_o answer_n of_o our_o state_n protestant_n must_v needs_o be_v false_a yet_o in_o this_o answer_n who_o see_v not_o how_o the_o papist_n do_v rejoice_v triumph_n and_o insult_v who_o see_v not_o how_o by_o this_o they_o be_v encourage_v strengthen_v and_o multiply_v among_o we_o exceed_o true_o it_o will_v pity_v a_o man_n heart_n to_o behold_v how_o this_o one_o point_n put_v life_n into_o thousand_o to_o stand_v up_o against_o christ_n gospel_n &_o the_o liberty_n of_o their_o country_n also_o for_o when_o they_o hear_v ourselves_o open_o to_o ascribe_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o their_o mean_n such_o a_o gift_n of_o grace_n even_o that_o which_o be_v our_o glory_n even_o the_o holy_a instrument_n of_o our_o faith_n to_o salvation_n for_o so_o be_v our_o ministry_n they_o will_v say_v if_o the_o branch_n be_v holy_a the_o root_n be_v more_o if_o the_o river_n be_v sweet_a the_o head-spring_n be_v delicious_a and_o so_o how_o can_v it_o be_v choose_v but_o the_o papist_n thus_o will_v be_v grace_v and_o get_v great_a advantage_n among_o we_o many_o here_o have_v another_o refuge_n but_o that_o also_o help_v nothing_o say_v they_o as_o popish_a baptism_n be_v so_o far_o acknowledge_v by_o we_o away_o the_o last_o refuge_n of_o our_o adversary_n take_v away_o as_o that_o with_o it_o only_o we_o be_v hold_v to_o be_v sufficient_o baptize_v &_o not_o to_o need_v baptise_v again_o when_o we_o come_v from_o they_o to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n so_o likewise_o we_o may_v acknowledge_v the_o popish_a ordination_n to_o the_o ministry_n thus_o far_o and_o yet_o nevertheless_o condemn_v their_o church_n and_o separate_v from_o they_o i_o answer_v the_o case_n be_v nothing_o like_o between_o baptism_n the_o sign_n of_o our_o initiation_n in_o christ_n and_o the_o call_v to_o the_o ministry_n in_o the_o word_n there_o be_v express_a warrant_n for_o not_o repeat_v the_o sign_n of_o our_o initiation_n in_o christ_n which_o of_o old_a be_v circumcision_n and_o baptism_n now_o be_v the_o same_o though_o minister_v by_o a_o false_a ministry_n and_o church_n as_o we_o may_v see_v in_o the_o 6.21_o the_o 2._o chron._n 30.11.18_o &_o 35.17.18_o ezâ_n 6.21_o not_o recircumcise_n of_o such_o jew_n as_o have_v receive_v that_o sign_n in_o the_o apostasy_n of_o israel_n and_o turn_v from_o thesame_a to_o the_o truth_n but_o there_o be_v no_o warrant_n at_o all_o in_o god_n word_n for_o any_o to_o retain_v the_o outward_a call_v to_o the_o ministry_n or_o to_o stand_v in_o that_o power_n and_o authority_n which_o be_v derive_v from_o such_o a_o church_n there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n can_v be_v show_v in_o all_o god_n book_n therefore_o we_o may_v not_o conclude_v the_o like_a in_o this_o matter_n of_o ordination_n to_o the_o ministry_n which_o may_v be_v do_v for_o not_o repeat_v of_o baptism_n for_o by_o god_n word_n ordination_n may_v be_v repeat_v yea_o certain_o after_o a_o ministry_n receive_v in_o christ_n true_a church_n much_o more_o after_o it_o have_v be_v receive_v in_o a_o false_a church_n so_o that_o these_o two_o ordinance_n of_o christ_n be_v nothing_o like_o in_o this_o point_n wherefore_o out_o of_o question_n ordination_n to_o the_o ministry_n as_o it_o be_v derive_v from_o antichrist_n must_v be_v whole_o revounce_v of_o every_o faithful_a man_n and_o may_v be_v as_o be_v say_v renew_v and_o repeat_v in_o christ_n true_a church_n as_o occasion_n serve_v at_o rome_n there_o be_v in_o it_o both_o a_o impiety_n and_o a_o nullity_n in_o their_o administer_a of_o baptism_n there_o be_v not_o a_o nullity_n altogether_o as_o in_o that_o correspondent_a example_n of_o israel_n in_o apostasy_n before_o allege_v it_o well_o appear_v and_o this_o be_v sufficient_a for_o this_o though_o other_o answer_n may_v be_v give_v also_o wherefore_o this_o remain_v that_o when_o we_o grant_v the_o descent_n of_o our_o ministry_n in_o england_n to_o come_v lineal_o from_o the_o church_n and_o pope_n of_o rome_n which_o we_o must_v grant_v will_v we_o will_v we_o if_o wedeny_v it_o to_o arise_v essential_o from_o the_o christian_a people_n consent_n in_o each_o congregation_n all_o the_o world_n see_v that_o we_o give_v the_o pope_n a_o main_a advantage_n against_o we_o and_o we_o put_v into_o his_o hand_n a_o strong_a engine_n to_o draw_v we_o back_o again_o unto_o he_o which_o also_o he_o effect_v daily_o upon_o many_o among_o we_o as_o woeful_a experience_n show_v in_o our_o land_n yea_o even_o upon_o some_o of_o my_o very_a friend_n and_o near_a acquaintance_n beside_o this_o there_o be_v another_o point_n of_o the_o church_n government_n unity_n the_o cause_v of_o unity_n namely_o their_o jurisdiction_n in_o compound_v schism_n in_o make_v peace_n and_o unity_n and_o consent_n among_o christian_a people_n which_o be_v ascribe_v as_o proper_a to_o diocesan_n and_o provincial_n bishop_n as_o they_o in_o england_n do_v say_v it_o be_v and_z as_o etc._n as_o def._n 3.36_o etc._n etc._n d._n downame_n with_o great_a vehemency_n defend_v certain_o true_a reason_n will_v carry_v it_o further_o it_o can_v not_o possible_o stay_v there_o this_o will_v serve_v a_o pope_n turn_n a_o great_a deal_n better_o and_o to_o such_o a_o one_o it_o belong_v in_o deed_n as_o a_o very_a true_a and_o forcible_a ground_n for_o his_o universal_a government_n over_o all_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n if_o there_o be_v any_o divine_a and_o evangelicall_n truth_n in_o it_o at_o all_o but_o there_o be_v no_o truth_n in_o it_o because_o this_o be_v no_o divine_a and_o evangelical_n way_n for_o unity_n in_o religion_n viz._n to_o constitute_v one_o visible_a head_n with_o absolute_a power_n of_o spiritual_a government_n whether_o diocesan_n or_o provincial_n or_o universal_a or_o to_o take_v from_o the_o christian_a people_n their_o free_a consent_n there_o be_v not_o in_o the_o gospel_n any_o such_o mean_n to_o unity_n it_o be_v a_o humane_a policy_n a_o carnal_a device_n it_o be_v no_o institution_n of_o christ_n jesus_n unity_n god_n write_v word_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o unity_n who_o in_o his_o word_n and_o by_o his_o word_n with_o the_o help_n of_o the_o ministry_n therein_o ordain_v provide_v sufficient_o for_o true_a peace_n and_o holy_a unity_n among_o all_o his_o people_n for_o he_o say_v 28.29_o say_v mat._n 28.29_o you_o err_v not_o know_v the_o scripture_n and_o 5.39_o and_o joh._n 5.39_o search_v the_o scripture_n for_o they_o be_v they_o which_o testify_v of_o i_o and_o 17._o and_o chap._n 14.6_o rom._n 16_o 17._o i_o be_o the_o way_n the_o truth_n and_o the_o life_n likewise_o the_o apostle_n testify_v that_o those_o be_v the_o maker_n of_o schism_n and_o division_n who_o teach_v and_o hold_v any_o thing_n beside_o the_o doctrine_n learn_v from_o the_o apostle_n so_o that_o indeed_o the_o mean_n appoint_v of_o god_n to_o make_v unity_n in_o the_o church_n be_v god_n word_n and_o not_o one_o superior_a overrule_a minister_n over_o many_o distinct_a ordinary_a congregation_n which_o the_o word_n know_v not_o but_o in_o truth_n such_o a_o one_o be_v the_o very_a proper_a cause_n of_o dissension_n and_o schism_n for_o he_o not_o willing_a to_o submit_v to_o god_n word_n by_o his_o power_n draw_v many_o with_o he_o &_o yet_o he_o can_v light_o prevail_v with_o all_o whereupon_o follow_v dissension_n and_o schism_n and_o then_o he_o with_o his_o company_n be_v the_o strong_a in_o the_o world_n may_v cry_v out_o loud_a against_o those_o few_o that_o dissent_v from_o he_o that_o they_o be_v
congregation_n there_o all_o reason_n and_o rule_n of_o religion_n will_v require_v christ_n say_a church_n to_o be_v no_o less_o than_o universal_a for_o no_o man_n can_v âhew_v that_o christ_n say_v church_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v limit_v and_o restrain_v to_o a_o diocese_n or_o province_n only_o test._n no_o limit_v of_o a_o dioces-church_n in_o the_o n._n test._n &_o that_o it_o be_v there_o forbid_a to_o be_v a_o universal_a church_n our_o adversary_n seem_v not_o to_o desire_v to_o show_v it_o for_o as_o they_o weak_o and_o slight_o affirm_v diocesan_n and_o provincial_n church_n to_o be_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n yea_o even_o against_o grammar_n so_o they_o open_o acknowledge_v that_o christ_n have_v upon_o earth_n 126.132_o earth_n see_v before_o pag_n 112._o &_o hook_n 126.132_o one_o whole_a church_n be_v but_o one_o body_n subject_a to_o government_n so_o that_o they_o yield_v the_o church_n not_o to_o be_v limit_v to_o a_o diocese_n or_o a_o province_n and_o what_o can_v the_o papist_n wish_v more_o they_o will_v never_o desire_v more_o to_o be_v yield_v they_o from_o protestant_n if_o we_o stick_v to_o our_o own_o word_n then_o to_o acknowledge_v all_o christ_n diocesan_n and_o provincial_n church_n and_o therefore_o our_o own_o in_o england_n to_o be_v but_o membrall_a church_n not_o entire_a and_o independent_a not_o endue_v with_o authority_n for_o the_o government_n of_o themselves_o immediate_o from_o christ_n but_o to_o be_v part_n and_o dependent_n of_o one_o whole_a church_n be_v one_o body_n subject_a to_o government_n for_o they_o we_o must_v by_o christ_n ordinance_n refer_v ourselves_o for_o religion_n and_o spiritual_a government_n to_o that_o one_o body_n visible_a whereof_o we_o say_v we_o be_v a_o part_n here_o a_o hundred_o 179._o hundred_o before_o pag._n 179._o difficulty_n will_v come_v upon_o us._n the_o doct._n acknowledge_v also_o 3.5_o also_o def._n 3.5_o a_o high_a senate_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n for_o the_o government_n of_o it_o and_o certain_o in_o all_o true_a reason_n there_o must_v be_v so_o for_o there_o must_v be_v by_o christ_n ordinance_n a_o correspondent_a government_n to_o the_o body_n of_o every_o church_n which_o be_v of_o christ_n master_n hooker_n true_o acknowledge_v it_o say_v there_o 3.132_o there_o hook_n 3.132_o must_v be_v a_o correspondent_a church-polirie_a to_o every_o visible_a church_n but_o doct._n downame_n will_v perhaps_o turn_v this_o to_o a_o universal_a council_n or_o synod_n if_o he_o do_v it_o be_v yet_o a_o simple_a evasion_n first_o i_o note_v 178._o note_v pag._n 113._o &_o 178._o before_o that_o there_o never_o be_v right_a universal_a synod_n how_o so_o ever_o some_o have_v be_v so_o name_v but_o if_o any_o synod_n have_v be_v hold_v for_o universal_a yet_o such_o be_v exceed_o rare_a and_o extraordinary_a in_o deed_n in_o these_o day_n not_o to_o be_v have_v but_o the_o church_n body_n be_v ordinary_a and_o continue_v always_o it_o must_v have_v a_o correspondent_a government_n as_o be_v say_v that_o be_v ordinary_a daily_a and_o continual_a and_o this_o be_v it_o which_o we_o speak_v of_o if_o the_o doctor_n will_v grant_v such_o a_o high_a senate_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n that_o be_v ordinary_a constant_a and_o daily_o exercise_v government_n to_o this_o constant_a body_n them_z what_o be_v this_o else_o but_o a_o college_n of_o cardinal_n and_o in_o every_o such_o consistory_n or_o senate_n i_o hope_v he_o will_v grant_v a_o precedent_n yea_o constant_a and_o during_o life_n not_o for_o a_o week_n or_o a_o short_a time_n and_o what_o be_v he_o but_o a_o pope_n neither_o be_v it_o material_a whether_o this_o precedent_n be_v subject_a to_o his_o senate_n or_o not_o which_o he_o idle_o cast_v in_o a_o little_a 6._o little_a pag._n 6._o after_o many_o papist_n do_v hold_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v inferior_a to_o his_o council_n and_o yet_o they_o be_v very_a papist_n and_o the_o doct._n hold_v a_o provincial_n bishop_n to_o be_v by_o divine_a ordinance_n superior_a to_o his_o provincial_n synod_n why_o then_o may_v not_o the_o universal_a bishop_n be_v superior_a likewise_o to_o his_o universal_a whether_o synod_n or_o senate_n without_o question_n he_o ought_v to_o be_v as_o well_o thus_o no_o marvaill_n if_o popish_a walsingham_n who_o confer_v with_o this_o doctor_n go_v from_o he_o worse_o than_o he_o come_v for_o hold_v such_o ground_n he_o can_v never_o make_v any_o sufficient_a defence_n against_o popery_n as_o i_o have_v say_v his_o four_o other_o reason_n of_o difference_n between_o a_o provincial_n and_o a_o universal_a bishop_n which_o he_o set_v down_o pag._n 6._o be_v as_o frivolous_a as_o that_o which_o be_v most_o first_o he_o allege_v calvins_n authority_n but_o what_o be_v that_o to_o a_o papist_n or_o to_o one_o tempt_v that_o way_n and_o yet_o he_o abuse_v calvin_n also_o for_o though_o calvin_n say_v 4.6.2_o say_v instit_fw-la 4.6.2_o there_o be_v not_o a_o like_a reason_n of_o one_o nation_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a world_n yet_o he_o mean_v this_o upon_o supposition_n that_o be_v if_o a_o nation_n have_v god_n word_n for_o their_o warrant_n as_o the_o jew_n have_v &_o if_o the_o whole_a world_n have_v not_o divine_a warrant_n as_o the_o catholic_a visible_a church_n now_o in_o deed_n have_v not_o then_o there_o be_v not_o the_o like_a reason_n between_o a_o nation_n and_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o otherwise_o very_o there_o be_v for_o a_o bishop_n to_o both_o be_v necessary_a if_o both_o have_v god_n ordinance_n for_o itself_o a_o bishop_n to_o neither_o be_v lawful_a if_o neither_o have_v god_n ordinance_n and_o this_o calvin_n himself_o plain_o signifi_v in_o sect._n 9_o say_v nihil_fw-la proficiunt_fw-la papistae_fw-la nisi_fw-la prius_fw-la ostender_n in_o it_o hoc_fw-la ministerium_fw-la vniversale_fw-la ãâã_d christo_fw-la esse_fw-la ordinatum_fw-la note_v by_o this_o that_o it_o be_v christ_n ordinance_n that_o make_v the_o difference_n between_o a_o nation_n and_o the_o whole_a world_n not_o the_o odds_n of_o the_o circuit_n but_o this_o the_o do._n whole_o suppress_v as_o also_o calvins_n second_o answer_n to_o the_o papist_n immediate_o follow_v in_o the_o former_a place_n say_v he_o est_fw-la altera_fw-la citamnum_fw-la ratio_fw-la cut_n illud_fw-la judaicum_fw-la in_fw-la imitationem_fw-la trahi_fw-la non_fw-la debeat_fw-la cease_v the_o high_a priest_n be_v a_o figure_n of_o christ_n which_o now_o cease_v summum_fw-la illum_fw-la pontificem_fw-la typum_fw-la fuisse_fw-la christi_fw-la nemo_fw-la ignorat_fw-la nune_fw-fr traslato_fw-la sacerdotio_fw-la ius_fw-la illud_fw-la trasferri_fw-la convenit_fw-la wherefore_o calvin_n reject_v the_o jew_n high_a priest_n national_a ministry_n and_o deny_v the_o use_n of_o the_o like_a now_o for_o another_o reason_n which_o the_o doct._n also_o dissemble_v so_o that_o his_o abuse_n of_o calvin_n herein_o be_v manifest_a again_o these_o last_o mention_v word_n of_o calvin_n do_v confute_v the_o do._n in_o another_o place_n where_o to_o resist_v 5._o resist_v reas._n for_o reform_v pag._n 5._o i_o 25._o i_o def._n 25._o he_o deny_v the_o jew_n high_a priest_n government_n to_o have_v be_v a_o type_n second_o the_o doct._n make_v this_o difference_n between_o a_o provincial_n and_o a_o universal_a bishop_n say_v he_o no_o mortal_a man_n be_v able_a to_o wield_v the_o government_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n it_o be_v true_a nor_o yet_o of_o a_o province_n nor_o of_o a_o diocese_n for_o the_o least_o pastor_n of_o these_o shall_v be_v a_o huge_a pluralist_n and_o nonresident_a 3_o see_v pag._n 150_o and_o reas._n for_o refor_n reas._o 3_o which_o be_v contrary_a to_o christ_n as_o before_o have_v be_v show_v the_o cause_n then_o of_o all_o this_o unablenes_n be_v the_o want_n of_o christ_n ordinance_n which_o to_o both_o be_v alike_o as_o i_o have_v say_v and_o so_o their_o unablenes_n be_v both_o alike_o otherwise_o both_o shall_v be_v able_a and_o sufficient_a for_o such_o a_o charge_n well_o enough_o the_o doctor_n three_o exception_n be_v as_o the_o last_o before_o say_v he_o it_o will_v prove_v dangerous_a and_o pernicious_a if_o that_o one_o head_n shall_v fall_v into_o error_n so_o also_o it_o be_v dangerous_a and_o pernicious_a to_o many_o thousand_o when_o a_o provincial_n bishop_n fall_v into_o error_n yet_o the_o d._n will_v not_o hold_v this_o a_o reason_n to_o prove_v he_o simple_o unlawful_a and_o therefore_o neither_o be_v it_o for_o the_o universal_a special_o see_v a_o provincial_n bishop_n can_v not_o make_v unity_n a_o universal_a may_v as_o i_o have_v say_v his_o four_o exception_n be_v likewise_o a_o very_a fancy_n viz._n that_o it_o be_v infinite_a trouble_n &_o much_o inconvenience_n to_o repair_v from_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n to_o one_o place_n there_o be_v no_o such_o matter_n if_o christ_n ordinance_n for_o it_o be_v manifest_a if_o any_o inconvenience_n may_v seem_v therein_o to_o
the_o apostle_n which_o he_o do_v very_o poor_o 1._o he_o show_v that_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n 84._o jerusalem_n pag_n 84._o exceed_v the_o proportion_n of_o one_o particular_a assembly_n ordinary_o meet_v in_o one_o place_n i_o grant_v it_o and_o have_v grant_v it_o 66._o it_o reas._o for_o ret_a pag._n 19_o 65._o 66._o heretofore_o but_o he_o can_v not_o show_v that_o this_o church_n now_o have_v in_o it_o mo_z ordinary_a set_v and_o constant_a assembly_n then_o one_o which_o be_v the_o point_n he_o add_v 87_o add_v def._n 2._o p._n 87_o it_o be_v never_o intend_v to_o be_v one_o parish_n among_o many_o but_o to_o be_v a_o mother_n church_n when_o by_o god_n blessing_n it_o shall_v beget_v other_o to_o be_v sever_v from_o it_o in_o particular_a assembly_n &_o yet_o to_o remain_v subordinate_a and_o subject_a to_o it_o as_o child_n to_o the_o mother_n the_o very_a same_o be_v affirm_v by_o 7._o by_o pag_n 7._o he_o before_o of_o all_o the_o primitive_a church_n but_o all_o this_o be_v fall_v ât_z be_v intend_v by_o the_o apostle_n that_o jerusalems_n church_n shall_v be_v one_o parish_n among_o many_o other_o and_o indeed_o to_o be_v as_o a_o mother_n church_n in_o reverence_n and_o reputation_n yet_o as_o a_o common_a sister_n with_o the_o rest_n in_o power_n &_o jurisdiction_n they_o also_o intend_v both_o in_o jerusalem_n and_o in_o every_o other_o city_n that_o the_o bishop_n and_o his_o presbytery_n shall_v be_v set_v over_o no_o more_o but_o one_o particular_a congregation_n and_o that_o as_o more_o congregation_n shall_v be_v constitute_v congregation_n every_o congregation_n ãâã_d to_o be_v a_o intââ_n church_n &_o every_o church_n buâ_n a_o congregation_n every_o one_o shall_v have_v a_o bishop_n &_o also_o a_o presbytery_n if_o it_o may_v be_v all_o this_o i_o say_v the_o apostle_n intend_v both_o in_o jerusalem_n and_o every_o where_o else_o in_o the_o world_n and_o first_o this_o my_o reason_n etc._n reason_n pag._n 208._o &_o decâââ_n pa._n 12_o 13._o 14_o 15_o etc._n etc._n before_o rehearse_v do_v sound_o prove_v also_o ignat._v epistle_n do_v plain_o show_v that_o the_o practice_n be_v so_o then_o every_o where_n yea_o in_o the_o country_n as_o well_o as_o in_o the_o city_n wheresoever_o there_o be_v any_o church_n then_o ignatius_n word_n be_v these_o trall_n these_o ignat._n ad_fw-la trall_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d without_o these_o there_o be_v no_o church_n no_o meeting_n together_o of_o the_o saint_n no_o holy_a assembly_n this_o be_v universal_o speak_v so_o again_o phila._n again_o ad_fw-la phila._n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d to_o every_o church_n for_o so_o it_o may_v well_o be_v translate_v there_o be_v one_o bishop_n with_o a_o company_n of_o persbyter_n &_o deacon_n where_o ignat._n meaning_n be_v that_o every_o where_o it_o ought_v at_o least_o so_o to_o be_v in_o which_o calvin_n likewise_o consent_v say_v 4.1.9_o say_v calv._n instit_fw-la 4.1.9_o vnaquaeque_fw-la nomen_fw-la &_o authoritatem_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la jure_fw-la obtinet_fw-la every_o one_o of_o the_o congregation_n which_o be_v disperse_v 8.15_o disperse_v and_o 8.15_o oppidatim_o &_o vicatim_fw-la in_o the_o country_n town_n and_o village_n obtain_v by_o right_a the_o name_n and_o authority_n of_o a_o church_n again_o 4.3.6_o again_o instit_fw-la 4.3.6_o quod_fw-la orbi_fw-la vniver_n so_o prestiterunt_fw-la apostoli_fw-la id_fw-la gregi_fw-la svo_fw-la debet_fw-la pastor_n unusquisque_fw-la that_o which_o the_o apostle_n be_v to_o the_o whole_a world_n the_o same_o aught_o every_o pastor_n be_v to_o his_o own_o flock_n zuinglius_fw-la also_o before_o hin_n be_v herein_o of_o all_o other_o the_o most_o clear_a and_o resolute_a i_o touch_v many_o of_o his_o place_n 104._o place_n pag._n 102._o 103._o 104._o before_o but_o here_o i_o think_v it_o fit_a to_o lay_v forth_o his_o word_n more_o full_o first_o to_o show_v that_o every_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v but_o one_o ordinary_a congregation_n and_o that_o in_o the_o n._n testament_n it_o be_v so_o he_o say_v compar_fw-la say_v zuingl_n ad_fw-la valentin_n compar_fw-la vox_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la proprie_fw-la exposita_fw-la non_fw-la aliud_fw-la quà m_fw-la cetum_fw-la vel_fw-la populi_fw-la congregationem_fw-la &_o totum_fw-la plebis_fw-la collegium_fw-la significat_fw-la vndè_fw-la singulas_fw-la paraecias_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la vocabulo_fw-la not_z be_v licet_fw-la cum_fw-la per_fw-la hoc_fw-la cetus_fw-la &_o congregati_fw-la in_o unum_fw-la populi_fw-la multitudo_fw-la intelligatur_fw-la be_v the_o word_n church_n what_o it_o be_v the_o word_n church_n proper_o expound_v signifi_v no_o other_o thing_n then_o a_o assembly_n or_o meeting_n together_o of_o the_o people_n and_o the_o whole_a gather_v together_o of_o the_o people_n whence_o by_o the_o word_n church_n we_o may_v note_v and_o signify_v every_o particular_a parish_n see_v by_o this_o word_n be_v understand_v the_o multitude_n of_o a_o assembly_n &_o of_o the_o people_n meet_v together_o in_o one_o place_n of_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n under_o the_o apostle_n he_o say_v compar_fw-la say_v ad_fw-la valent_n compar_fw-la non_fw-la equidem_fw-la negare_fw-la poteris_fw-la paulum_fw-la hoc_fw-la loco_fw-la communem_fw-la totius_fw-la populi_fw-la fidelis_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la intelligere_fw-la qui_fw-la in_o unum_fw-la collectus_fw-la scripturae_fw-la sensus_fw-la ab_fw-la alijs_fw-la expositos_fw-la attentus_fw-la percipit_fw-la populus_fw-la ergo_fw-la &_o fidelis_fw-la christianorum_fw-la oninium_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la doctores_fw-la suos_fw-la dijudicat_fw-la &_o de_fw-fr illorum_fw-la doctrina_fw-la sana_fw-la ne_fw-la sit_fw-la vel_fw-la impia_fw-la pronunciare_fw-la solet_fw-la true_o thou_o can_v not_o deny_v that_o paul_n understand_v in_o this_o place_n the_o common_a assemby_fw-mi of_o the_o whole_a faitful_a people_n which_o be_v gather_v together_o in_o one_o place_n attentive_o hear_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n expound_v by_o other_o wherefore_o the_o people_n and_o faithful_a assembly_n of_o all_o the_o christian_n judge_v of_o their_o teacher_n &_o be_v wont_a to_o pronounce_v of_o their_o doctrine_n whether_o it_o be_v find_v or_o wicked_a likewise_o elsewhere_o he_o say_v that_o the_o corinthian_a church_n pastoâ_n church_n in_o pastoâ_n erat_fw-la paraecia_fw-la be_v a_o parish_n and_o again_o likewise_o the_o ephesin_n church_n they_o be_v 103._o be_v above_o pag._n 103._o concio_fw-la a_o particular_a assembly_n and_o questionless_a as_o he_o think_v of_o these_o so_o likewise_o he_o think_v of_o jerusalens_n church_n yea_o of_o every_o true_a visible_a church_n indefinite_o of_o which_o he_o say_v explanat_fw-la say_v artic._n 8_o explanat_fw-la capitur_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la pro_fw-la peculiaribus_fw-la congregationibus_fw-la qui_fw-la ad_fw-la auditionem_fw-la verbi_fw-la ad_fw-la communionem_fw-la sacramentorum_fw-la commodè_fw-la in_o aliquem_fw-la unum_fw-la locum_fw-la conveniunt_fw-la graeci_fw-la parikiaâ_n voc_fw-la ãâã_d de_fw-fr huiusmodi_fw-la ecclesiâ_fw-la christus_fw-la loquor_fw-la math._n 18_o sic_fw-la paulus_n 1_o cor._n 1._o &_o 14._o the_o church_n be_v take_v for_o the_o particular_a congregation_n which_o to_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o word_n and_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n do_v come_v together_o commodious_o into_o one_o place_n the_o grecian_n call_v they_o parish_n of_o such_o christ_n speak_v math._n 18_o 17._o &_o paul_n 1_o cor._n 1._o &_o 14._o and_o that_o every_o of_o these_o church_n and_o parish_n shall_v have_v the_o 31._o the_o see_v before_o pag._n 30._o 31._o power_n of_o government_n &_o judge_v of_o cause_n among_o themselves_o &_o that_o we_o must_v follow_v herein_o only_o the_o scripture_n he_o show_v a_o little_a before_o that_o it_o be_v his_o meaning_n where_o express_v what_o church_n he_o speak_v of_o and_o also_o the_o very_a cause_n why_o there_o be_v such_o strife_n among_o man_n about_o the_o church_n he_o say_v a_o multis_fw-la iam_fw-la seculis_fw-la ad_fw-la nostra_fw-la usque_fw-la tempora_fw-la quae_fw-la sit_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la certamen_fw-la fuit_fw-la ortum_fw-la nimirum_fw-la ex_fw-la regnanai_fw-la cupiditate_fw-la nam_fw-la hoc_fw-la sibi_fw-la quidam_fw-la arrogarunt_fw-la ut_fw-la se_fw-la dicerent_fw-la esse_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la ut_fw-la omne_fw-la corum_fw-la manu_fw-la administrarentur_fw-la omissis_fw-la autem_fw-la hominum_fw-la commentis_fw-la quibus_fw-la quidam_fw-la hâc_fw-la in_o re_fw-la nituntur_fw-la ex_fw-la scripture_n sacris_fw-la &_o mente_fw-la spiritus_fw-la de_fw-la ecclesiâ_fw-la scribemus_fw-la quod_fw-la graeci_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la hebraei_n kahal_n vocant_fw-la latini_n concionem_fw-la there_o have_v be_v controversy_n of_o old_a even_o to_o our_o time_n what_o the_o church_n be_v which_o rise_v indeed_o from_o a_o greediness_n to_o rule_v for_o this_o some_o man_n do_v arrogat_fw-la to_o themselves_o that_o they_o say_v themselves_o be_v the_o church_n to_o the_o end_n that_o all_o thing_n may_v be_v do_v by_o their_o hand_n but_o we_o let_v go_a man_n devise_n whereon_o in_o this_o cause_n some_o do_v rest_n we_o will_v write_v of_o the_o church_n out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o mind_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o which_o the_o greek_n call_v a_o church_n the_o hebrews_n call_v a_o congregation_n the_o latiner_n a_o
by_o hear_v peter_n the_o pope_n always_o absurd_a the_o pope_n be_v not_o peter_n nor_o peter_n true_a successor_n the_o text_n show_v that_o the_o ephesian_a church_n then_o and_o every_o church_n still_o be_v a_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n to_o who_o the_o member_n be_v therefore_o ordinary_o to_o hearken_v &_o therefore_o they_o have_v the_o key_n &_o church_n government_n 18.17_o government_n mat._n 18.17_o commit_v by_o christ_n unto_o they_o but_o d._n bilson_n give_v not_o over_o so_o 9_o chap._n 9_o he_o have_v some_o general_a objection_n against_o our_o ground_n of_o scripture_n first_o 100l_n first_o pag._n 100l_n none_o can_v give_v imposition_n of_o hand_n but_o they_o that_o first_o receive_v the_o same_o they_o must_v have_v it_o themselves_o that_o will_v bestow_v it_o on_o other_o lay_v man_n have_v it_o not_o therefore_o they_o can_v not_o give_v it_o i_o answer_v the_o proposition_n fail_v under_o the_o law_n some_o of_o the_o 8.10_o the_o nomb._n 8.10_o people_n impose_v their_o hand_n on_o the_o levite_n in_o the_o gospel_n the_o 12._o apostle_n impose_v their_o hand_n in_o make_v minister_n yet_o these_o receive_v no_o imposition_n of_o hand_n themselves_o again_o we_o must_v note_v here_o two_o distinction_n and_o so_o the_o assumption_n be_v false_a first_o lay_v man_n as_o he_o call_v they_o be_v consider_v single_o or_o joint_o they_o have_v no_o ecclesiastical_a power_n single_o but_o as_o they_o be_v join_v together_o in_o a_o visible_a church_n which_o be_v a_o spiritual_a body_n politic_a and_o a_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n whether_o they_o be_v many_o or_o 18.20_o or_o mat._n 18.20_o few_o so_o even_o these_o lay_v man_n have_v receive_v the_o power_n of_o all_o the_o holy_a thing_n of_o god_n all_o god_n ordinance_n spiritual_a as_o the_o apostle_n say_v unto_o they_o 23_o they_o 1._o cor._n 3._o â2_n 23_o all_o thing_n be_v you_o and_o you_o christ_n and_o christ_n go_n the_o whole_a congregation_n be_v christ_n church_n his_o spouse_n his_o kingdom_n his_o sacred_a body_n as_o i_o 166._o i_o pag._n 164._o 165._o 166._o have_v say_v from_o whence_o by_o a_o necessary_a and_o undeniable_a consequence_n it_o follow_v that_o christ_n have_v give_v the_o power_n of_o impose_v hand_n of_o censure_n of_o sacrament_n of_o preach_v the_o word_n and_o all_o unto_o the_o congregation_n to_o be_v perform_v in_o the_o best_a order_n they_o can_v and_o so_o it_o be_v that_o our_o attestator_n 34._o attestator_n pag._n 32._o 33._o 34._o before_o have_v teach_v that_o the_o key_n be_v give_v the_o whole_a church_n yet_o consider_v second_o that_o the_o people_n thus_o have_v receive_v all_o these_o spiritual_a thing_n &_o so_o can_v give_v they_o only_o potestative_a as_o i_o may_v say_v that_o be_v they_o have_v the_o power_n of_o they_o but_o actiuè_fw-la actual_o they_o only_o can_v administer_v they_o who_o be_v the_o church_n instrument_n for_o that_o purpose_n by_o they_o assign_v thus_o tertullian_n may_v mean_v well_o say_v that_o sometime_o baptis_n sometime_o tertull._n de_fw-fr baptis_n a_o lay_v man_n may_v baptise_v namely_o if_o the_o church_n assign_v he_o in_o a_o case_n of_o necessity_n when_o a_o ordinary_a minister_n can_v not_o be_v have_v otherwise_o i_o can_v not_o justify_v his_o speech_n yea_o the_o ordinary_a exercise_n of_o prophecy_n that_o be_v prophecy_n prophecy_n interpret_n of_o scripture_n public_o in_o the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v perform_v by_o the_o 14.1.31.34_o the_o 1._o cor._n 14.1.31.34_o particular_a people_n be_v by_o the_o church_n orderly_o appoint_v thereunto_o touch_v the_o excellency_n and_o most_o profitable_a use_n of_o which_o apostolical_a exercise_n though_o now_o it_o be_v every_o where_o almost_o out_o of_o use_n i_o wish_v the_o reader_n to_o see_v ma_fw-fr enâser_n ma_fw-fr zuingl_n ad_fw-la valentin_n compar_fw-la et_fw-fr antibol_n advers._fw-la enâser_n zuinglius_fw-la and_o 14._o and_o pet._n mart._n in_o 1._o cor._n 14._o jac._n acont_n strat._n sat._n 4._o calv._n inst_z 4_o 1.12_o &_o 1_o cor._n 14._o other_o also_o further_o touchinge_v imposition_n of_o hand_n the_o d._n seem_v here_o to_o esteem_v it_o as_o the_o very_a ordination_n itself_o that_o it_o give_v the_o power_n to_o preach_v and_o baptise_v etc._n etc._n but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o there_o be_v two_o essential_a part_n of_o call_v to_o the_o ministry_n election_n and_o ordination_n the_o impose_v of_o hand_n be_v but_o a_o ceremony_n of_o put_v the_o minister_n before_o make_v into_o possession_n of_o his_o right_n and_o a_o commend_v of_o he_o to_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n though_o all_o these_o action_n belong_v to_o the_o people_n so_o as_o before_o i_o have_v show_v yet_o imposition_n of_o hand_n the_o ceremony_n may_v possible_o be_v want_v in_o a_o true_a minister_n and_o sufficient_a ordination_n may_v be_v without_o it_o yea_o true_a minister_n have_v be_v without_o it_o howbeit_o i_o suppose_v christ_n church_n offend_v in_o omit_v it_o for_o though_o it_o be_v but_o a_o ceremony_n yet_o it_o be_v apostolic_a where_o also_o that_o which_o follow_v in_o answer_v though_o to_o give_v power_n to_o preach_v and_o baptize_v be_v more_o then_o to_o preach_v and_o baptize_v yet_o the_o people_n have_v the_o power_n of_o both_o and_o though_o imposition_n of_o hand_n to_o ordination_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o sacrament_n yet_o the_o people_n have_v the_o power_n of_o it_o as_o i_o have_v show_v but_o calvin_n say_v 4.3.16_o say_v institut_fw-la 4.3.16_o only_a pastor_n do_v it_o be_v it_o so_o and_o let_v they_o only_o do_v it_o still_o for_o they_o be_v the_o fit_a instrument_n for_o that_o purpose_n which_o the_o church_n can_v assign_v viz._n when_o they_o be_v to_o be_v have_v this_o they_o be_v nothing_o material_a see_v we_o seek_v only_o that_o the_o pastor_n shall_v not_o ordain_v in_o his_o own_o name_n &_o power_n but_o in_o the_o church_n next_o after_o christ_n &_o by_o their_o free_a consent_n also_o if_o no_o pastor_n can_v be_v have_v that_o then_o some_o other_o the_o fit_a they_o have_v may_v act_v the_o church_n godly_a determination_n for_o they_o in_o their_o name_n and_o by_o their_o right_n receive_v from_o christ_n their_o head_n for_o people_n so_o join_v together_o as_o 164._o as_o pag._n 164._o before_o i_o show_v may_v essential_o be_v a_o church_n though_o they_o want_v a_o pastor_n and_o master_n calvin_n gainsay_v nothing_o of_o this_o but_o 81._o but_o see_v before_o pag._n 43._o 164_o 80._o 81._o he_o join_v in_o geneva_n to_o the_o practice_n of_o it_o and_o in_o their_o place_n luther_n and_o zuinglius_fw-la do_v also_o etc._n etc._n final_o we_o can_v but_o note_v this_o speech_n of_o doct._n bill_n more_o than_o strange_a 109._o strange_a pag._n 109._o to_o create_v minister_n by_o impose_v hand_n speech_n a_o strange_a speech_n be_v to_o give_v they_o not_o only_a power_n and_o leave_v to_o preach_v the_o word_n and_o dispense_v the_o sacrament_n but_o also_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o make_v they_o able_a to_o execute_v both_o part_n of_o their_o function_n alas_o why_o then_o do_v they_o create_v so_o many_o unable_a and_o ungracious_a minister_n in_o england_n which_o there_o do_v swarm_n why_o do_v they_o so_o if_o their_o impose_v of_o hand_n can_v give_v all_o this_o grace_n where_o also_o be_v answer_v that_o he_o will_v 110._o will_v pag._n 110._o bar_v the_o people_n from_o the_o power_n of_o excommunication_n because_o they_o have_v no_o power_n to_o administer_v the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n i_o have_v show_v how_o the_o people_n have_v power_n of_o all_o these_o and_o of_o all_o spiritual_a action_n beside_o where_o he_o say_v the_o pastor_n shall_v yield_v account_n of_o they_o to_o god_n so_o shall_v the_o church_n also_o but_o therefore_o none_o may_v compel_v the_o pastor_n what_o may_v not_o the_o magistrate_n if_o he_o see_v need_n i_o suppose_v he_o will_v retract_v that_o yea_o and_o say_v i_o the_o church_n may_v compel_v pastor_n in_o her_o manner_n viz._n when_o she_o see_v urgent_a need_n and_o yet_o proper_o he_o can_v not_o be_v compel_v his_o own_o will_n carry_v he_o vohint_a as_o non_fw-la cogitur_fw-la so_o that_o how_o soever_o the_o church_n when_o they_o see_v need_n may_v enjoin_v he_o yet_o his_o own_o will_n be_v it_o which_o he_o shall_v answer_v for_o pastor_n therefore_o shall_v indeed_o give_v account_n to_o god_n for_o their_o administer_a the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n and_o for_o their_o not_o administer_a namely_o for_o their_o part_n but_o none_o of_o they_o be_v therefore_o lord_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n nor_o absolute_a arbitrary_a disposer_n of_o they_o under_o christ_n where_o he_o add_v that_o 111._o that_o pag._n 111._o the_o moderation_n of_o the_o key_n and_o imposition_n of_o hand_n be_v at_o
first_o settle_v in_o the_o apostle_n and_o that_o this_o can_v be_v doubt_v it_o be_v not_o so_o i_o do_v both_o doubt_v it_o and_o be_o sure_a of_o the_o contrary_n christ_n settle_v the_o moderation_n of_o the_o key_n first_o in_o 18.17_o in_o mat._n 18.17_o the_o church_n his_o commission_n to_o his_o apostle_n be_v give_v 20.23_o give_v mat._n 28.19_o joh._n 20.23_o after_o not_o deprive_v the_o church_n of_o her_o former_a power_n but_o join_v the_o apostle_n &_o their_o successor_n to_o she_o as_o her_o guide_n withal_o two_o thing_n further_a be_v to_o be_v note_v 1._o doct._n bilson_n here_o make_v all_o pastor_n indifferent_o to_o have_v power_n to_o minister_n and_o deny_v sacrament_n &_o censure_n whereby_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o diocesan_n bishop_n only_o have_v not_o this_o power_n for_o say_v he_o they_o the_o ordinary_a minister_n must_v be_v trust_v with_o both_o or_o with_o neither_o 162._o neither_o pag._n 110._o 133._o 162._o 199._o 162._o you_o must_v free_v they_o from_o both_o or_o leave_v both_o unto_o they_o wherein_o also_o none_o may_v compel_v they_o or_o force_v they_o sure_o this_o quite_o overthrow_v his_o own_o practice_n and_o state_n and_o the_o whole_a order_n in_o england_n 2._o we_o may_v observe_v a_o syllogism_n in_o his_o own_o word_n here_o &_o elsewhere_o speak_v indefinite_o of_o those_o which_o have_v authority_n in_o the_o church_n he_o say_v 111._o say_v pag._n 111._o they_o must_v look_v not_o only_o what_o they_o challenge_v but_o also_o from_o who_o they_o derive_v it_o if_o from_o the_o apostle_n then_o be_v they_o their_o successor_n if_o from_o christ_n as_o colleague_n join_v with_o the_o apostle_n we_o must_v find_v that_o consociation_n in_o the_o gospel_n before_o we_o clear_v they_o from_o intrusion_n no_o man_n shall_v take_v this_o honour_n unto_o himself_o but_o he_o that_o be_v call_v of_o god_n as_o the_o apostle_n be_v if_o they_o be_v call_v by_o christ_n 5._o heb._n 5._o read_v their_o assignation_n from_o christ_n if_o they_o be_v not_o surcease_v that_o presumption_n and_o to_o do_v otherwise_o be_v to_o 15_o to_o pag._n 19_o mat._n 15_o transgress_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n for_o the_o tradition_n of_o men._n 318._o men._n against_o the_o seminar_n part_n 2._o pag._n 318._o the_o authority_n of_o patriarch_n archbishop_n mean_a bishop_n over_o other_o minister_n be_v not_o by_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n but_o long_o after_o by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n the_o custom_n of_o the_o time_n and_o the_o will_n of_o prince_n therefore_o the_o conclusion_n follow_v of_o itself_o the_o authority_n of_o patriarch_n archbishop_n mean_a bishop_n over_o minister_n be_v intrusion_n and_o presumption_n and_o transgression_n of_o god_n commandment_n at_o we_o doctor_n downame_n will_v rage_v if_o we_o shall_v conclude_v so_o but_o i_o hope_v he_o will_v take_v it_o better_o in_o do._n bilsons_n word_n his_o &_o his_o pag._n 114._o 115._o &_o father_n and_o council_n if_o they_o absolute_o exclude_v the_o people_n consent_n i_o leave_v under_o his_o own_o censure_n 22â_n censure_n here_o and_o also_o pa._n 22â_n before_o observe_v but_o i_o take_v they_o to_o mean_v otherwise_o though_o indeed_o a_o very_a great_a power_n and_o almost_o absolute_a be_v now_o exercise_v by_o many_o diocesan_n bb._n in_o excommunication_n &_o absolution_n he_o say_v cyprian_n &_o augustine_n yield_v the_o people_n a_o consent_n be_v 119._o be_v pag._n 119._o not_o for_o any_o right_n they_o have_v but_o to_o prevent_v scandal_n but_o their_o right_n both_o by_o precept_n and_o practice_v of_o the_o apostle_n be_v sufficient_o show_v before_o yet_o indeed_o it_o be_v to_o prevent_v scandal_n among_o the_o people_n also_o which_o very_o point_n be_v a_o firm_a reason_n likewise_o that_o this_o spiritual_a liberty_n of_o the_o people_n than_o be_v their_o right_n for_o first_o they_o can_v not_o be_v scandalize_v so_o oft_o fear_v to_o loose_v their_o consent_n in_o such_o affair_n so_o many_o age_n together_o and_o in_o so_o far_o distant_a country_n but_o that_o they_o be_v then_o teach_v and_o they_o learn_v from_o time_n to_o time_n that_o this_o be_v their_o right_n if_o the_o contrary_a than_o have_v be_v teach_v than_o they_o can_v not_o have_v be_v scandalize_v nor_o make_v jealous_a lest_o they_o may_v be_v wrong_v in_o this_o behalf_n as_o they_o be_v that_o they_o be_v be_v manifest_a by_o all_o monument_n of_o those_o time_n and_o by_o our_o adversary_n confession_n therefore_o the_o people_n free_a consent_n in_o their_o spiritual_a government_n be_v then_o teach_v and_o it_o be_v their_o right_n in_o the_o age_n after_o the_o apostle_n and_o true_o this_o ever_o have_v be_v be_v and_o will_v be_v scandalous_a and_o offensive_a just_o to_o a_o christian_a understanding_n congregation_n viz._n to_o have_v any_o thing_n spiritual_o and_o ecclesiastical_o force_v on_o they_o the_o case_n be_v perpetual_a but_o 18.7_o but_o mat._n 18.7_o woe_n to_o they_o by_o who_o offence_n come_v special_o to_o such_o therefore_o woe_n to_o they_o who_o yield_v not_o this_o liberty_n to_o such_o people_n perpetual_o yet_o he_o say_v 112._o say_v pag._n 112._o in_o scripture_n he_o find_v neither_o example_n of_o it_o nor_o reason_n for_o it_o who_o can_v let_v word_n if_o man_n listen_v to_o speak_v who_o can_v stay_v they_o some_o will_v shut_v their_o eye_n and_o say_v they_o see_v not_o light_v at_o noon_n against_o election_n with_o the_o people_n consent_n he_o say_v before_o 69._o before_o pag._n 69._o example_n be_v no_o precept_n as_o it_o be_v acknowledge_v example_n how_o beit_n beside_o that_o this_o be_v the_o 1.7_o the_o bellarm._n de_fw-fr cleric_n 1.7_o very_a jesuit_n shift_n he_o himself_o confute_v all_o these_o evasion_n though_o they_o be_v his_o own_o first_o yield_v that_o 373._o that_o perp._n gov_n pag._n 373._o the_o apostle_n teach_v the_o church_n by_o their_o example_n then_o testify_v thus_o 49._o thus_o pag_n 49._o this_o prerogative_n to_o be_v best_a acquaint_v with_o the_o will_n &_o meaning_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o to_o have_v their_o mouth_n and_o pen_n direct_v and_o guide_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n into_o all_o truth_n aswell_o of_o doctrine_n as_o of_o discipline_n be_v proper_a to_o the_o apostle_n again_o 43._o again_o pag._n 43._o they_o set_v a_o order_n among_o christian_n in_o all_o thing_n needful_a for_o the_o government_n continuance_n peace_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o 106._o and_o pag._n 106._o the_o scripture_n once_o write_v suffice_v all_o age_n for_o instruction_n and_o here_o i_o beseech_v the_o christian_a reader_n of_o all_o degree_n that_o they_o take_v i_o not_o amiss_o to_o which_o some_o man_n humour_n be_v to_o prone_a viz._n where_o in_o a_o other_o place_n i_o have_v say_v the_o particular_a congregation_n of_o england_n be_v true_a church_n 6._o church_n declarââ_n pag._n 6._o accidental_o my_o meaning_n be_v that_o as_o those_o particular_a congregation_n have_v in_o they_o godly_a and_o holy_a christian_n consociate_v together_o to_o serve_v god_n so_o far_o as_o they_o see_v agreeable_o to_o his_o word_n so_o they_o be_v in_o right_a from_o christ_n essential_o true_a church_n of_o god_n and_o be_v so_o to_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o we_o and_o in_o public_a not_o to_o be_v absolute_o separate_v from_o but_o in_o respect_n as_o these_o congregation_n be_v part_n of_o proper_a diocesan_n and_o provincial_n church_n so_o they_o be_v true_a church_n of_o christ_n accidental_o accident_n in_o respect_n of_o they_o it_o be_v a_o accident_n for_o proper_a diocesan_n and_o provincial_n church_n be_v not_o in_o the_o n._n testam_fw-la have_v in_o they_o by_o accident_n the_o true_a essential_a form_n of_o christ_n visible_a church_n see_v also_o this_o form_n be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o constitution_n &_o form_n of_o the_o other_o as_o â _o heretofore_o i_o note_v 23._o note_v reas._o for_o ref_o pag._n 23._o &_o by_o compare_v their_o divers_a definition_n in_o 318._o in_o pag_n 200._o &_o 318._o this_o treatise_n it_o will_v most_o plain_o appear_v and_o so_o these_o two_o divers_a respect_n &_o acknowledgemente_n as_o i_o conceive_v may_v well_o b_v yield_v to_o the_o particular_a congregation_n now_o in_o england_n neither_o do_v i_o see_v any_o just_a exception_n against_o it_o in_o vain_a also_o do_v doct._n downe_n upbraid_v we_o that_o 4.81_o that_o def._n 4.81_o we_o seek_v to_o overturn_v aswell_o those_o church_n where_o the_o geneva_n discipline_n be_v establish_v as_o we_o that_o 1.10_o that_o def._n 1.10_o we_o agree_v with_o no_o reform_a church_n in_o the_o world_n that_o 47._o that_o pag._n 38._o 47._o nonâ_n be_v of_o our_o mind_n but_o brownist_n and_o such_o like_a he_o make_v the_o browniste_n happy_a man_n can_v he_o reproove_v they_o if_o they_o follow_v zuinglius_fw-la
the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n ecclesia_fw-la pa._n 109._o 209._o 210._o 211._o 308._o french_a liturgy_n with_o us._n pag._n 50._o genevian_n discipline_n with_o us._n pag._n 49._o gift_n no_o call_n of_o a_o minister_n pag._n 162._o gualther_n with_o us._n pag._n 37._o 38._o 39_o 40._o h._n the_o world_n hate_v our_o profession_n and_o why_o pa._n 17._o 18._o helvetian_a confession_n with_o us._n pag._n 49._o i._o james_n no_o proper_a bishop_n pag._n 238._o 239._o the_o jewish_a church_n government_n differ_v substantial_o from_o the_o christian_a pag._n 158._o 317._o the_o form_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n government_n be_v cease_v pag._n 184._o 185._o 279._o junius_n with_o us._n pag._n 43._o 44._o 45._o julianus_n of_o alexandria_n the_o first_o diocesan_n bishop_n and_o yet_o but_o a_o titular_a diocesan_n pag._n 92._o k._n christ_n kingdom_n commissive_a pag._n 145._o l._n lord_n and_o lordship_n unlawful_a for_o the_o ministry_n pag._n 118._o a_o spiritual_a lord_n who_o pag._n 118._o christ_n only_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o spiritual_a lord_n p._n 121._o luther_n with_o us._n pag._n 31._o 32._o etc._n etc._n and_o lutheran_n pag._n 51._o 52._o m._n p._n martyr_n with_o us._n pag._n 34._o 35._o 150._o 193._o the_o civil_a magistrate_n advance_v by_o our_o profession_n pag._n 18._o 20._o 115._o 137._o 313._o 315._o every_o metropolitan_a not_o a_o diocesan_n pa._n 254._o metropolitan_n in_o place_n not_o in_o office_n pag._n 231._o etc._n etc._n 235._o 213._o outward_a mean_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o namely_o christ_n pag._n 150._o 152._o 154._o 155._o 194_o 195._o 269._o they_o who_o make_v minister_n must_v have_v divine_a authority_n to_o do_v it_o pa._n 163._o 74._o 75._o 194._o 147._o musculus_fw-la for_o us._n pag._n 36._o n._n we_o desiâe_v thing_n necessary_a pag._n 18._o 19_o 193._o the_o grievous_a hurt_n by_o nonresident_n pag._n 129_o to_o mislike_v pluralist_n and_o nonresident_n be_v curious_a position_n with_o our_o adversary_n p._n 132._o p._n the_o palatine_a catechism_n with_o us._n pag._n 51._o who_o cause_n papist_n to_o increase_n in_o england_n pa._n 183._o 186._o papist_n more_o sound_v in_o the_o general_a opinion_n of_o the_o church_n than_o some_o protestants_n p._n 150._o 180_o a_o parish_n in_o our_o reason_n what_o it_o be_v pag._n 201._o 202._o 209._o a_o church_n no_o more_o but_o a_o parish_n pag._n 30._o 103._o 104._o 108._o 214._o see_v ecclesia_fw-la partial_a who_o be_v pagt_fw-ge 301._o in_o church_n government_n the_o people_n consent_n be_v apostolical_a pag._n 68_o 69._o evident_a scripture_n for_o the_o people_n consent_n in_o church_n censure_n pag._n 279._o 140._o 281._o 282._o likewise_o in_o make_v of_o minister_n pag._n 70._o 164_o 165._o 291._o etc._n etc._n power_n in_o the_o people_n administration_n in_o their_o guide_n pag._n 33._o 42._o 298._o 278._o 82._o 83._o what_o manner_n of_o people_n pag._n 17._o great_a good_a come_v to_o religion_n by_o grant_v the_o people_n consent_n in_o church_n government_n p._n 130_o the_o papacy_n not_o to_o be_v overthrow_v but_o by_o hold_v the_o people_n free_a consent_n p._n 18._o 156._o 157._o etc._n etc._n our_o main_a question_n be_v about_o the_o people_n free_a consent_n in_o church_n government_n pag._n 10._o 16._o the_o people_n necessary_a freedom_n power_n &_o right_a in_o church_n gov_fw-mi what_o and_o how_o much_o ordinary_o pag._n 18._o 22._o 48._o 61._o 73._o 82._o 83._o 278._o piscator_fw-la for_o us._n pag._n 46._o oââ_n profession_n give_v good_a satisfaction_n chief_o to_o the_o magistrate_n p._n 19_o 20._o 191._o 313._o 315_o in_o reason_v we_o must_v always_o speak_v proper_o pag._n 240._o some_o protestant_n opinion_n hold_v changeablenes_n in_o the_o church_n form_n and_o government_n not_o without_o impiety_n pag._n 133._o 141._o r._n rebaptise_v refute_v pag._n 172._o reordayn_v lawful_a and_o fit_a pag._n 173._o to_o receive_v our_o ministry_n derivative_o and_o successive_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n a_o miserable_a answer_n pag._n 170._o 173._o s._n who_o be_v schismatik_n pag._n 138._o 176._o the_o separation_n how_o they_o err_v pag._n 249._o 280._o sole_a government_n pag._n 252._o succession_n a_o popish_a reason_n pag._n 238._o the_o archb._n with_o we_o spiritual_o sapreme_a pa._n 119._o synod_n some_o lawful_a apostolic_a &_o necessary_a 116._o 117._o 179._o some_z not_o apostolic_a nor_o lewfull_a p._n 31._o 48._o 100_o etc._n etc._n 111._o etc._n etc._n 117._o 178._o a_o synod_n absolute_a induce_v a_o pope_n p._n 105._o 110._o 111._o etc._n etc._n 179._o t._n tertullian_n prove_v not_o a_o diocesan_n church_n or_o bishop_n pag._n 233._o tilenus_n for_o us._n pag._n 43._o 164._o 166._o timothy_n and_o titus_n no_o proper_a bishop_n pag._n 241._o 264._o toleration_n of_o we_o not_o unmeet_a e._n pag._n 137._o 193._o 194._o 195._o 318._o v._o viret_n for_o us._n pa._n 28._o 29._o no_o unity_n by_o diocesan_n or_o provincial_n church_n and_o bishop_n pag._n 174._o 176._o 188._o god_n write_v word_n the_o true_a cause_n of_o unity_n pa._n 175._o 176._o after_o god_n word_n the_o magistrate_n help_v be_v the_o chief_a cause_n of_o unity_n pag._n 177._o 315._o the_o hurtful_a error_n of_o some_o protest_v ant_n grant_v one_o universal_a visible_a church_n under_o the_o gospel_n pag._n 112._o 181._o 182._o 189._o 190._o a_o universal_a church_n visible_a induce_v a_o pope_n pag._n 112._o etc._n etc._n 181_o etc._n etc._n 187._o 189._o to_o deny_v the_o people_n consent_n in_o church_n government_n to_o be_v a_o divine_a ordinance_n bring_v in_o a_o universal_a church_n visible_a pag._n 157._o 180._o 189._o and_o by_o a_o likely_a consequence_n will_v set_v the_o pope_n above_o the_o king_n pag._n 191._o 192._o universality_n a_o popish_a reason_n pag._n 221._o 222._o 223._o some_o universal_a error_n pag._n 233._o w._n d._n whitaker_n for_o us._n pag._n 47._o 106._o 107._o z._n zuinglius_fw-la for_o us._n pag._n 29._o 30._o 214._o 215._o 216._o
and_o who_o faith_n we_o follow_v therein_o who_o i_o put_v first_o namely_o for_o their_o singular_a perspicuity_n and_o resolutnes_n in_o it_o then_o i_o will_v rehearse_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o most_o ancient_a time_n after_o the_o apostle_n after_o that_o i_o will_v remember_v our_o very_a adversary_n consent_v with_o we_o herein_o sometime_o then_o i_o will_v show_v some_o certain_a &_o firm_a consequence_n which_o follow_v from_o this_o ground_n necessary_o also_o some_o true_a &_o great_a inconvenience_n in_o reâecting_v this_o doctrine_n moreover_o i_o will_v answer_v some_o of_o the_o adversary_n chief_a objection_n note_v also_o brief_o their_o immodest_a and_o unchristian_a reproach_n against_o this_o evangelicall_n truth_n and_o final_o add_v a_o brief_a advertisement_n touch_v this_o cause_n we_o will_v commit_v the_o whole_a consideration_n thereof_o to_o the_o upright_o heart_a and_o discreet_a christian_a reader_n chap._n iii_o the_o testimony_n of_o many_o particular_a late_a writer_n of_o bless_a memory_n make_v for_o we_o in_o this_o matter_n begin_v therefore_o with_o the_o new_a writer_n i_o judge_v it_o meet_v and_o convenient_a to_o allege_v in_o the_o foremost_a place_n the_o resolut_a determination_n of_o master_n beza_n beza_n beza_n because_o he_o of_o all_o other_o be_v think_v by_o some_o unadvised_a person_n to_o be_v most_o against_o we_o in_o this_o point_n now_o he_o dispute_v this_o question_n at_o large_a in_o his_o epist_n 8â_n set_v down_o this_o conclusion_n populo_fw-la invito_fw-la nihil_fw-la obtrudatur_fw-la let_v nothing_o be_v impose_v on_o the_o people_n or_o congregation_n aghast_a their_o will_n then_o the_o which_o very_o we_o desire_v no_o more_o this_o be_v all_o in_o substance_n that_o we_o seek_v in_o our_o assertion_n again_o unless_o it_o be_v so_o the_o church-governement_n either_o be_v a_o monarchy_n or_o a_o very_a oligarchie_n but_o master_n beza_n express_o condemn_v both_o these_o and_o the_o late_a namely_o on_o math._n ca._n 18.17_o wherefore_o howsoever_o master_n beza_n interprete_v some_o thing_n otherwise_o then_o we_o do_v &_o use_v some_o time_n other_o phrase_n than_o we_o perhaps_o do_v think_v so_o fit_a or_o so_o frequent_o to_o be_v use_v yet_o touch_v this_o point_n in_o question_n he_o agree_v whole_o with_o we_o in_o substance_n and_o in_o effect_n for_o let_v this_o which_o he_o in_o these_o word_n set_v down_o be_v yield_v unto_o we_o they_o we_o be_v satisfy_v for_o the_o substance_n of_o church-governement_n to_o which_o purpose_n master_n beza_n say_v also_o in_o confess_v 5.35_o the_o apostle_n intend_v in_o the_o church_n which_o they_o plant_v that_o no_o pastor_n shall_v be_v obtrude_v on_o a_o flock_n against_o their_o will_n yet_o moreover_o i_o pray_v the_o reader_n to_o note_v that_o even_o he_o also_o strong_o maintain_v this_o right_a of_o the_o people_n in_o the_o affair_n of_o their_o soul_n many_o time_n in_o more_o free_a and_o large_a term_n as_o where_o he_o say_v 5.34_o say_v confess_v 5.34_o i_o find_v not_o where_o in_o any_o christian_a church_n build_v up_o that_o any_o be_v promote_v either_o to_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n or_o deaconship_n or_o eldership_n any_o other_o way_n then_o by_o a_o public_a and_o free_a election_n and_o 35._o and_o sect_n 35._o i_o repeat_v again_o that_o which_o i_o say_v before_o it_o be_v never_o receive_v in_o christian_a church_n establish_v that_o any_o shall_v be_v admit_v to_o a_o ecclesiastscall_n function_n but_o be_v free_o and_o lawful_o choose_v of_o that_o church_n which_o it_o concern_v again_o ibid._n again_o ibid._n pastor_n be_v not_o to_o be_v choose_v without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n also_o ibid._n also_o ibid._n they_o whosoever_o they_o be_v bring_v tyranny_n into_o the_o church_n if_o they_o call_v any_o man_n to_o a_o public_a function_n at_o their_o own_o will_n the_o consent_n of_o the_o multitude_n be_v neglect_v again_o ibid._n again_o ibid._n presbyter_n be_v choose_v by_o the_o voice_n at_o least_o by_o the_o allowance_n of_o the_o whole_a assembly_n upon_o the_o act._n 14.23_o he_o say_v commentar_n see_v oecumen_n in_o hunc_fw-la loc_fw-la also_o badei_n commentar_n the_o force_n of_o this_o word_n chirotonein_a be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o we_o way_n know_v paul_n and_o barnabas_n do_v nothing_o by_o their_o private_a will_n neither_o exercise_v any_o tyranny_n in_o the_o church_n he_o mean_v that_o they_o here_o make_v minister_n by_o the_o people_n voice_n or_o free_a consent_n &_o not_o otherwise_o and_o upon_o 1._o time_n 5.22_o all_o the_o authority_n of_o make_v minister_n be_v not_o in_o timothy_n alone_o but_o election_n be_v make_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n than_o the_o precedent_n of_o the_o assembly_n do_v consecrate_v he_o by_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n and_o on_o 2._o cor._n 2.8_o by_o the_o public_a consent_n of_o the_o church_n declare_v that_o you_o embrace_v that_o penitent_a sinner_n again_o as_o a_o brother_n even_o as_o by_o the_o public_a judgement_n of_o the_o church_n he_o be_v cast_v out_o in_o all_o the_o which_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o see_v master_n bezaes_n mind_n and_o resolution_n in_o this_o question_n to_o be_v clear_o with_o us._n as_o for_o that_o which_o d._n downame_n 81._o downame_n defence_n 4._o pag._n 81._o object_v out_o of_o he_o where_o he_o call_v one_o morellius_n 6.23_o morellius_n deâgrad_n ministr_n 6.23_o fanatical_a because_o he_o plead_v in_o like_a manner_n for_o the_o popular_a government_n the_o d._n abuse_v beza_n and_o we_o all_o morellius_n plead_v for_o the_o popular_a government_n in_o far_o unlike_o manner_n he_o seek_v in_o church_n perfect_o establish_v to_o bring_v all_o thing_n in_o particular_a and_o ordinary_o to_o the_o people_n hear_v examine_v judge_a and_o voice-giving_a but_o neither_o beza_n nor_o we_o intend_v so_o we_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o ordinary_a sway_n of_o all_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n ought_v to_o be_v in_o the_o true_a bishop_n or_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o we_o affirm_v that_o right_a well_o so_o it_o may_v be_v although_o never_o any_o thing_n be_v impose_v on_o the_o church_n by_o he_o against_o their_o will_n which_o thing_n d._n downame_n himself_o also_o acknowledge_v may_v be_v and_o 21_o and_o def._n 4._o p._n 21_o be_v heretofore_o in_o a_o state_n of_o the_o church_n 420._o church_n rather_o about_o 420._o about_o 400._o year_n after_o christ_n which_o he_o seem_v to_o allow_v of_o save_v that_o he_o cunning_o falsify_v the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n which_o there_o he_o mention_v to_o wit_n in_o say_v the_o assent_n or_o connivance_n of_o the_o people_n where_o the_o council_n say_v 22._o say_v council_n carth._n 4._o can._n 22._o the_o assent_n and_o connivance_n but_o to_o proceed_v by_o this_o before_o allege_v all_o man_n may_v see_v may_v bezaes_n judgement_n in_o this_o cause_n to_o be_v as_o i_o say_v clear_o with_o us._n and_o so_o much_o concern_v he_o in_o the_o second_o place_n we_o will_v consider_v master_n calvin_n calvin_n 2._o calvin_n a_o pastor_n and_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n of_o geneva_n before_o mai._n beza_n he_o also_o every_o where_n in_o all_o his_o writing_n be_v a_o most_o earnest_a patron_n of_o this_o point_n which_o here_o we_o profess_v i_o will_v note_v certain_a of_o his_o sentence_n to_o this_o purpose_n say_v he_o 4.5.15_o he_o instit_fw-la 4.5.15_o est_fw-la haec_fw-la ex_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la legitima_fw-la ministri_fw-la vocatio_fw-la uhi_fw-la ex_fw-la populi_fw-la consensu_fw-la &_o approbatione_fw-la creant_fw-la qui_fw-la visi_fw-la suerint_fw-la idonei_fw-la preesse_fw-la autem_fw-la electioni_fw-la debent_fw-la alij_fw-la pastor_n nequid_fw-la per_fw-la levitatem_fw-la vel_fw-la per_fw-la malae_fw-la studia_fw-la vet_z per_fw-la tumultum_fw-la à _fw-la multitudine_fw-la peccetur_fw-la this_o be_v the_o lawful_a call_n of_o a_o minister_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n where_o they_o which_o seem_v fit_a be_v create_v by_o the_o consent_n and_o approbation_n of_o the_o people_n indeed_o other_o pastor_n ought_v to_o moderate_v and_o order_v the_o election_n lest_o the_o multitude_n shall_v offend_v through_o lightue_n or_o ill_a affection_n or_o tumult_n and_o a_o little_a before_o videmus_fw-la ipsum_fw-la paulum_fw-la ex_fw-la populi_fw-la suffragijs_fw-la episcopos_fw-la creare_fw-la solitum_fw-la we_o see_v that_o paul_n himself_o be_v wont_a to_o create_v bishop_n by_o the_o voice_n give_v of_o the_o people_n again_o falluntur_fw-la qui_fw-la putant_fw-la vel_fw-la timotheum_n ephesi_n vei_fw-la titum_fw-la in_o creta_n regnum_fw-la exercuisse_fw-la ut_fw-la svo_fw-la uterque_fw-la arbiârio_fw-la omne_fw-la disponeret_fw-la praefuerunt_fw-la enim_fw-la tantum_fw-la ut_fw-la bonis_fw-la &_o salutaribus_fw-la consilijs_fw-la popule_n praeirent_fw-la non_fw-la ut_fw-la soli_fw-la exclusis_fw-la alijs_fw-la onnibus_fw-la agerent_fw-la quod_fw-la placerent_fw-la they_o be_v deceive_v who_o think_v either_o that_o timothy_n at_o ephesus_n or_o titus_n in_o crete_n do_v
practice_v a_o kingdom_n that_o either_o of_o they_o dispose_v all_o at_o their_o own_o will_n only_o they_o be_v over_o the_o people_n in_o go_v before_o they_o with_o good_a and_o wholesome_a countail_v not_o that_o they_o alone_o do_v what_o please_v they_o exclude_v all_o the_o rest_n and_o present_o he_o show_v they_o do_v no_o more_o but_o crave_v the_o voice_n &_o moderate_v the_o people_n in_o choose_v and_o affirm_v that_o this_o be_v commune_fw-la ius_fw-la &_o libertas_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la the_o common_a right_n and_o liberty_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o not_o to_o be_v diminish_v and_o in_o another_o place_n he_o say_v 5.2_o say_v cap._n 5.2_o etiamsi_fw-la nihil_fw-la aliud_fw-la mali_fw-la foret_fw-la quitamen_fw-la ho_o excusare_fw-la poterunt_fw-la quod_fw-la it_o a_o spoliaverint_fw-la svo_fw-la jure_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la although_o there_o be_v no_o other_o evil_n yet_o how_o can_v they_o excuse_v this_o that_o they_o have_v so_o spoil_v the_o church_n of_o her_o right_n and_o 3_o and_o sect._n 3_o est_fw-la impia_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la spoliatio_fw-la etc._n etc._n it_o be_v a_o wicked_a rob_n or_o spoil_v of_o the_o church_n so_o often_o as_o a_o bishop_n be_v put_v upon_o any_o people_n who_o they_o have_v not_o desire_v or_o at_o least_o have_v not_o approve_a with_o a_o free_a voice_n and_o it_o it_o be_v a_o lie_n that_o they_o say_v this_o be_v a_o remedy_n against_o the_o people_n tumult_n they_o have_v other_o way_n either_o to_o prevent_v these_o fault_n or_o to_o correct_v they_o be_v commit_v but_o to_o say_v the_o truth_n when_o the_o people_n begin_v to_o be_v somewhat_o too_o negligent_a in_o hold_v their_o election_n &_o do_v give_v over_o this_o care_n to_o the_o presbyter_n as_o a_o thing_n not_o so_o beseem_v then selve_o they_o the_o pres_n byter_n abuse_v this_o occasion_n to_o take_v to_o then selve_o a_o tyranny_n which_o afterward_o they_o confirm_v with_o canon_n and_o upon_o the_o act_n thus_o he_o write_v â_o write_v in_o act._n 3._o â_o est_fw-la tyranicum_fw-la etc._n etc._n it_o be_v tyrannical_a if_o any_o one_o man_n make_v minister_n at_o his_o will_n therefore_o this_o be_v the_o lawful_a way_n that_o they_o be_v choose_v by_o common_a voyâââ_n who_o be_v to_o exercise_v any_o public_a office_n in_o the_o church_n and_o this_o be_v the_o mean_a between_o tyranââe_n and_o confuse_a liberty_n that_o nothing_o in_o deed_n may_v be_v do_v without_o the_o consent_n and_o allowance_n of_o the_o people_n and_o yet_o the_o pastor_n shall_v moderate_v they_o etc._n etc._n likewise_o rouch_v ecclesiastical_a censure_n and_o judgement_n in_o general_a say_v he_o 4.11.6_o he_o instit_fw-la 4.11.6_o contra_fw-la ius_fw-la &_o fas_fw-la quod_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la datum_fw-la erat_fw-la sibi_fw-la uni_fw-la vendicavit_fw-la episcopus_fw-la the_o bishop_n against_o right_n and_o equity_n have_v take_v to_o himself_o alone_o that_o which_o be_v give_v to_o the_o church_n and_o fuit_fw-la facinus_fw-la aimis_fw-la improbum_fw-la etc._n etc._n it_o be_v to_o wicked_a a_o fact_n that_o one_o man_n in_o translate_n to_o himself_o the_o common_a power_n make_v way_n for_o tyrannous_a lust_n and_o take_v away_o that_o which_o be_v the_o church_n owâe_n and_o suppress_v the_o eldership_n ordain_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n a_o game_n animadvertendum_fw-la quod_fw-la paulus_n quam_fw-la vis_fw-la apostolus_fw-la forei_fw-la non_fw-la pro_fw-la sva_fw-la libidine_fw-la excommunicavit_fw-la solus_fw-la sed_fw-la consilium_fw-la cum_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la participate_v ut_fw-la communi_fw-la authoritate_fw-la res_fw-la agate_n ur_fw-la it_o be_v to_o be_v mark_v that_o paul_n though_o a_o apostle_n yet_o he_o do_v not_o excommuni_fw-la be_v alone_o after_o his_o own_o will_v but_o do_v participate_v the_o matter_n with_o the_o church_n that_o it_o may_v be_v doââ_n by_o common_a authorttie_n thus_o plain_o do_v calvin_n maintain_v the_o people_n free_a consent_n in_o the_o church_n government_n always_o to_o these_o we_o will_v add_v master_n viret_n viret_n 3._o viret_n a_o rare_a light_n of_o the_o gospel_n a_o pillar_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o partner_n with_o may_v farell_n in_o plant_v the_o church_n of_o geneva_n before_o calvin_n come_v there_o 20._o there_o dialog_n 20._o the_o church_n say_v he_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o government_n which_o jesus_n christ_n institute_v be_v a_o holy_a and_o free_a commonalty_n which_o for_o the_o same_o cause_n be_v call_v a_o communion_n of_o saint_n to_o the_o which_o general_o and_o not_o to_o any_o one_o person_n particular_o jesus_n christ_n give_v the_o whole_a power_n &_o authority_n to_o edification_n and_o not_o to_o destruction_n quest_n but_o if_o you_o so_o take_v it_o there_o seem_v to_o i_o no_o order_n at_o all_o but_o rather_o great_a confusion_n answer_n that_o follow_v not_o from_o that_o which_o i_o say_v for_o first_o the_o church_n be_v not_o headless_a have_v jesus_n christ_n for_o a_o head_n moreover_o although_o the_o power_n and_o authority_n be_v give_v to_o the_o whole_a commonalty_n of_o the_o faithful_a as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o democraty_n yet_o nothing_o let_v but_o the_o church_n shall_v choose_v by_o her_o common_a consent_n out_o of_o the_o body_n of_o this_o community_n certain_a man_n to_o have_v the_o special_a charge_n of_o exercise_v and_o administer_a the_o public_a office_n which_o be_v ordain_v of_o god_n etc._n etc._n question_n your_o meaning_n then_o be_v that_o all_o the_o authority_n and_o power_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n general_o be_v give_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o therefore_o that_o it_o pertain_v to_o the_o same_o according_a to_o god_n word_n to_o choose_v they_o who_o she_o know_v most_o worthy_a to_o exercise_v the_o public_a office_n etc._n etc._n answer_v all_o that_o time_n wherein_o the_o church_n be_v right_o govern_v according_a to_o god_n word_n and_o not_o oppress_v with_o tyranny_n she_o use_v that_o order_n always_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v more_o than_o necessary_a that_o she_o shall_v always_o keep_v she_o right_v her_o power_n &_o authority_n which_o she_o receyve_v of_o god_n etc._n etc._n question_n and_o if_o they_o which_o execute_v special_a charge_n in_o the_o church_n do_v tolerate_v one_o another_o in_o ill_o do_v &_o themselves_o do_v give_v matter_n of_o scandal_n &_o scatter_v have_v not_o they_o the_o whole_a church_n together_o power_n to_o correct_v they_o and_o to_o procure_v remedit_n to_o such_o evil_n answer_n see_v the_o power_n whereof_o we_o speak_v be_v by_o christ_n jesus_n give_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n who_o can_v take_v it_o from_o they_o can_v they_o to_o who_o the_o church_n itself_o have_v give_v it_o no_o true_o unless_o they_o be_v tyrant_n etc._n etc._n and_o again_o 21._o again_o dialog_n 21._o the_o minister_n ought_v not_o to_o give_v to_o then selve_o alone_o the_o power_n which_o god_n give_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n unless_o so_o as_o they_o execute_v their_o office_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n and_o after_o that_o her_o judgement_n have_v go_v before_o this_o be_v well_o to_o be_v note_v that_o injury_n be_v do_v to_o none_o &_o that_o the_o minister_n exercise_v not_o tyranny_n in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o the_o government_n serve_v not_o their_o affection_n thus_o plain_o master_n viret_n from_o these_o let_v we_o ascend_v to_o the_o very_a first_o worthies_z who_o have_v bring_v we_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o this_o latter_a age_n zuinglius_fw-la and_o luther_n zuinglius_fw-la say_v thus_o explanat_fw-la thus_o zuinglius_fw-la aruc_fw-la 31._o explanat_fw-la quid_fw-la audio_fw-la what_o do_v i_o hear_v can_v a_o bishop_n alone_o excommunicate_a i_o think_v it_o have_v be_v give_v to_o the_o church_n christ_n say_v tell_v the_o church_n do_v the_o bishop_n or_o abbot_n signify_v the_o church_n excommunication_n be_v not_o one_o man_n part_n whosoever_o it_o be_v but_o it_o be_v thâ_n office_n of_o the_o church_n none_o therefore_o can_v excommunicate_v but_o that_o church_n in_o whâ_n a_o ãâã_d dwell_v who_o offend_v by_o his_o sin_n the_o right_a of_o pronounce_v against_o he_o be_v in_o tâe_v church_n and_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n it_o remain_v then_o that_o christ_n command_v that_o the_o sinner_n be_v show_v to_o the_o church_n which_o weâ_n call_v a_o parish_n in_o another_o place_n likewise_o ãâã_d likewise_o ad_fw-la valentiuâm_fw-la compa_n ãâã_d excommunicatio_fw-la non_fw-la in_o episeoporum_fw-la in_fw-la synodo_fw-la congregatorum_fw-la sed_fw-la in_fw-la untuscutusque_fw-la paroeciae_fw-la potestate_fw-la &_o arbitrio_fw-la sita_fw-la est_fw-la euâusâ_n ãâã_d est_fw-la impudentius_fw-la peccantem_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la communione_fw-la excludere_fw-la sâ_n christ_n veroa_n quae_fw-la math._n 18._o habentur_fw-la penitùs_fw-la inspiciamus_fw-la hune_v demum_fw-la excmmunicatum_fw-la esse_fw-la deprehendere_fw-la licebit_fw-la quem_fw-la communis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la in_o qua_fw-la quis_fw-la habitat_fw-la consânsus_fw-la exclusit_fw-la excommunication_n be_v not_o in_o the_o bishop_n gather_v together_o
or_o to_o timothy_n for_o he_o will_v not_o that_o they_o shall_v do_v any_o thing_n by_o their_o private_a authorâtie_n but_o he_o command_v they_o to_o take_v care_n that_o worthy_a and_o fit_a minister_n be_v ordain_v accord_v to_o the_o office_n of_o guide_n and_o overseer_n neither_o be_v it_o likely_a that_o more_o be_v grant_v to_o they_o then_o to_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o who_o determine_v nothing_o in_o this_o cause_n at_o any_o time_n without_o the_o church_n cousaill_n or_o witbout_o take_v the_o church_n advise_v for_o a_o little_a after_o they_o both_o choose_v deacon_n public_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o church_n and_o paul_n with_o barnabas_n be_v read_v to_o have_v ordain_v presbyter_n throughout_o every_o church_n gather_v the_o voice_n of_o every_o man_n act_n 6_o &_o 3.4_o arguitur_fw-la exemple_n hoc_fw-la corruptissimus_fw-la idemque_fw-la perniciosissimus_fw-la ministros_fw-la eligend_n mos_fw-la quem_fw-la tam_fw-la seculis_fw-la aliquot_fw-la hâc_fw-la in_o causa_fw-la imperâum_fw-la obtinuisse_fw-la constat_fw-la quofit_n ut_fw-la non_fw-la raro_fw-la uâus_fw-fr aliquis_fw-la in_o pluribus_fw-la ecclesijs_fw-la privata_fw-la authoritate_fw-la ministros_fw-la &_o eligat_fw-la &_o ordinet_n quaete_fw-la potissimum_fw-la ab_fw-la abbatibus_fw-la episcopis_fw-la &_o prapositis_fw-la peccaiur_fw-fr nec_fw-la meitùs_fw-la rem_fw-la administrant_fw-la nonnulli_fw-la inter_fw-la eos_fw-la qui_fw-la evangelij_fw-la nomine_fw-la gloriantur_fw-la &_o ecclesiarum_fw-la reformatores_fw-la baberi_fw-la volunt_fw-la dum_fw-la enim_fw-la isis_fw-la malè_fw-la usurpata_fw-la possessione_n monachos_fw-la &_o episcopos_fw-la ut_fw-la par_fw-fr est_fw-la eijeiunt_fw-la ecclesijstamen_fw-la libertatem_fw-la illorum_fw-la tyrannide_fw-la ereptam_fw-la non_fw-la restituunt_fw-la sed_fw-la pro_fw-la suâ_n arbitrio_fw-la administrant_fw-la quae_fw-la olim_fw-la ab_fw-la episcopis_fw-la &_o monachis_fw-la administrari_fw-la solebant_fw-la quod_fw-la malum_fw-la nisi_fw-la brevi_fw-la reprimatur_fw-la &_o simoniâm_n &_o exitialem_fw-la omnis_fw-la ecclesiasticae_fw-la disciplina_fw-la confusionem_fw-la nobis_fw-la pariet_fw-la atque_fw-la omne_fw-la boâ_n romans_z pontificibus_fw-la debetur_fw-la etc._n etc._n maximè_fw-la calisto_n secundo_fw-la ex_fw-la quo_fw-la tempore_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la libertas_fw-la ceu_fw-la lethali_fw-la morbo_fw-la contabescens_fw-la tandem_fw-la in_o universum_fw-la evanuit_fw-la quam_fw-la quicunque_fw-la restitutam_fw-la volunt_fw-la sive_fw-la illi_fw-la verbi_fw-la ministri_fw-la sint_fw-la sive_fw-la magistratus_fw-la huc_fw-la incumbendum_fw-la sibi_fw-la esse_fw-la sciant_fw-la ut_fw-la vetus_fw-la ministrorum_fw-la eligendorum_fw-la consuetudo_fw-la in_o ducatur_fw-la by_o this_o example_n be_v reprove_v that_o most_o corrupt_a &_o also_o most_o pernicious_a manner_n of_o choose_v minister_n which_o it_o be_v manifest_a have_v get_v dominion_n &_o lordly_a rule_n in_o this_o affair_n now_o these_o certain_a age_n whereby_o it_o be_v that_o not_o seldom_o one_o both_o choose_v and_o ordain_v minister_n in_o many_o church_n by_o his_o private_a authority_n wherein_o chieflic_a the_o abbot_n etc._n as_o in_o england_n etc._n etc._n bishop_n and_o ruler_n offend_v neither_o do_v divers_a other_o among_o those_o that_o glory_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o will_v be_v count_v reformer_n of_o church_n order_v this_o matter_n better_o for_o while_o they_o put_v forth_o the_o monk_n &_o bishop_n as_o it_o be_v meet_v they_o shall_v out_o of_o their_o possession_n wicked_o usurp_v yet_o the_o liberty_n which_o they_o take_v away_o from_o their_o tyranny_n they_o restore_v not_o to_o the_o church_n but_o administer_v those_o thing_n at_o their_o own_o will_n which_o in_o time_n past_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v administer_v by_o the_o bishop_n and_o monk_n which_o evil_a unless_o it_o be_v short_o repress_v it_o will_v bring_v forth_o among_o we_o both_o simony_n and_o also_o a_o deadly_a confusion_n of_o all_o church_n dââciplice_n and_o all_o this_o we_o have_v from_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n etc._n etc._n chief_o from_o calistus_n the_o second_o fron_n which_o time_n the_o church_n liberty_n as_o it_o be_v languish_v with_o a_o deadly_a sickness_n at_o last_o vanish_v away_o whole_o which_o whosoever_o do_v desire_v that_o it_o may_v be_v restore_v whether_o they_o be_v minister_n or_o magistrate_n let_v they_o know_v they_o must_v labour_v for_o this_o that_o the_o old_a custom_n of_o choose_v minister_n be_v bring_v in_o again_o vrsimus_n 11._o vrsimus_n unto_o these_o we_o will_v add_v vrsinus_n who_o teach_v thus_o math._n 18.17_o if_o he_o refuse_v to_o hear_v the_o church_n 1589_o church_n catech._n pa._n 799.800_o print_a at_o oxfor_n an._n 1589_o let_v he_o be_v unto_o thou_o as_o a_o heathen_a &_o a_o publican_n in_o these_o word_n christ_n express_o command_v all_o whosoever_o be_v after_o this_o sort_n admonish_v by_o the_o church_n will_v not_o repent_v to_o be_v by_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o the_o church_n excommunicate_v until_o they_o repent_v and_o whosoever_o be_v excommunicate_v they_o again_o profess_v and_o show_v in_o their_o action_n amendment_n be_v altogether_o in_o lake_n sort_n receive_v into_o the_o church_n as_o they_o be_v exile_v from_o it_o namely_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o elder_n by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o denunciation_n whereby_o one_o be_v excommunicate_v be_v not_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n but_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n and_o be_v do_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n because_o this_o commandment_n be_v give_v by_o christ_n unto_o the_o church_n for_o he_o say_v express_o tell_v the_o church_n 5.22_o 12._o danaus_n in_o 1_o tim._n 5.22_o here_o also_o danaus_n be_v worthy_a to_o be_v remember_v he_o say_v approbatio_fw-la eligendi_fw-la ministri_fw-la ad_fw-la plebem_fw-la &_o totum_fw-la populum_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la sanè_fw-la pertinet_fw-la the_o approbation_n of_o the_o minister_n to_o be_v choose_v pertain_v true_o to_o the_o whole_a people_n of_o the_o church_n again_o plebem_fw-la non_fw-la esse_fw-la ab_fw-la ordinationibâ_n vocandorum_fw-la &_o preficiendorum_fw-la muneribu_fw-la ecclesiasticis_fw-la excludândam_fw-la demonstant_a example_n veteris_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o the_o people_n âught_v not_o to_o be_v exclude_v from_o the_o ordination_n of_o minister_n the_o â_z of_o the_o old_a church_n do_v demonstrat_fw-la in_o which_o without_o doubt_n the_o election_n by_o voice_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v use_v as_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o be_v show_v in_o act_n 6._o &_o 14._o therefore_o they_o do_v perfidious_o deprive_v the_o church_n of_o her_o right_n perfidy_n perfidy_n who_o thrust_v a_o pastor_n on_o a_o people_n without_o their_o knowledge_n and_o consent_n for_o they_o do_v the_o church_n the_o great_a injury_n when_o they_o spoil_v she_o of_o her_o judgement_n and_o voice_n give_v rob_v sacrilege_n or_o church_n rob_v who_o therefore_o be_v true_o to_o be_v call_v sacrilegious_a or_o church-robber_n neither_o indeed_o be_v he_o a_o lawful_a pastor_n which_o be_v over_o a_o flock_n be_v ignorant_a of_o his_o come_n or_o against_o their_o will_n or_o not_o consent_v which_o present_o after_o he_o stick_v not_o to_o apply_v to_o the_o calling_n of_o the_o minister_n in_o england_n say_v exit_fw-la his_fw-la omnibus_fw-la apparet_fw-la quam_fw-la nulla_fw-la sit_fw-la vel_fw-la non_fw-la legitima_fw-la corum_fw-la verbi_fw-la ministrorum_fw-la vocatio_fw-la etc._n etc._n by_o all_o this_o it_o appear_v how_o that_o call_n of_o minister_n be_v none_o or_o not_o lawful_a which_o be_v make_v by_o the_o authority_n letter_n commandment_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o king_n alone_o or_o queen_n or_o the_o patron_n or_o bishop_n or_o archbishop_n etc._n etc._n veluti_fw-la in_o mediâ_fw-la angliâ_n as_o it_o be_v use_v in_o england_n id_fw-la quod_fw-la dolendum_fw-la est_fw-la which_o i_o speak_v with_o grief_n moreover_o concern_v excommunication_n he_o say_v 1._o say_v in_o vers_fw-la 1._o hac_fw-la iurisdictio_fw-la est_fw-la totuâ_fw-la quidem_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la ratione_fw-la potestatis_fw-la prepositotum_fw-la autem_fw-la ratione_fw-la exercitij_fw-la &_o adminisirationis_fw-la this_o jurisdiction_n be_v the_o whole_a church_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o power_n thereof_o but_o it_o belonge_v to_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n in_o respect_n âf_a administer_a it_o namely_o populo_fw-la assentiente_fw-la with_o the_o people_n consent_n as_o he_o add_v a_o âittle_a after_o and_o again_o executioni_fw-la puâlica_fw-la censura_fw-la intervenire_fw-la debet_fw-la notitia_fw-la &_o conâensus_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la the_o knowledge_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v in_o the_o execution_n of_o the_o public_a censure_n tilenus_n 13._o tilenus_n neither_o shall_v tilenus_n testimony_n be_v unremembered_a who_o answer_v the_o coânt_n laul_n that_o require_v he_o to_o show_v what_o call_v calvin_n have_v say_v 3_o say_v respon_n ad_fw-la come_v lavallium_n quest_n 3_o the_o people_n of_o geneva_n profess_v the_o gospel_n do_v first_o call_v farel_n to_o be_v their_o pastor_n &_o then_o he_o &_o they_o call_v calvin_n to_o be_v likewise_o apply_v cyprian_n sentence_n thereunto_o who_o avouch_v 14._o avouch_v epist_n
14._o that_o the_o people_n most_o of_o all_o have_v power_n to_o choose_v worthy_a minister_n and_o to_o refuse_v their_o unworthy_a one_o after_o which_o he_o show_v that_o the_o other_o church_n elsewhere_a profess_v the_o gospel_n &_o refuse_v popery_n do_v likewise_o they_o who_o have_v a_o call_n from_o the_o church_n of_o râme_n renounce_v it_o rest_v on_o that_o which_o they_o have_v according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o gospel_n junius_n 14._o junius_n also_o junius_n say_v 3.1_o say_v ecclesiastie_a 3.1_o simplicissimam_fw-la quidem_fw-la probatissimamque_fw-la eligendi_fw-la &_o vocandi_fw-la viam_fw-la illam_fw-la esse_fw-la constat_fw-la ex_fw-la scripturae_fw-la sacrae_fw-la testimonijs_fw-la quam_fw-la apostoli_fw-la in_o ecclesijs_fw-la tenuerunt_fw-la olim_fw-la &_o prisca_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la aliquamdiu_fw-la eos_fw-la imitata_fw-la observavit_fw-la eligebat_fw-la tota_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la ex_fw-la presbyterio_n &_o populo_fw-la seu_fw-la plebe_fw-la constitutum_fw-la equis_fw-la &_o communihus_fw-la suffragijs_fw-la haec_fw-la iusta_fw-la electionis_fw-la ratio_fw-la it_o be_v manifest_a that_o that_o way_n of_o choose_v and_o call_v minister_n be_v most_o simple_a and_o most_o approve_a by_o the_o testimony_n of_o holy_a scripture_n which_o the_o apostle_n in_o old_a time_n do_v keep_v in_o the_o church_n and_o the_o ancient_a church_n sometime_o imitate_v they_o do_v observe_v the_o whole_a church_n do_v choose_v that_o be_v the_o body_n consist_v of_o the_o eldership_n and_o people_n or_o common_a sort_n by_o equal_a &_o common_a voice_n this_o be_v the_o just_a manner_n of_o choose_v minister_n afterward_o he_o say_v this_o the_o old_a church_n do_v observe_v very_o long_o doneo_fw-la res_fw-la coeperunt_fw-la ut_fw-la fit_n humanitus_fw-la in_fw-la peius_fw-la ruere_fw-la atque_fw-la retrò_fw-la sublapsa_fw-la referri_fw-la until_o as_o through_o man_n corruption_n it_o come_v to_o passs_v thing_n begin_v to_o grow_v worse_o and_o to_o run_v to_o ruin_v and_o after_o that_o corruption_n in_o the_o church_n government_n be_v come_v in_o yet_o say_v he_o id_fw-la semper_fw-la obtinuit_fw-la ut_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la actioni_fw-la toti_fw-la interesset_fw-la camque_fw-la prasentiâ_fw-la suâ_fw-la haberet_fw-la raetam_fw-la that_o always_o be_v in_o force_n that_o the_o church_n be_v present_a at_o the_o whole_a action_n and_o ratify_v it_o with_o their_o presence_n but_o neither_o this_o in_o england_n be_v see_v any_o where_o neither_o will_v be_v allow_v also_o junius_n say_v where_o the_o church_n at_o any_o time_n do_v no_o more_o but_o ratify_v matter_n by_o their_o presence_n only_o the_o guidât_n ought_v to_o certify_v the_o church_n that_o if_o they_o can_v themselves_o take_v care_n for_o &_o do_v their_o own_o affair_n non_fw-la fore_fw-la penââââlâum_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la seniorumve_fw-la coetum_fw-la ut_fw-la ãâã_d siâi_fw-la cum_fw-la damno_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la iniuriae_fw-la &_o ignominâ_fw-la arroget_fw-la it_o shall_v not_o be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o any_o assembly_n of_o bishop_n or_o elder_n to_o arrogat_fw-la so_o much_o to_o themselves_o with_o the_o church_n damage_n injury_n and_o shame_n where_o he_o profess_v that_o this_o be_v the_o church_n âs_v damage_n injury_n &_o shame_n if_o be_v understanding_n christian_n they_o be_v only_o present_a at_o the_o choose_v and_o ordain_v of_o their_o minister_n if_o they_o do_v not_o also_o themselves_o choose_v or_o at_o least_o free_o &_o express_o consent_v to_o the_o choose_v and_o ordain_v of_o they_o after_o note_v the_o tyranny_n which_o be_v in_o this_o behalf_n under_o the_o pope_n he_o say_v jam_fw-la de_fw-la populo_fw-la quem_fw-la christus_fw-la redemit_fw-la svo_fw-la sanguine_fw-la &_o ecclesiam_fw-la sibi_fw-la ex_fw-la eo_fw-la compararet_fw-la verbum_fw-la nullum_fw-la now_o of_o the_o people_n there_o be_v not_o one_o word_n who_o christ_n redeem_v with_o his_o blood_n that_o they_o may_v be_v his_o church_n and_o he_o add_v hinc_fw-la illa_fw-la barbary_n hinc_fw-la colluvy_n selelerum_fw-la omnium_fw-la hinc_fw-la illa_fw-la fraudum_fw-la &_o nundinationun_fw-la sentina_fw-la exundavit_fw-la hence_o come_v that_o barbarous_a ignorance_n in_o those_o time_n that_o heap_n of_o all_o sin_n that_o sink_v of_o deceit_n and_o sell_v of_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n then_o speak_v of_o some_o church_n &_o magistrate_n who_o have_v worthy_o free_v themselves_o from_o the_o pope_n yet_o he_o leave_v this_o foul_a blot_n upon_o they_o ius_n illud_fw-la eccesiasticum_n institutionis_fw-la &_o ordimationis_fw-la restitut_o non_fw-la curant_fw-la ecclesijs_fw-la they_o care_v not_o to_o restore_v to_o the_o church_n this_o right_a of_o they_o viz_o of_o make_v &_o ordain_v of_o minister_n final_o he_o answece_v some_o objection_n at_o nescit_fw-la populus_fw-la dixerit_fw-la quispiam_fw-la doceatur_fw-la &_o sciet_fw-la at_o nescit_fw-la uti_fw-la imo_fw-la nesciet_fw-la unquam_fw-la siture_fw-fr svo_fw-la non_fw-la utatur_fw-la unquam_fw-la at_o factiosus_fw-la est_fw-la plerumque_fw-la &_o in_o diversas_fw-la part_n studiaque_fw-la scinditur_fw-la revocetur_fw-la adpacen_n monitis_fw-la salutaribus_fw-la &_o compescatur_fw-la authoritate_fw-la verbt_n virorumque_fw-la bonorum_fw-la officijs_fw-la ut_fw-la conciliatis_fw-la &_o compositis_fw-la animus_fw-la faciant_fw-la quod_fw-la svi_fw-la turis_fw-la est_fw-la but_o some_o will_v say_v the_o people_n be_v ignorant_a of_o their_o duty_n and_o right_a herein_o let_v they_o be_v teach_v and_o they_o will_v understand_v it_o but_o they_o know_v not_o how_o to_o use_v this_o their_o right_n they_o will_v not_o know_v it_o ever_o if_o they_o use_v it_o never_o but_o they_o be_v factious_a often_o and_o be_v divide_v into_o part_n let_v they_o be_v reduce_v to_o peace_n by_o wholesome_a counsel_n and_o let_v they_o be_v rule_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o word_n and_o the_o endeavour_n of_o good_a man_n that_o their_o mind_n be_v order_v they_o may_v do_v that_o which_o be_v their_o right_n to_o do_v piscator_fw-la 15._o piscator_fw-la about_o excommunication_n piscator_fw-la say_v cor._n say_v observe_v ex_fw-la â_o cap._n 1._o cor._n excommunication_n ought_v to_o be_v do_v by_o the_o church_n or_o by_o the_o presbytery_n judge_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n where_o all_o man_n may_v see_v his_o meaning_n to_o be_v this_o viz._n that_o the_o presbytery_n may_v excommunicate_a howbeit_o always_o with_o the_o church_n free_a consent_n for_o so_o he_o signify_v by_o these_o word_n judge_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n it_o can_v not_o be_v that_o he_o shall_v mean_v that_o they_o may_v excommunicate_v by_o their_o own_o power_n and_o right_v only_o or_o whether_o the_o church_n will_v or_o no._n after_o the_o same_o manner_n also_o i_o doubt_v not_o some_o other_o do_v speak_v concern_v the_o make_v king_n of_o minister_n who_o sense_n and_o meaning_n be_v to_o be_v take_v altogether_o to_o that_o purpose_n likewise_o in_o the_o church_n âamâ_n that_o be_v execute_v the_o church_n authority_n and_o power_n and_o do_v that_o which_o they_o do_v with_o their_o free_a conâent_n and_o approbation_n chemniciââ_n 16._o chemniciââ_n chemnicius_n a_o man_n most_o famous_a &_o of_o âare_a learning_n among_o the_o follower_n of_o luther_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n yet_o in_o our_o cause_n he_o say_v thus_o 228._o thus_o exam._n part_n pag._n 226._o 227._o 228._o non_fw-la sine_fw-la consensu_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la paulus_n &_o barâabas_n invitis_fw-la obtruserunt_fw-la presbyteros_fw-la paul_n and_o barnabas_n do_v not_o thrust_v minister_n on_o the_o church_n be_v unwilling_a or_o without_o their_o consent_n and_o exempla_fw-la aposiolica_n bistoria_fw-la ââare_n oftendunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o example_n of_o the_o apostle_n story_n do_v clear_o show_v that_o election_n or_o vocation_n do_v belong_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o haec_fw-la est_fw-la apostolicae_fw-la primitiva_fw-la &_o veteââ_n eccesia_n sententia_fw-la de_fw-la legitima_fw-la electione_n &_o vocatione_n ministrorum_fw-la etc._n etc._n this_o be_v the_o judgement_n and_o way_n of_o the_o apostolic_a primitive_a and_o ancient_a church_n concern_v the_o lawful_a election_n and_o call_v of_o minister_n which_o judgement_n and_o way_n have_v place_n in_o those_o church_n which_o be_v constitute_v according_a to_o god_n word_n and_o he_o add_v in_o our_o church_n it_o be_v so_o meaning_n in_o those_o that_o follow_v luther_n whitakeâ_n 17._o whitakeâ_n neither_o can_v i_o forget_v that_o among_o âur_n own_o countryman_n d._n whitakerâeacheth_v âeacheth_z thus_o 44._o thus_o de_fw-fr coneââ_n pag._n 44._o quod_fw-la omnes_fw-la attingit_fw-la ab_fw-la ââââbus_fw-la approbari_fw-la debet_fw-la that_o which_o touch_v all_o 4._o chap._n 4._o aught_o to_o be_v approve_v of_o all_o mean_v that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v obtrude_v upon_o any_o people_n in_o ecclesiastical_a and_o spiritual_a regiment_n no_o not_o by_o synod_n except_o the_o people_n consent_n to_o it_o and_o this_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n hitherto_o avouch_v very_o many_o other_o worthy_a divine_n both_o among_o we_o &_o abroad_o do_v maintain_v likewise_o but_o i_o forbear_v to_o nominate_v any_o mo_z know_v that_o to_o who_o any_o thing_n will_v be_v enough_o
these_o be_v enough_o chap._n four_o the_o public_a consent_n of_o many_o late_a yet_o excellent_a church_n herein_o with_o us._n nevertheless_o yet_o i_o will_v not_o spare_v to_o add_v hereunto_o also_o certain_a public_a voice_n of_o most_o famous_a church_n the_o consestion_n of_o the_o bohemian_a church_n have_v these_o word_n ãâã_d word_n bohemia_n confess_v cap._n ãâã_d animarun_n curatoribus_fw-la &_o singulis_fw-la ecclesiasticis_fw-la communitatibus_fw-la sive_fw-la parvae_fw-la sint_fw-la sive_fw-la magna_fw-la clave_n concreditae_fw-la sunt_fw-la &_o concessae_fw-la sic_fw-la dominus_fw-la dixit_fw-la ecclesiâs_fw-la amen_o dico_fw-la vobis_fw-la quacunque_fw-la ligaveritis_fw-la in_o teria_fw-la erunt_fw-la ligata_fw-la in_o coelo_fw-la &_o quaecunque_fw-la solveritis_fw-la in_o terra_fw-la erunt_fw-la soluta_fw-la in_o coelo_fw-la et_fw-la mox_fw-la nam_fw-la ubi_fw-la duo_fw-la aut_fw-la tres_fw-la congregati_fw-la fuerint_fw-la in_o nomine_fw-la meo_fw-la ibi_fw-la in_o medio_fw-la eorum_fw-la sum_fw-la the_o key_n that_o be_v ecclesiastical_a government_n be_v give_v in_o trust_n and_o grant_v to_o the_o pastor_n and_o to_o every_o ecclesiastical_a commonalty_n that_o be_v ordinary_a congregation_n whether_o they_o be_v small_a or_o great_a so_o the_o lord_n say_v to_o the_o church_n very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o whatsoever_o you_o bind_v in_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n and_o whatsoever_o you_o lose_v in_o earth_n shalbâ_n loose_v in_o heaven_n and_o by_o and_o by_o for_o where_o two_o or_o three_o shall_v be_v gather_v together_o in_o my_o name_n there_o be_o i_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o the_o helvetian_a confession_n say_v 17._o helvet_n confess_v .._o prior_n artic_a 17._o quae_fw-la cùm_fw-la vera_fw-la dei_fw-la electio_fw-la sit_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la suffragio_fw-la &_o sacerdotis_fw-la manuum_fw-la impositione_n rectè_fw-la comprobatur_fw-la which_o when_o it_o be_v god_n true_a election_n it_o be_v right_o approve_a by_o the_o church_n voycegiving_a and_o the_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n of_o the_o minister_n the_o genevian_n liturgy_n set_v down_o express_o geneu._n geneu._n the_o people_n consent_n to_o be_v necessary_a both_o in_o their_o call_v of_o minister_n and_o excommunication_n of_o impenitent_a offender_n beza_n also_o witness_v the_o same_o use_n in_o the_o election_n at_o geneva_n and_o likewise_o in_o other_o place_n where_o there_o be_v free_a church_n say_v he_o 11._o he_o bez._n de_fw-fr grad_v minist_n cap_n 11._o presbyter_n here_o be_v choose_v not_o without_o the_o knowledge_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n so_o every_o where_o in_o other_o free_a church_n according_a to_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o place_n the_o like_a choice_n be_v make_v elsewhere_o also_o he_o say_v of_o the_o same_o thus_o 2d_o thus_o annotat_fw-la in_o act._n â4_n 2d_o habemus_fw-la nos_fw-la dei_fw-la beneficâo_fw-la certas_fw-la nostrae_fw-la vocationis_fw-la notas_fw-la legitimo_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesijs_fw-la nostris_fw-la &_o vita_fw-la &_o doctrinae_fw-la testimonio_fw-la ernati_fw-la &_o ab_fw-la ynsdemelect_v ac_fw-la demurn_v etiaâ_n in_o nostro_fw-la ministerio_fw-la confirmat_n cus_n domiaââ_n ut_fw-la spero_fw-la eâectis_fw-la tum_fw-la furibus_fw-la tum_fw-la mercenarijs_fw-la benedicet_fw-la we_o have_v by_o god_n goodness_n certain_a note_n of_o our_o call_v have_v good_a testimoâe_n from_o our_o church_n both_o for_o our_o life_n and_o doctrine_n and_o be_v by_o they_o choose_v and_o confirm_v also_o in_o our_o ministry_n which_o i_o hope_v the_o lord_n will_v bless_v when_o he_o will_v caââ_n out_o both_o thief_n and_o hireling_n according_a to_o this_o order_n out_o of_o question_n the_o savoyan_n church_n savey_n savey_n and_o the_o french_a also_o general_o be_v constitute_v french_a french_a which_o the_o french_a liturgy_n do_v likewise_o prove_v the_o church_n of_o scotland_n before_o the_o late_a woeful_a break_v off_o from_o their_o former_a consent_n do_v approve_v the_o same_o public_a order_n of_o the_o church_n of_o france_n and_o geneva_n aforesaid_a scottish_a scottish_a also_o the_o public_a order_n set_v forth_o in_o the_o low_a country_n consent_v herewith_o belgic_a belgic_a the_o synod_n of_o middelburgh_n anno_fw-la 15â1_n decree_v thus_o of_o the_o choose_v of_o minister_n artiâ_n minister_n artiâ_n electio_fw-la sit_fw-la penes_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la &_o fiat_fw-la per_fw-la suffiagium_fw-la in_o templo_fw-la publicè_fw-la let_v the_o election_n of_o the_o minister_n be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n and_o let_v it_o be_v do_v by_o voice_n public_o in_o the_o temple_n afterward_o they_o determine_v thus_o nulla_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la nullus_fw-la minister_n nullus_fw-la senior_fw-la nulluâ_fw-la diaconus_fw-la ullum_fw-la âabeat_fw-la primatum_fw-la super_fw-la alterum_fw-la no_o church_n no_o minister_n no_o elder_a no_o deacon_n may_v have_v any_o kind_n of_o primacy_n above_o other_o 4._o chap_n 4._o the_o synod_n of_o tilleburgh_n in_o nasovia_n anno_fw-la 1582_o nasson_n nasson_n receave_v these_o point_n for_o themselves_o also_o as_o zepperus_n show_v in_o the_o end_n of_o his_o politia_fw-la ecclesiastica_fw-la there_o be_v a_o public_a order_n publââed_v in_o middelburgh_n anno_fw-la 1602._o agree_v withal_o the_o former_a which_o touch_v the_o choose_v of_o minister_n say_v thus_o the_o party_n as_o choose_v with_o the_o free_a consent_n of_o the_o minister_n elder_n and_o the_o whole_a congregation_n to_o be_v ordain_v be_v to_o frame_v his_o sermon_n etc._n etc._n touch_v depose_v of_o they_o thus_o by_o the_o like_a authority_n as_o he_o be_v elect_v he_o be_v to_o be_v depose_v touch_v excommunication_n thus_o it_o be_v ordain_v that_o nothing_o be_v attempt_v in_o that_o behalf_n without_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o whole_a congregation_n whereunto_o the_o church_n under_o the_o palsgrave_n do_v agree_v palatin_n palatin_n in_o who_o public_a catechism_n thus_o we_o read_v â_o read_v in_o the_o end_n of_o part_n â_o the_o church_n by_o the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n &_o his_o apostle_n use_v the_o key_n ought_v tâo_fw-la drive_v the_o wicked_a from_o this_o supper_n till_o they_o shall_v repent_v and_o change_v their_o manner_n which_o vrsinus_n the_o approve_a interpreter_n thereof_o do_v show_v to_o be_v with_o the_o people_n free_a consent_n as_o 41._o as_o pag._n 41._o before_o out_o of_o vrsmus_n we_o observe_v final_o church_n other_o church_n this_o same_o be_v allow_v by_o those_o church_n also_o which_o follow_v luther_n according_a to_o chemnicius_n testimony_n of_o they_o 47._o they_o pag._n 47._o before_o allege_v 5._o chap._n 5._o where_o at_o least_o he_o signify_v that_o many_o of_o they_o do_v allow_v it_o which_o many_o other_o church_n beside_o do_v also_o who_o here_o i_o name_v not_o hitherto_o i_o have_v true_o and_o plain_o declare_v as_o touch_v these_o late_a time_n who_o they_o be_v who_o have_v be_v our_o master_n &_o teacher_n in_o this_o matter_n of_o the_o church_n constitution_n &_o government_n viz._n that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v always_o with_o the_o people_n free_a consent_n very_o now_o it_o appear_v i_o hope_v that_o we_o need_v not_o be_v ashamed_a either_o of_o these_o noble_a light_n of_o religion_n or_o of_o this_o doctrine_n which_o manifest_o we_o have_v learn_v and_o receive_v from_o such_o worthy_n chap._n v._o the_o testimony_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o best_a antiquity_n after_o the_o new_a testament_n herein_o likewise_o with_o us._n howbeit_o furthermore_o that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v think_v novelty_n or_o unbeseeming_a christian_a religion_n although_o no_o honest_a man_n will_v once_o think_v so_o of_o any_o thing_n which_o such_o a_o uniform_a consent_n of_o so_o renown_a late_a christian_n do_v justify_v yet_o i_o judge_v it_o very_o con_fw-mi venient_fw-la to_o produce_v also_o some_o testimony_n of_o the_o most_o ancient_a time_n of_o christianity_n after_o the_o apostle_n downward_o even_o while_o any_o soundness_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v open_o show_v itself_o in_o the_o world_n i_o say_v such_o testimony_n i_o purpose_v heese_n to_o show_v of_o famous_a christian_n as_o have_v be_v always_o continual_o after_o the_o apostle_n by_o which_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o people_n free_a consent_n in_o their_o church_n government_n be_v approve_a yea_o in_o peace_n as_o well_o as_o in_o persecution_n till_o the_o tyranny_n of_o antichrist_n will_v bear_v it_o no_o long_o in_o any_o public_a state_n and_o this_o god_n will_v i_o shall_v perform_v in_o this_o manner_n to_o begin_v therefore_o we_o will_v first_o observe_v the_o church_n of_o jerusalems_n practice_n in_o this_o point_n immediate_o after_o the_o decease_n of_o the_o apostle_n james_n that_o die_v there_o as_o eusebius_n record_v say_v âee_n 70._o annâ_n circôter_v 70._o 3.10_o 70._o euseb_n 3.10_o after_o james_n be_v dead_a it_o be_v report_v that_o the_o apostle_n &_o disciple_n out_o of_o all_o place_n near_o about_o jerusalem_n come_v together_o into_o one_o and_o take_v counsel_n together_o who_o may_v be_v judge_v worthy_a to_o succee_v in_o james_n his_o plaâe_n therefore_o all_o with_o one_o consent_n do_v think_v simeon_n the_o son_n of_o cleophas_n
meet_v and_o able_a to_o have_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n there_o and_o again_o out_o of_o egesippus_fw-la â1_n egesippus_fw-la 4._o â1_n after_o that_o james_n be_v slame_v simeon_n the_o soâe_a of_o cleophas_n be_v make_v bishop_n who_o in_o tâesecond_a place_n all_o the_o disciple_n appoint_v by_o voice_n to_o that_o government_n this_o be_v the_o first_o &_o most_o notable_a example_n of_o the_o christian_n pract_v see_v in_o this_o matter_n neither_o canâââ_n we_o read_v of_o any_o near_a to_o the_o apostle_n after_o the_o time_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n than_o this_o also_o we_o see_v it_o be_v in_o the_o very_a mother_n church_n of_o all_o christianity_n wherefore_o this_o order_n of_o call_v to_o the_o ministry_n rather_o than_o any_o late_a be_v most_o worthy_a yea_o necessary_a to_o be_v observe_v and_o imitate_v by_o we_o every_o where_o and_o for_o ever_o the_o like_a we_o read_v of_o there_o again_o thus_o 205._o thus_o 6â_n anno_fw-la 205._o when_o narcissiâ_n the_o bishop_n have_v withdraw_v himself_o &_o be_v go_v no_o man_n know_v whither_o they_o who_o govern_v the_o neighbour_n church_n think_v good_a to_o make_v another_o bishop_n but_o how_o by_o the_o people_n voice_n and_o so_o dius_n be_v choose_v afterward_o narcissus_n return_v the_o brethren_n desire_v he_o to_o take_v against_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n unto_o who_o be_v adjoin_v alexander_n for_o his_o fellow_n the_o people_n of_o jerusalem_n with_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o the_o neighbour_n bishop_n constrain_a he_o necessary_o to_o tarry_v with_o they_o these_o be_v the_o mean_n that_o make_v these_o minister_n ignatius_n of_o antioch_n teach_v and_o say_v to_o the_o church_n at_o philadelphia_n that_o philad_n that_o ignat._n ad_fw-la philad_n it_o be_v meâte_a for_o they_o as_o be_v a_o church_n of_o god_n 112._o anno_fw-la 112._o by_o voice_n to_o choose_v their_o bishop_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d it_o can_v not_o be_v deny_v but_o that_o this_o writer_n show_v in_o the_o word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d that_o be_v lift_v up_o of_o hand_n ân_v thepeoples_n voice_n give_v that_o election_n of_o minister_n be_v then_o make_v by_o the_o people_n free_a choice_n see_v he_o signifi_v ordination_n and_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n by_o another_o proper_a word_n viz._n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v also_o the_o same_o in_o this_o matter_n 240._o anno_fw-la 240._o of_o which_o we_o read_v &_o read_v euseb_n 6.2_o &_o when_o all_o the_o brethren_n be_v come_v together_o in_o the_o church_n for_o the_o purpose_n to_o choose_v a_o bishop_n who_o place_n now_o be_v void_a the_o whole_a people_n with_o one_o consent_n cry_v that_o fabianus_n be_v worthy_a of_o that_o dignity_n and_o present_o he_o be_v place_v in_o the_o same_o afterward_o again_o we_o read_v of_o cornelius_n that_o he_o be_v choose_v in_o like_a manner_n for_o so_o write_v cyprian_a of_o he_o say_v 4.2_o say_v cyprian_a epist_n 4.2_o factus_fw-la est_fw-la cornelius_n episcopus_fw-la de_fw-la dei_fw-la &_o christ_n eius_fw-la iudicio_fw-la de_fw-la plebis_fw-la qua_fw-la tune_n affuit_fw-la suffragio_fw-la etc._n etc._n cornelius_n be_v make_v bishop_n by_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n and_o his_o christ_n by_o the_o voice_n give_v of_o the_o people_n which_o be_v then_o present_a &c_n &c_n in_o a_o other_o place_n also_o he_o say_v he_o be_v 3.13_o be_v 3.13_o the_o dei_fw-la iudtcio_fw-la &_o cleri_fw-la ac_fw-la plebis_fw-la suffragio_fw-la ordinatus_fw-la ordain_v by_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n and_o by_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o people_n the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o carthage_n be_v the_o same_o â5â_n anno_fw-la â5â_n as_o cyprian_n also_o speak_v of_o himself_o show_v say_v that_o he_o be_v choose_v 1.3_o choose_v cyprian_a epist_n 1.3_o populi_n universi_fw-la suffragio_fw-la in_o pace_n by_o the_o voycegiving_a of_o the_o whole_a people_n in_o peace_n and_o quiet_o also_o he_o call_v this_o 1.8_o this_o 1.8_o their_o voice_n give_v god_n judgement_n and_o he_o write_v of_o another_o church_n in_o africa_n at_o legio_n as_o we_o may_v gather_v that_o there_o one_o sabinus_n be_v make_v bishop_n 1.4_o bishop_n 1.4_o de_fw-fr universae_fw-la fraternstatis_fw-la suffragio_fw-la by_o the_o voycegiving_a of_o the_o whole_a brotherhood_n and_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o bishop_n that_o be_v come_v together_o but_o above_o all_o other_o that_o place_n in_o cyprian_a be_v singular_a for_o our_o purpose_n where_o his_o own_o judgement_n and_o sentence_n with_o many_o other_o bishop_n beside_o be_v to_o be_v note_v concern_v this_o power_n and_o right_n of_o the_o people_n it_o be_v in_o this_o same_o epistle_n a_o little_a before_o thus_o 1.4_o thus_o ibidem_fw-la viz._n 1.4_o plebs_fw-la obsequens_fw-la praeceptis_fw-la dominicis_fw-la &_o deum_fw-la metuens_fw-la a_o peccatore_fw-la praeposito_fw-la separate_v se_fw-la debet_fw-la nec_fw-la se_fw-la ad_fw-la sacrilegi_fw-la sacerdotis_fw-la sacrificsa_fw-la miscere_fw-la cum_fw-la ipsa_fw-la maximè_fw-la babeat_fw-la poteslatem_fw-la vel_fw-la eligendi_fw-la dignos_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la vel_fw-la indignos_fw-la recusandi_fw-la quod_fw-la &_o ipsum_fw-la videmus_fw-la de_fw-la divina_fw-la authoritate_fw-la descendere_fw-la etc._n etc._n a_o people_n obey_v the_o lord_n commandment_n and_o fear_v god_n ought_v to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o a_o wickeâ_n minister_n and_o not_o join_v themselves_o to_o the_o divine_a service_n of_o a_o sacrilegious_a priest_n seeing_z they_o the_o people_n chief_o have_v power_n to_o choose_v worthy_a minister_n and_o to_o refuse_v unworthy_a one_o which_o thing_n also_o we_o see_v come_v fiâ_n divine_a authority_n etc._n etc._n lo_o what_o cyprian_n judgement_n be_v of_o the_o people_n power_n &_o right_v in_o the_o make_n of_o minister_n he_o with_o divers_a other_o his_o fellow-bishop_n do_v here_o profess_v that_o it_o come_v from_o divine_a authority_n christ_n so_o before_o he_o call_v it_o god_n judgement_n and_o his_o christ_n what_o can_v be_v more_o full_a and_o absolute_a to_o our_o purpose_n than_o this_o the_o same_o also_o he_o hold_v touch_v the_o people_n power_n in_o church_n censure_n as_o where_o he_o will_v stephan_n bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o write_v 3.14_o write_v epist_n 3.14_o ad_fw-la plebem_fw-la arelate_n consistentem_fw-la to_o the_o people_n at_o arles_n in_o france_n his_o intent_n be_v here_o that_o their_o novatian_n bishop_n martianus_n shall_v be_v remove_v and_o another_o set_v in_o his_o place_n by_o they_o together_o with_o stephan_n help_v and_o elsewhere_o touch_v one_o victor_n a_o presbyter_n fall_v from_o the_o church_n &_o return_v again_o cyprian_a great_o mislike_v &_o rebuke_v therapius_n the_o bishop_n for_o receive_v he_o 3.8_o he_o 3.8_o sine_fw-la petitu_fw-la &_o conscientia_fw-la plebis_fw-la without_o the_o desire_n &_o knowledge_n of_o the_o people_n and_o advise_v he_o that_o he_o do_v so_o no_o more_o and_o as_o touch_v himself_o he_o show_v in_o many_o place_n his_o own_o constant_a practice_n to_o be_v such_o also_o people_n or_o without_o the_o desire_n &c_n &c_n conscience_n of_o the_o people_n first_o of_o some_o rash_a and_o proud_a presbyter_n he_o say_v if_o they_o persist_v in_o their_o scandalous_a behaviour_n they_o shall_v answer_v it_o 3.14_o it_o 3.14_o apud_fw-la plebe_fw-la universam_fw-la before_o all_o the_o people_n as_o judge_n with_o himself_o &_o other_o of_o their_o misdemeanour_n again_o write_v several_o to_o his_o people_n about_o some_o that_o desire_v to_o be_v reconcile_v to_o the_o church_n at_o carthage_n he_o say_v 3.16_o say_v 3.16_o examinabuntur_fw-la singula_fw-la praese_n itibus_fw-la &_o iudicantibus_fw-la vobis_fw-la every_o thing_n shall_v be_v examine_v you_o the_o people_n be_v present_a and_o judge_a of_o it_o and_o thus_o he_o mean_v where_o he_o say_v he_o must_v 1â_n must_v 3_o 1â_n dispomere_fw-la omne_fw-la consilij_fw-la communis_fw-la religione_fw-la disoose_v all_o thing_n by_o a_o religious_a observe_v of_o such_o common_a advice_n lo_o he_o put_v &_o acknowledge_v religion_n herein_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v that_o to_o a_o few_o presbyter_n of_o his_o church_n who_o have_v write_v to_o he_o be_v then_o absent_a from_o carthage_n about_o some_o of_o his_o church_n affair_n he_o say_v he_o can_v not_o so_o much_o as_o write_v back_o to_o they_o thereof_o 3.10_o thereof_o 3.10_o see_v he_o have_v determine_v to_o do_v nothing_o private_o of_o his_o own_o mind_n without_o the_o presbyter_n counsel_n and_o the_o people_n consent_n and_o promise_v that_o when_o he_o shall_v return_v he_o will_v handle_v matter_n in_o common_a both_o such_o as_o be_v pass_v while_o he_o be_v absent_a and_o also_o such_o as_o be_v to_o come_v after_o his_o return_n yea_o and_o therefore_o in_o a_o other_o place_n he_o say_v 3.19_o say_v 3.19_o praiudicare_fw-la ego_fw-la &_o solum_fw-la mihi_fw-la rem_fw-la communem_fw-la vendicare_fw-la non_fw-la audeo_fw-la i_o dare_v not_o praeiudge_v
proof_n for_o indeed_o euseb_n do_v not_o avouch_v it_o yea_o d._n bilson_n also_o deni_v it_o general_o say_v 306._o say_v d._n bill_n perper_n govern_v pag._n 306._o each_o place_n be_v it_o never_o so_o great_a have_v but_o one_o church_n and_o one_o chief_a pastor_n he_o speak_v of_o those_o first_o time_n peradventure_o if_o eusebius_n write_v true_a and_o if_o he_o have_v good_a intelligence_n hereof_o julianus_n the_o ten_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n be_v a_o diocesan_n bishop_n in_o some_o measure_n for_o i_o will_v not_o deny_v but_o church_n may_v begin_v to_o be_v mulply_v in_o alexandria_n about_o that_o time_n so_o that_o some_o small_a beginning_n &_o show_v of_o a_o diocesan_n bishop_n which_o heretofore_o i_o call_v fit_o a_o 7._o a_o rem_fw-la for_o refor_o pag._n 7._o titular_a diocesan_n be_v in_o he_o peradventure_o and_o i_o say_v peradventure_o because_o this_o grant_n be_v get_v from_o we_o only_o by_o reason_n of_o a_o few_o word_n in_o 5.9_o in_o euseb_n 5.9_o eusebius_n who_o word_n yet_o always_o be_v not_o gospel_n yea_o in_o history_n 257._o history_n rain_n confess_v pag._n 257._o he_o be_v not_o always_o so_o sure_o at_o that_o we_o may_v build_v on_o he_o which_o also_o before_o i_o insinuate_v howbeit_o i_o will_v not_o stick_v to_o acknowledge_v julianus_n to_o have_v be_v such_o a_o diocesan_n bishop_n as_o i_o say_v but_o withal_o i_o affirm_v that_o for_o any_o thing_n we_o find_v he_o be_v the_o first_o that_o ever_o be_v &_o that_o by_o no_o record_n any_o diocesan_n can_v be_v show_v before_o he_o now_o this_o be_v emperor_n be_v under_o commodus_n emperor_n near_o upon_o 200._o year_n after_o christ_n yet_o for_o the_o westerue_fw-la part_n of_o christendom_n i_o agree_v with_o platina_n who_o out_o of_o one_o damasus_n say_v that_o dionysius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n first_o ordain_v diocese_n which_o be_v about_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 260._o against_o this_o d._n downame_n except_v urge_v that_o 2.99_o that_o d._n down_o def._n 2.99_o platina_n say_v not_o dionysius_n do_v it_o first_o i_o answer_v and_o will_v avouch_v it_o that_o in_o effect_n he_o say_v so_o much_o for_o he_o say_v that_o diony_n be_v make_v bishop_n of_o rome_n dionys._n rome_n platin._n in_o dionys._n straightway_o divide_v church_n in_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n which_o can_v be_v otherwise_o mean_v but_o that_o he_o do_v it_o first_o and_o that_o before_o he_o the_o congregation_n there_o be_v not_o divide_v as_o for_o that_o he_o say_v before_o of_o evaristus_n bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o evaristus_n that_o in_o evaristus_n he_o divide_v title_n to_o the_o presbyter_n i_o answer_v this_o very_o be_v mean_v of_o divers_a praecinct_n and_o quarter_n belong_v only_o to_o one_o entire_a congregation_n and_o ordinary_a assembly_n reason_n require_v that_o in_o great_a city_n when_o christian_n multiply_v first_o there_o shall_v be_v such_o praecincte_n and_o quarter_n design_v before_o many_o ordinary_a church_n be_v divide_v and_o constant_o set_v in_o they_o the_o french_a &_o dutch_a church_n in_o london_n have_v such_o praecincte_n and_o quarter_n yet_o they_o have_v each_o but_o one_o ordinary_a congregation_n and_o questionless_a so_o it_o be_v in_o rome_n for_o divers_a ordinary_a set_v congregation_n be_v not_o appoint_v there_o long_o after_o this_o no_o not_o in_o the_o time_n of_o cornelius_n b._n of_o rome_n nor_o in_o carthage_n under_o cyprian_a which_o may_v well_o be_v gather_v out_o of_o their_o write_n they_o both_o flourish_v together_o about_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 250._o wherefore_o though_o such_o title_n as_o be_v praecinct_n belong_v to_o one_o ordinary_a congregation_n may_v well_o be_v institute_v by_o evaristus_n and_o multiply_v afterward_o yet_o this_o nothing_o hinder_v our_o assertion_n that_o dionysius_n first_o institute_v distinct_a church_n there_o and_o so_o a_o diocesan_n church_n improper_a and_o doc._n downame_n presume_v too_o gross_o where_o he_o affirm_v that_o these_o title_n signify_v 2.100_o signify_v d._n down_o def._n 2.100_o parish_n church_n then_o in_o rome_n what_o soever_o the_o word_n may_v signify_v sometime_o questionless_a here_o in_o this_o business_n touch_v evaristus_n it_o signify_v as_o i_o have_v say_v divers_a quarter_n and_o praecinct_n of_o one_o ordinary_a congregation_n and_o nothing_o else_o and_o this_o be_v the_o clear_a &_o most_o certain_a notice_n that_o we_o have_v touch_v the_o first_o diocesan_n bishop_n and_o church_n improper_o so_o call_v which_o after_o they_o be_v erect_v continue_v in_o the_o christian_a world_n in_o divers_a kind_n and_o sort_n as_o i_o say_v before_o they_o be_v begin_v and_o set_v up_o at_o first_o i_o doubt_v not_o out_o of_o a_o good_a intent_n yet_o it_o as_o plain_a as_o may_v be_v that_o error_n always_o accompany_v they_o even_o from_o the_o first_o the_o best_a of_o these_o bishop_n not_o want_v some_o ambition_n and_o partial_a respect_n towards_o themselves_o and_o all_o of_o they_o possess_v with_o that_o erroneous_a opinion_n that_o the_o peerless_a authority_n of_o one_o bishop_n over_o the_o church_n be_v the_o best_a mean_n of_o true_a unity_n and_o chief_o god_n purpose_v be_v that_o thus_o the_o universal_a papacy_n shall_v at_o last_o be_v advance_v which_o otherwise_o never_o can_v have_v be_v so_o i_o say_v it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o these_o diocesan_n bishop_n and_o church_n and_o their_o authority_n in_o continuance_n of_o time_n grow_v still_o great_a and_o great_a yet_o as_o jerome_n say_v and_o as_o reason_v also_o show_v it_o to_o be_v likely_a it_o proceed_v paulatim_fw-la by_o little_a and_o little_a by_o small_a degree_n and_o by_o increasing_n not_o spy_v of_o every_o one_o till_o at_o last_o they_o all_o grow_v to_o be_v transform_v into_o proper_a diocesan_n bishop_n and_o church_n and_o get_v the_o power_n of_o spiritual_a government_n absolute_o into_o their_o hand_n clean_o exclude_v all_o power_n of_o the_o people_n in_o the_o ordinary_a congregation_n free_o to_o consent_n which_o former_o they_o have_v ever_o hold_v more_o or_o less_o but_o this_o be_v not_o full_o bring_v to_o pass_v till_o after_o that_o the_o great_a apostasy_n and_o tyranny_n of_o the_o universal_a bishop_n the_o roman_a antichrist_n be_v begin_v to_o be_v set_v up_o as_o 88_o as_o pag._n 06._o âââ_o &_o 88_o before_o i_o declare_v i_o grant_v here_o that_o the_o improper_a diocesan_n church_n as_o i_o note_v they_o be_v call_v and_o name_v diocesan_n many_o year_n ago_o and_o be_v also_o at_o this_o time_n by_o many_o learned_a man_n but_o yet_o indeed_o they_o be_v such_o church_n viz._n diocesan_n or_o large_a improper_o &_o be_v call_v so_o by_o a_o catachresis_fw-la a_o abusive_a manner_n of_o speak_v the_o reason_n be_v because_o true_o these_o church_n be_v not_o each_o of_o they_o one_o proper_a and_o entire_a diocesan_n body_n as_o a_o proper_a diocesan_n church_n be_v but_o have_v so_o many_o distinct_a body_n and_o independent_a as_o there_o be_v ordinary_a congregation_n in_o each_o of_o they_o enjoy_v their_o free_a consent_n in_o their_o several_a governement_n yet_o each_o of_o they_o be_v call_v a_o diocesan_n church_n or_o large_a for_o other_o respect_n to_o wit_n because_o it_o have_v a_o certain_a kind_n of_o diocesan_n or_o large_a consociation_n of_o so_o many_o church_n together_o and_o a_o kind_n of_o dependence_n under_o one_o general_a presidencie_n or_o superiority_n as_o before_o i_o observe_v again_o 89._o pag._n 88_o 89._o both_o the_o kind_n of_o these_o improper_a diocesan_n church_n above_o specify_v that_o be_v the_o synodall_n &_o episcopal_a do_v guide_n and_o rule_n much_o alike_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o several_a congregation_n under_o they_o they_o rule_v not_o absolute_o nor_o as_o entire_a and_o sole_a governor_n but_o with_o relation_n to_o the_o say_a congregation_n free_a consent_n which_o be_v their_o ancient_a right_n and_o immunity_n as_o they_o be_v church_n of_o christ_n which_o immunity_n and_o free_a power_n they_o may_v lawful_o take_v to_o themselves_o &_o use_v whensoever_o they_o see_v necessary_a cause_n for_o it_o as_o even_o our_o adversary_n acknowledge_v 4.99_o d._n down_o def._n 4.99_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o both_o stand_v well_o be_v due_o order_v with_o the_o good_a proceed_n of_o the_o gospel_n neither_o do_v any_o man_n of_o understand_v ever_o deny_v this_o howbeit_o yet_o we_o affirm_v that_o of_o these_o two_o the_o consociation_n by_o synod_n or_o presbytery_n be_v most_o convenient_a most_o profitable_a and_o most_o safe_a for_o we_o at_o least_o wise_a now_o that_o be_v in_o respect_n of_o these_o time_n in_o which_o we_o live_v and_o of_o the_o circumstance_n in_o they_o the_o government_n of_o diocesan_n bishop_n though_o of_o the_o best_a sort_n be_v not_o so_o good_a nor_o safe_a especial_o now_o whereof_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o yield_v
many_o good_a reason_n which_o here_o i_o pass_v over_o but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o approve_v the_o government_n of_o a_o proper_a diocesan_n church_n or_o large_a of_o which_o all_o our_o question_n be_v where_o the_o people_n free_a consent_n be_v whole_o and_o altogether_o deny_v they_o such_o as_o i_o know_v not_o clear_o either_o at_o this_o day_n to_o be_v or_o to_o have_v be_v any_o where_o but_o under_o the_o papacy_n and_o now_o in_o england_n certain_o against_o this_o that_o be_v the_o proper_a diocesan_n church_n and_o government_n all_o our_o controversy_n at_o this_o day_n be_v intend_v which_o also_o i_o have_v note_v in_o my_o declaration_n pag._n 21._o 22._o so_o that_o the_o diocesan_n church_n which_o i_o absolute_o speak_v against_o in_o etc._n in_o in_o reas._n for_o reform_v exposition_n of_o the_o a_o com._n the_o divine_a beginning_n &_o institution_n of_o christ_n visible_a church_n etc._n etc._n other_o place_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o this_o proper_a dioc._n church_n &_o so_o likewise_o questionless_a it_o be_v mean_v in_o the_o offer_n of_o disputation_n and_o in_o the_o petition_n for_o toleration_n also_o now_o no_o proof_n can_v be_v make_v from_o the_o law_n fullness_n or_o toleration_n of_o the_o improper_a piocesan_n church_n for_o the_o lawfulness_n or_o tolerablenes_n of_o the_o proper_a diocese_n church_n because_o they_o differ_v formal_o &_o essential_o as_o elsewhere_o 35._o elsewhere_o declarat_fw-la pag._n 12._o 13._o 34._o 35._o i_o have_v show_v these_o can_v not_o by_o any_o mean_n sustifye_v the_o one_o the_o other_o in_o which_o respect_n d._n downame_n foul_a abuse_v of_o christian_a people_n in_o his_o defence_n by_o his_o perpetual_a equivocate_a and_o bring_v in_o infinite_a matter_n which_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o intent_n of_o our_o question_n be_v to_o be_v mark_v and_o consider_v of_o all_o man_n for_o he_o take_v in_o hand_n to_o prove_v our_o diocesan_n or_o rather_o provincial_n church_n in_o england_n and_o our_o bishop_n who_o do_v all_o thing_n in_o ecclesiastical_a government_n without_o any_o free_a consent_n of_o the_o several_a congregation_n to_o be_v for_o the_o substance_n of_o their_o call_n and_o condition_n apostolical_a he_o plead_v only_o in_o general_a for_o diocesan_n church_n or_o large_a and_o for_o bishop_n in_o general_n his_o proof_n such_o as_o they_o be_v be_v only_o for_o the_o improper_a diocesan_n church_n and_o large_a and_o for_o their_o bishop_n as_o if_o simple_o we_o do_v deny_v they_o or_o as_o if_o our_o diocesan_n church_n and_o bishop_n in_o england_n be_v such_o what_o intolerable_a double_n and_o deceive_v of_o god_n people_n be_v this_o what_o alter_v the_o question_n what_o equivocate_a as_o bad_a as_o jesuitical_a this_o be_v all_o that_o he_o do_v in_o his_o second_o book_n of_o the_o say_a defence_n where_o the_o proper_a place_n be_v for_o this_o point_n and_o where_o be_v the_o very_a foundation_n of_o all_o his_o write_n beside_o yea_o indeed_o he_o do_v nothing_o else_o throughont_v his_o whole_a defence_n wherefore_o even_o this_o which_o here_o be_v speak_v be_v enough_o for_o a_o just_a confutation_n of_o his_o say_a whole_a defence_n the_o very_a like_o deal_v doctor_n bilson_n use_v also_o in_o his_o perpetual_a government_n chap_v 12.13.14_o where_o he_o deal_v about_o bishop_n and_o diocese_n out_o of_o the_o father_n chief_o in_o pag._n 260._o where_o he_o set_v down_o 4._o rank_n of_o bishop_n which_o i_o deny_v not_o be_v in_o those_o four_o chief_a church_n there_o name_v viz._n jerusalem_n antioch_n rome_n alexandria_n but_o the_o truth_n be_v touch_v his_o purpose_n these_o be_v so_o many_o catalogue_n of_o equivocation_n and_o change_n of_o the_o question_n for_o neither_o be_v those_o bishop_n all_o of_o one_o kind_n and_o power_n neither_o be_v any_o of_o they_o of_o that_o kind_n and_o power_n as_o we_o now_o in_o england_n be_v for_o who_o allowance_n and_o approbation_n they_o be_v notwithstanding_o by_o he_o here_o produce_v and_o mighty_o urge_v but_o hitherto_o i_o have_v digress_v speak_v of_o the_o divers_a kind_n of_o diocesan_n church_n and_o bishop_n and_o of_o their_o original_n likewise_o of_o the_o deceit_n of_o the_o defender_n of_o our_o church_n state_n in_o england_n by_o equivocate_a so_o palpable_o &_o by_o change_v the_o question_n the_o main_a point_n here_o in_o this_o place_n be_v see_v the_o church_n government_n under_o the_o gospel_n ought_v to_o be_v always_o with_o the_o people_n free_a consent_n which_o before_o we_o have_v sufficient_o show_v therefore_o every_o true_a church_n under_o the_o gospel_n be_v only_o one_o ordinary_a congregation_n and_o consequent_o no_o proper_a diocesan_n church_n or_o large_a be_v lawful_a a_o second_o consequent_a also_o be_v here_o hence_o to_o be_v consider_v to_o wit_n this_o be_v admit_v that_o the_o church_n government_n ought_v to_o be_v always_o with_o the_o people_n free_a consent_n it_o follow_v that_o such_o synod_n or_o presbytery_n can_v not_o be_v approve_a which_o rule_v imperious_o over_o the_o congregation_n and_o impose_v on_o they_o whether_o they_o will_v or_o no_o their_o act_n &_o canon_n under_o some_o spiritual_a penalty_n as_o excommunication_n suspension_n deprivation_n degradation_n from_o the_o ministry_n etc._n etc._n to_o which_o purpose_n many_o excellent_a man_n also_o do_v speak_v express_o zuinglius_fw-la of_o all_o other_o be_v herein_o peremptory_a say_v he_o speak_v to_o such_o synod_n explanat_fw-la synod_n zuignl_n artic_a 8._o explanat_fw-la quod_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la sitis_fw-la representativa_fw-la libenter_fw-la eredimus_fw-la vera_fw-la enim_fw-la non_fw-la estis_fw-la etc._n etc._n we_o willing_o believe_v that_o you_o be_v a_o representative_a church_n for_o a_o true_a church_n you_o be_v not_o but_o i_o pray_v you_o show_v we_o whence_o you_o fetch_v this_o name_n who_o have_v give_v this_o name_n who_o have_v give_v you_o power_n to_o meet_v and_o conspire_v together_o who_o have_v give_v you_o power_n to_o make_v canon_n and_o decree_n differ_v from_o god_n word_n who_o have_v suffer_v you_o to_o impose_v these_o thing_n on_o man_n shoulder_n who_o have_v persuade_v you_o to_o grieve_v man_n conscience_n etc._n etc._n and_o a_o little_a before_o he_o say_v deistâ_fw-la representative_a ecclefiâ_n in_o scripture_n sanctis_fw-la nihil_fw-la invenis_fw-la exit_fw-la hominum_fw-la commentis_fw-la fingere_fw-la quisquis_fw-la potest_fw-la quidlibet_fw-la nos_fw-la scriptura_fw-la netimur_fw-la sacra_fw-la contraquam_fw-la nec_fw-la this_fw-mi quidquam_fw-la tentabis_fw-la si_fw-la christianus_n es_fw-la of_o this_o representative_a church_n i_o find_v nothing_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n our_o of_o man_n devise_n any_o may_v feign_v what_o they_o listen_v we_o rest_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n against_o which_o thou_o may_v not_o attempt_v any_o thing_n if_o thou_o be_v a_o christian_n and_o they_o that_o impose_v their_o decree_n without_o the_o people_n consent_n say_v he_o tviolento_fw-la imperio_fw-la ius_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la invadunt_fw-la comp._n ad_fw-la valent._n comp._n they_o invade_v upon_o the_o church_n right_a by_o violent_a command_n and_o such_o be_v 64._o be_v artic._n 64._o nomine_fw-la tenus_fw-la episcopi_fw-la revera_fw-la tyranni_fw-la in_o name_n bishop_n but_o indeed_o tyrant_n as_o 31._o as_o pag._n 31._o before_o also_o be_v observe_v no_o less_o sharp_a he_o be_v likewise_o herein_o elsewhere_a say_v missae_fw-la say_v epichirisis_n de_fw-fr canon_n missae_fw-la est_fw-la particularis_fw-la ecclisia_n ea_fw-la cut_v praceptum_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la morbidum_fw-la membrum_fw-la resecer_n math._n 18_o qualis_fw-la est_fw-la ea_fw-la corinthi_n ad_fw-la qua_fw-la scribit_fw-la paulus_n &_o aliae_fw-la quarum_fw-la se_fw-la curam_fw-la geâere_fw-la predicat_fw-la &_o in_o quibus_fw-la se_fw-la parâ_n modo_fw-la daceâe_fw-la asseres_fw-la inquiens_fw-la sollicitudo_fw-la omnium_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la &_o siâââ_n in_o omnibus_fw-la eeclesijs_fw-la doceâ_n superest_fw-la we_o concursantium_fw-la eispeopor_fw-la they_o ne_fw-la dicam_fw-la conspirantium_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la non_fw-la sit_fw-la alia_fw-la quam_fw-la cut_n propheta_fw-la malignantium_fw-la nomen_fw-la dedit_fw-la quod_fw-la enim_fw-la ulera_fw-la verum_fw-la est_fw-la a_fw-fr malo_fw-la est_fw-la verax_n autem_fw-la est_fw-la solus_fw-la deus_fw-la &_o omnis_fw-la homo_fw-la mendax_fw-la quiequitigetur_fw-la à _fw-la deo_fw-la est_fw-la equum_fw-la verum_fw-la bonum_fw-la est_fw-la quiequid_fw-la all_o be_v homine_fw-la profectum_fw-la iniquum_fw-la mendax_fw-la &_o malum_fw-la est_fw-la hac_fw-la horum_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la a_o deo_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la a_fw-fr malo_fw-la igitur_fw-la est_fw-la siquis_fw-la uberiora_fw-la desideret_fw-la conclusionum_fw-la nostrarum_fw-la farraginem_fw-la legate_n it_o be_v a_o particular_a church_n which_o be_v command_v to_o cut_v off_o the_o infect_a member_n math._n 18._o such_o as_o that_o be_v of_o corinth_n to_o which_o paul_n write_v and_o other_o of_o which_o he_o say_v have_v have_v care_n and_o in_o which_o he_o affirm_v that_o he_o teach_v alike_o say_v the_o care_n of_o all_o church_n &_o be_v i_o teach_v in_o all_o church_n it_o remain_v
little_a after_o if_o you_o will_v be_v further_o teach_v that_o a_o general_a council_n be_v neither_o the_o universal_a church_n nor_o represent_v the_o universal_a church_n &c_n &c_n we_o can_v send_v you_o to_o a_o merchant_n of_o the_o same_o stamp_n that_o yourselves_o be_v of_o where_o you_o shall_v see_v as_o much_o as_o i_o say_v debate_v &_o commend_v with_o no_o small_a bravery_n pigh_a hierarch_n lib_n 6._o cap_n 5._o &_o 4._o i_o grant_v this_o man_n in_o a_o other_o place_n be_v 372._o be_v perp._n gov_n pag._n 370._o 371._o 372._o contrary_a to_o this_o but_o that_o be_v no_o news_n in_o he_o for_o i_o know_v nothing_o almost_o which_o be_v controvert_v but_o if_o he_o affirm_v it_o in_o one_o place_n he_o deny_v it_o in_o another_o as_o touch_v the_o scripture_n which_o he_o produce_v for_o his_o warrant_n they_o be_v the_o same_o which_o d._n downame_n also_o 2.4_o also_o def._n 2.4_o mention_v &_o be_v often_o allege_v by_o many_o man_n at_o random_n for_o god_n know_v they_o come_v nothing_o near_o to_o the_o purpose_n the_o text_n be_v math._n 18.17_o act._n 15.22_o both_o which_o indeed_o be_v to_o be_v take_v proper_o and_o literal_o and_o not_o improper_o and_o figurative_o as_o they_o in_o a_o idle_a imagination_n do_v think_v their_o imagination_n i_o say_v herein_o be_v idle_a because_o they_o have_v no_o reason_n for_o they_o in_o the_o world_n require_v that_o this_o word_n ecclesia_fw-la here_o shall_v be_v figurative_a which_o be_v ground_n 33_o ground_n d._n down_o def._n â_o 33_o enough_o for_o we_o and_o assurance_n also_o that_o it_o ought_v here_o to_o be_v understand_v as_o proper_a beside_o those_o two_o doctor_n be_v both_o learned_a in_o the_o greek_a tongue_n let_v they_o show_v that_o this_o word_n be_v ever_o use_v by_o any_o good_a author_n live_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n or_o before_o for_o a_o confistorie_n of_o governor_n only_o or_o else_o they_o ought_v to_o acknowledge_v they_o speak_v idle_o and_o untrue_o if_o no_o such_o place_n can_v be_v show_v as_o i_o be_o very_o sure_a there_o can_v not_o shall_v we_o think_v the_o apostle_n speak_v and_o write_v greek_a in_o such_o a_o phrase_n as_o none_o in_o all_o the_o world_n ever_o speak_v either_o before_o or_o in_o their_o day_n what_o absurdity_n and_o unconscionable_a presumption_n be_v it_o so_o to_o think_v i_o know_v they_o and_o other_o do_v allege_v some_o greek_a father_n that_o do_v take_v the_o word_n ecclesia_fw-la sometime_o for_o the_o governor_n only_o but_o those_o father_n live_v 300._o year_n after_o the_o time_n of_o write_v the_o new_a testament_n and_o late_a now_o the_o aposty_n frame_v not_o their_o language_n to_o the_o manner_n of_o speak_v so_o long_o after_o their_o own_o age_n many_o and_o great_a alteration_n be_v come_v in_o by_o that_o time_n by_o reason_n whereof_o their_o speech_n begin_v much_o to_o alter_v also_o and_o we_o follow_v they_o must_v needs_o equivocat_n some_o point_n therein_o i_o note_v â5_n note_v reaâ_n for_o âef_n pag._n 4â_n 64._o â5_n herefore_o but_o our_o adversaty_n will_v not_o remember_v nor_o consider_v that_o the_o effect_n of_o all_o that_o i_o say_v be_v this_o eusâbius_n beodoret_n epiphanius_n chrysostome_n and_o such_o other_o of_o those_o time_n be_v not_o our_o apostle_n nor_o master_n of_o our_o faith_n nor_o equal_a interpreter_n of_o the_o true_a apostle_n chiefây_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o church_n government_n there_o be_v to_o much_o iniquity_n to_o much_o anomy_n enter_v then_o and_o increase_v still_o afterward_o till_o antichrist_n himself_o stand_v up_o which_o be_v anon_o after_o ân_v such_o case_n therefore_o let_v we_o retire_v ourselves_o as_o we_o be_v command_v to_o the_o plain_a and_o unpartial_a and_o sincere_a evidence_n of_o christ_n law_n and_o testimony_n if_o any_o speak_v not_o according_a this_o word_n it_o be_v because_o there_o be_v no_o light_n in_o they_o sure_o the_o universad_a sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o this_o greek_a word_n ecclesia_fw-la in_o all_o pure_a and_o uncorrupt_a time_n be_v to_o signify_v the_o whole_a assembly_n even_o the_o people_n evermore_o together_o wâth_v their_o guide_n unless_o their_o state_n be_v such_o that_o they_o have_v no_o guide_n as_o at_o some_o instant_n happy_o the_o case_n may_v be_v but_o always_o it_o signify_v the_o people_n and_o those_o assemble_v together_o in_o one_o place_n which_o also_o be_v the_o proper_a signification_n of_o the_o latin_a word_n concio_fw-la and_o nothing_o else_o ecclesia_fw-la concio_fw-la be_v the_o just_a exposition_n of_o ecclesia_fw-la it_o be_v madness_n therefore_o to_o go_v from_o the_o native_a &_o proper_a sense_n of_o the_o apostle_n word_n without_o cause_n and_o if_o the_o humane_a politic_a reason_n where_o with_o doct._n bilson_n 376._o bilson_n perp._n gov_n pa._n 370._o 372._o 374._o 376._o flourish_v be_v warrant_n for_o we_o without_o christ_n word_n to_o erect_v such_o a_o spiritual_a government_n as_o be_v in_o absolute_a synod_n over_o christendom_n beside_o that_o than_o man_n tradition_n and_o politic_a inâentions_n may_v be_v receive_v as_o spiritual_a instrument_n in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n which_o impiety_n i_o think_v all_o good_a christian_n have_v long_o since_o abhor_v moreover_o a_o plain_a &_o direct_a way_n be_v open_v for_o a_o universal_a papacy_n and_o for_o a_o universal_a consistory_n of_o cardinal_n to_o be_v place_v over_o all_o christ_n people_n i_o say_v the_o humane_a reason_n allege_v do_v enforce_v this_o as_o well_o yea_o much_o better_a then_o that_o each_o christian_a nation_n shall_v be_v ordinary_o leave_v to_o themselves_o and_o not_o be_v rule_v spiritual_o by_o some_o one_o general_a ordinary_a superior_a by_o who_o all_o in_o all_o country_n may_v be_v reduce_v to_o unity_n this_o may_v easy_o be_v adorn_v with_o more_o flower_n of_o rhetoric_n than_o he_o there_o do_v or_o can_v set_v upon_o his_o matter_n again_o over_o &_o beside_o this_o there_o be_v a_o other_o plain_a logical_a consequence_n which_o will_v induce_v a_o pope_n if_o any_o representative_a church_n be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v of_o divine_a institution_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n for_o if_o any_o representative_a church_n be_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n of_o divine_a institution_n than_o such_o a_o provincial_n representative_a church_n be_v nay_o than_o a_o universal_a representative_a church_n be_v of_o divine_a institution_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n church_n arepresentâtâve_v church_n by_o a_o representative_a church_n i_o mean_v the_o guide_n one_o or_o more_o have_v power_n to_o exercise_v spiritual_a governemet_v without_o any_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n which_o also_o be_v a_o church_n figurative_o viz._n by_o a_o syneedoche_n and_o this_o all_o man_n agree_v unto_o again_o if_o a_o universal_a representative_a church_n be_v of_o divine_a institution_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n than_o a_o universal_a church_n represent_v or_o such_o a_o proper_a church_n whereof_o the_o figurative_a be_v a_o figure_n and_o a_o representation_n be_v of_o divine_a institution_n also_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n this_o sequence_n be_v of_o arâstoâ_n of_o relativa_fw-la fuut_n simul_fw-la arâstoâ_n infallible_a truth_n some_o have_v think_v the_o figurative_a universal_a church_n viz._n the_o universal_a synod_n may_v represent_v not_o one_o universal_a proper_a church_n but_o a_o number_n of_o particular_a independent_a church_n but_o this_o be_v untrue_a &_o impossible_a as_o any_o shall_v see_v that_o well_o consider_v it_o as_o for_o our_o present_a adversary_n they_o do_v acknowledge_v &_o maintain_v the_o effect_n of_o this_o sequence_n at_o least_o they_o say_v it_o in_o plain_a term_n d._n bilson_n teach_v that_o christ_n have_v 377_o have_v perp._n gov_n pa._n 372._o 377_o one_o church_n in_o general_a which_o be_v a_o whole_a have_v all_o particular_a church_n part_n to_o be_v rule_v by_o the_o whole_a and_o that_o this_o one_o whole_a or_o general_a church_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ._n doct._n downame_n express_o say_v 3.4_o say_v def._n 3.4_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v but_o one_o body_n thus_o in_o plain_a term_n they_o acknowledge_v and_o teach_v as_o i_o say_v one_o proper_a church_n universal_a under_o outward_a government_n what_o meaning_n they_o have_v herein_o god_n know_v now_o from_o hence_o i_o reason_v further_o if_o one_o universal_a proper_a church_n subject_a to_o out_o ward_v government_n be_v of_o divine_a institution_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n than_o a_o universal_a ordinary_a pastor_n be_v of_o divine_a institution_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n this_o consequence_n though_o in_o truth_n it_o be_v undeniable_a and_o inevitable_a yet_o they_o in_o word_n deny_v it_o with_o vehemence_n without_o sense_n &_o reason_n d._n downame_n say_v 3.4.6_o defenc._n 1.17_o and_o 3.4.6_o he_o be_v antichrist_n that_o assume_v to_o himself_o the_o government_n
of_o the_o universal_a church_n which_o yet_o he_o acknowledge_v be_v to_o be_v govern_v out_o ward_o m._n gabr._n powell_n like_o a_o wise_a man_n make_v it_o a_o heresy_n in_o the_o pope_n to_o hold_v as_o he_o do_v 254._o do_v gabr._fw-la powel_n de_fw-la antichristo_fw-la pag._n 254._o in_o eccesia_n oportere_fw-la esse_fw-la visibile_fw-la caput_fw-la that_o in_o the_o visible_a church_n there_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o visible_a head_n what_o do_v i_o hear_v a_o visible_a body_n institute_v by_o christ_n without_o a_o visible_a head_n a_o church_n and_o no_o pastor_n a_o multitude_n to_o be_v govern_v and_o no_o governor_n these_o be_v strange_a assertion_n who_o soever_o &_o how_o many_o soever_o do_v affirm_v they_o for_o i_o grant_v there_o be_v not_o a_o few_o other_o also_o which_o use_n so_o to_o speak_v but_o in_o deed_n there_o be_v no_o colour_n of_o truth_n nor_o reason_n in_o these_o say_n some_o will_v say_v d._n 372._o d._n perp._n gov_n pag._n 372._o bilson_n &_o d._n 3.4_o d._n def._n 3.4_o downame_n both_o do_v show_v that_o this_o one_o body_n and_o church_n universal_a be_v to_o be_v govern_v by_o a_o universal_a synod_n do_v they_o so_o very_o well_o then_o who_o shall_v call_v this_o synod_n the_o call_n of_o provincial_n synod_n 39â_n synod_n perp._n gov_n pa._n 377_o 39â_n they_o make_v a_o good_a reason_n for_o a_o metropolitan_a or_o archbishop_n certain_o the_o call_n of_o a_o universal_a synod_n do_v far_o better_o and_o more_o necessary_o require_v a_o pope_n ablosute_n a_o universal_a synod_n ablosute_n nay_o ât_z require_v a_o pope_n certain_o beside_o it_o be_v a_o question_n whether_o a_o universal_a synod_n have_v ever_o be_v or_o can_v possible_o âe_v right_o and_o due_o have_v at_o the_o most_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o such_o synod_n be_v exceed_o rare_a and_o seldom_o and_o hardly_o effect_v 18.15.16.17_o math._n 18.15.16.17_o but_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o church_n government_n be_v frequent_a continual_a and_o every_o day_n what_o shall_v we_o think_v have_v christ_n leave_v his_o body_n &_o dear_a spouse_n without_o help_n without_o government_n in_o such_o daily_a and_o continual_a necessity_n or_o can_v a_o ordinary_a body_n be_v govern_v without_o a_o ordinary_a head_n to_o use_v d._n bilsons_n word_n 376._o word_n perp._n gov_n pag._n 376._o this_o be_v a_o heathenish_a if_o not_o a_o hellish_a confusion_n wherefore_o these_o consequence_n all_o do_v follow_v certain_o and_o necessary_o a_o universal_a church_n must_v have_v a_o universal_a ordinary_a pastor_n and_o so_o much_o touch_v the_o proposition_n of_o this_o reason_n my_o assumption_n be_v this_o but_o no_o universal_a ordinary_a pastor_n be_v of_o divine_a institution_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o this_o they_o all_o affirm_v with_o i_o constant_o therefore_o the_o conclusion_n be_v true_a viz_o no_o universal_a proper_a church_n and_o consequent_o also_o no_o universal_a nor_o any_o other_o representative_a church_n be_v of_o divine_a institution_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n hitherto_o i_o have_v show_v our_o reason_n and_o witness_n against_o synod_n exercise_v absolute_a power_n spiritual_a over_o christian_a people_n which_o be_v also_o church_n representative_a to_o which_o business_n i_o have_v be_v force_v by_o do._n downame_n importunat_a flannder_n both_o general_o against_o we_o and_o against_o myself_o in_o particular_a who_o herein_o first_o compare_v we_o to_o the_o 4â_n the_o def._n 1_o 4â_n pope_n from_o who_o he_o know_v we_o be_v far_o enough_o of_o where_o as_o indeed_o his_o absolute_a synod_n do_v agree_v with_o the_o pope_n too_o well_o and_o do_v make_v to_o much_o for_o he_o as_o 112.113.114_o as_o pag._n 110.111_o 112.113.114_o before_o we_o see_v then_o he_o upbraid_v we_o that_o we_o will_v not_o be_v rule_v by_o synod_n i_o answer_v we_o submit_v ourselves_o to_o be_v rule_v spiritual_o by_o christ_n true_a visible_a church_n institute_v in_o his_o word_n and_o what_o will_v he_o have_v more_o three_o he_o go_v about_o to_o deny_v that_o we_o subject_n our_o self_n to_o the_o king_n supremacy_n whether_o he_o do_v this_o with_o more_o malice_n or_o foolishness_n i_o know_v not_o for_o he_o can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a that_o though_o we_o affirm_v that_o the_o church_n government_n be_v independent_a and_o immediate_o derive_v from_o christ_n yet_o we_o affirm_v also_o &_o it_o stand_v with_o good_a reason_n that_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n be_v even_o therein_o supreme_a governor_n civil_o and_o though_o nothing_o may_v be_v impose_v on_o the_o christian_a people_n of_o a_o congregation_n against_o their_o will_n by_o any_o spiritual_a authority_n for_o so_o only_o we_o intend_v yet_o we_o affirm_v withal_o that_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n may_v impose_v on_o they_o spiritual_a matter_n by_o civil_a power_n yea_o whether_o they_o like_v or_o dislike_n if_o he_o see_v it_o good_a this_o we_o all_o glad_o acknowledge_v wherein_o we_o refer_v ourselves_o to_o that_o which_o we_o have_v etc._n have_v petit._n for_o toleration_n offer_n etc._n etc._n public_o write_v &_o protest_v in_o this_o behalf_n four_o he_o false_o charge_v i_o by_o name_n that_o i_o in_o my_o book_n of_o reason_n for_o reformation_n do_v not_o acknowledge_v in_o synod_n any_o lawful_a authority_n 3.4_o authority_n def._n 3.4_o to_o determine_v he_o may_v 382.383_o may_v perp._n gov_n pa._n 382.383_o thus_o charge_v doctor_n bilson_n but_o i_o in_o that_o book_n and_o place_n which_o he_o wrangle_v with_o do_v express_o say_v 31_o say_v reas._n for_o reform_v p._n 31_o synod_n determination_n be_v most_o expedient_a and_o wholesome_a always_o in_o which_o respect_n i_o 89._o i_o see_v before_o pag._n 89._o allow_v also_o the_o apostle_n practise_v in_o act._n 15._o as_o be_v both_o a_o synod_n and_o a_o authentic_a rule_n and_o pattern_n for_o synod_n where_o the_o apostle_n with_o other_o when_o a_o occasion_n &_o cause_n be_v give_v they_o do_v not_o only_o meet_v together_o &_o consult_v but_o also_o they_o do_v define_v determine_v and_o decree_v certain_a point_n yea_o they_o deliver_v the_o same_o to_o divers_a church_n to_o be_v keep_v who_o have_v no_o deputy_n for_o they_o present_v in_o that_o apostolic_a assembly_n howbeit_o these_o apostle_n deliver_v abroad_o these_o their_o decree_n only_o so_o and_o in_o such_o wise_a as_o inform_v and_o teach_v all_o man_n thereby_o what_o they_o ought_v to_o do_v that_o be_v in_o manner_n of_o doctrine_n to_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n who_o it_o most_o concern_v only_o this_o they_o say_v if_o you_o observe_v these_o thing_n 15.29_o thing_n act._n 15.29_o you_o shall_v do_v well_o they_o say_v not_o the_o minister_n that_o embrace_v not_o these_o ordinance_n be_v deprive_v of_o his_o ministry_n the_o person_n receyve_v they_o not_o be_v excommunicate_a ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la or_o he_o be_v anathema_n accurse_v as_o some_o synod_n do_v pronounce_v i_o grant_v synod_n may_v discuss_v and_o determine_v of_o error_n and_o may_v pronounce_v they_o wicked_a and_o accurse_a error_n but_o actual_o excommunicate_a man_n person_n the_o apostle_n never_o do_v without_o the_o concurrence_n and_o consent_n of_o that_o congregation_n where_o they_o be_v member_n wherefore_o more_o than_o this_o no_o synod_n at_o any_o time_n may_v do_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o gospel_n if_o any_o do_v impose_v any_o of_o their_o act_n on_o a_o congregation_n whether_o they_o like_v or_o dislike_n upon_o pawn_n of_o some_o spiritual_a censure_n yea_o if_o it_o be_v on_o any_o one_o person_n without_o the_o same_o congregation_n consent_v of_o which_o he_o be_v certain_o as_o i_o say_v it_o be_v more_o than_o the_o apostle_n ever_o do_v in_o the_o church-governement_n and_o therefore_o we_o can_v not_o out_o conclude_v that_o it_o be_v now_o unlawful_a for_o we_o so_o to_o do_v also_o it_o be_v that_o point_n which_o all_o the_o forenote_v sentence_n of_o those_o late_a writer_n most_o excellent_a light_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v condemn_v wherefore_o we_o willing_o take_v that_o apostolic_a practice_n in_o act._n 15._o both_o as_o be_v a_o synod_n &_o also_o a_o good_a pattern_n of_o synod_n for_o ever_o neither_o do_v we_o in_o deed_n mislike_v any_o christian_a synod_n but_o great_o approve_v of_o they_o though_o some_o out_o of_o malice_n do_v object_n to_o we_o the_o contrary_a always_o the_o apostle_n practise_v we_o take_v for_o our_o rule_n and_o so_o much_o touch_v the_o second_o consequent_a in_o this_o chapter_n three_o it_o be_v admit_v as_o christ_n ordinance_n that_o the_o church_n government_n ought_v to_o be_v always_o with_o the_o people_n free_a consent_n it_o follow_v that_o lord_n bishop_n in_o several_a be_v unlawful_a &_o contrary_a to_o christ_n now_o a_o lord_n bishop_n lord_n who_o be_v a_o spiritual_a lord_n and_o a_o spiritual_a lord_n we_o always_o understand_v he_o to_o be_v who_o exercise_v sole_a authority_n
spiritual_a or_o sole_a government_n ecclesiastical_a yea_o though_o over_o but_o one_o congregation_n much_o more_o he_o who_o exercise_v such_o spiritual_a lordship_n over_o a_o great_a many_o congregation_n also_o sense_n what_o be_v sole_a authority_n spiritual_a in_o our_o sense_n sole_a authority_n spiritual_a and_o sole_a government_n ecclesiastical_a we_o call_v that_o which_o be_v exercise_v without_o the_o christian_a people_n free_a consent_n d._n downame_n labour_v with_o divers_a vain_a shift_n to_o defend_v the_o english_a l._n bishop_n herein_o he_o can_v not_o abide_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v say_v of_o they_o that_o they_o exercise_v 1.58.47.43_o exercise_v def._n 1.58.47.43_o sole_a authority_n or_o sole_a government_n yea_o in_o many_o place_n he_o 118.11â.126.142_n he_o def_n 3_o 118.11â.126.142_n show_v indignation_n that_o such_o wrong_n shall_v be_v do_v they_o in_o be_v so_o report_v of_o but_o it_o be_v strange_a be_v they_o ashamed_a to_o hear_v of_o that_o which_o they_o cease_v not_o to_o practice_v and_o maintain_v every_o day_n and_o that_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o world_n yea_o each_o of_o they_o over_o divers_a hundred_o of_o congregation_n for_o the_o people_n with_o we_o no_o where_n enjoy_v any_o free_a consent_n but_o the_o d._n say_v 1.43.44_o say_v def._n 1.43.44_o the_o bishop_n have_v the_o archbishop_n above_o he_o yea_o but_o who_o be_v above_o our_o 2._o archbishop_n spiritual_o no_o body_n again_o he_o say_v provincial_n synod_n be_v above_o the_o bishop_n idle_o speak_v be_v the_o diocesan_n synod_n above_o their_o own_o bishop_n or_o be_v the_o provincial_n synod_n above_o their_o archbishop_n sure_o no_o more_o than_o the_o universal_a council_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n which_o be_v clean_a contrary_n now_o this_o be_v it_o which_o he_o shall_v have_v affirm_v buthe_n dare_v not_o he_o shift_v further_a say_v 44._o say_v pag._n 44._o do_v we_o not_o all_o with_o one_o consent_n acknowledge_v the_o king_n majesty_n to_o have_v the_o supreme_a authority_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a yea_o very_o we_o do_v but_o that_o be_v civil_o as_o ââ_o as_o reas._o for_o ref_o p._n 62._o ââ_o elsewhere_a i_o have_v show_v he_o have_v no_o authority_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a spiritual_o that_o be_v his_o authority_n proper_o make_v no_o church_n minister_n nor_o excommunicate_v any_o person_n which_o i_o suppose_v yourselves_o do_v hold_v even_o as_o we_o do_v but_o this_o be_v the_o point_n in_o england_n the_o archb._n be_v spiritual_o supreme_a or_o have_v supreme_a authority_n spiritual_a in_o his_o province_n i_o say_v thus_o he_o be_v supreme_a &_o sole_a viz._n spiritual_o wherefore_o the_o doct._n elenchi_fw-la ignorantia_fw-la elenchi_fw-la gross_o sophisticate_v in_o shift_v from_o the_o poâât_n in_o hand_n to_o a_o other_o matter_n where_o he_o speak_v of_o 43_o of_o def._n 1._o p._n 43_o chancellor_n adjoin_v to_o the_o bishop_n and_o of_o presbyter_n consent_v with_o he_o &_o that_o 42._o that_o pag._n 42._o presbyter_n have_v power_n to_o rule_v their_o flock_n in_o public_a ministry_n and_o in_o private_a attendance_n &_o that_o some_o of_o they_o have_v voice_n in_o synod_n etc._n etc._n i_o wot_v not_o what_o all_o this_o be_v sure_o i_o be_o it_o be_v as_o idle_a as_o the_o rest_n for_o so_o much_o at_o least_o be_v see_v in_o the_o popish_a church_n where_o yet_o be_v find_v spiritual_a lordship_n &_o sole_a government_n in_o their_o bishop_n yea_o oppression_n violence_n &_o tyranny_n also_o over_o the_o people_n conscience_n as_o we_o well_o know_v so_o that_o the_o 43._o the_o pag._n 43._o supreme_a and_o loud_a by_o and_o 47._o and_o pag._n 47._o the_o plain_o which_o he_o give_v to_o we_o he_o ought_v to_o take_v to_o himself_o another_o shift_n of_o the_o doct._n be_v where_o because_o the_o hebrew_n adoni_n the_o greek_a ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o latin_a dominus_fw-la may_v be_v give_v to_o bishop_n therefore_o 3.147_o therefore_o def._n 3.147_o he_o will_v conclude_v that_o in_o english_a they_o may_v be_v call_v lord_n d._n bilson_n reason_v 59_o reason_v perp_n gov_fw-mi pag._n 58._o 59_o so_o likewise_o and_o that_o very_o large_o he_o will_v prove_v the_o same_o also_o from_o the_o dutch_a term_n here_o &_o from_o the_o french_a monsieur_n etc._n etc._n but_o i_o deny_v this_o reason_n absolute_o for_o herein_o there_o be_v no_o consequence_n our_o english_a term_n lord_n and_o lordship_n do_v always_o imply_v sole_a government_n but_o none_o of_o those_o foreign_a term_n do_v so_o always_o wherefore_o such_o reason_n be_v equivocate_a also_o 1.24_o also_o joh._n 13.13_o &_o 1_o cor._n 8.6_o &_o 12.5_o &_o 2._o cor._n 1.24_o again_o christ_n only_o be_v our_o lord_n in_o respect_n of_o spiritual_a lordship_n he_o only_o be_v to_o be_v call_v a_o spiritual_a lord_n but_o our_o bishop_n be_v lord_n and_o be_v so_o call_v with_o we_o in_o respect_n as_o they_o be_v spiritual_a lord_n as_o the_o doctor_n 3.150_o doctor_n def._n 3.150_o observe_v well_o wherefore_o our_o bishop_n lordship_n be_v unlawful_a and_o derogatory_n to_o christ_n doct._n bilson_n say_v further_a 62._o further_a perp._n gov_n pag._n 62._o if_o we_o stick_v at_o title_n christ_n call_v they_o go_n lo_o how_o nothing_o satisfy_v these_o man_n will_v he_o have_v bishop_n call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o god_n also_o but_o i_o will_v know_v of_o he_o where_o do_v christ_n call_v they_o god_n sure_o it_o be_v but_o his_o fancy_n they_o be_v in_o deed_n so_o call_v no_o where_o d._n downame_n press_v that_o bishop_n be_v call_v 3.146.150_o call_v def._n 3.146.150_o angel_n which_o be_v a_o more_o honour_n able_a title_n than_o lord_n and_o therefore_o that_o bishop_n may_v be_v call_v lord_n i_o deny_v that_o the_o name_n angel_n be_v so_o honourable_a a_o title_n as_o a_o spiritual_a lord_n which_o be_v give_v to_o our_o bishop_n this_o be_v proper_a to_o christ_n only_o as_o before_o be_v say_v the_o name_n angel_n be_v not_o and_o so_o his_o reason_n be_v false_a again_o though_o the_o name_n angel_n be_v give_v to_o bishop_n sometime_o and_o in_o one_o respect_n yet_o it_o be_v very_o false_a to_o say_v they_o may_v lawful_o be_v style_v and_o call_v by_o the_o daily_a appellation_n of_o angel_n or_o that_o they_o may_v ordinary_o use_v that_o title_n as_o they_o do_v the_o title_n &_o name_n of_o lord_n again_o the_o name_n of_o lord_n be_v give_v they_o as_o import_v their_o sole_a government_n as_o before_o be_v say_v but_o the_o name_n angel_n import_v not_o so_o much_o neither_o be_v it_o give_v to_o any_o creature_n in_o such_o respect_n therefore_o from_o the_o name_n of_o angel_n the_o title_n of_o lord_n follow_v not_o indeed_o the_o name_n of_o angel_n be_v give_v to_o bishop_n because_o they_o be_v god_n messenger_n to_o show_v we_o his_o will_n not_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o government_n at_o all_o though_o the_o doct._n presume_v so_o to_o say_v without_o proof_n without_o a_o allegory_n be_v no_o proof_n proof_n last_o he_o know_v that_o all_o preacher_n be_v in_o the_o word_n call_v angel_n or_o messenger_n but_o for_o all_o preacher_n to_o be_v call_v in_o english_a lord_n or_o your_o lordship_n sure_o it_o will_v be_v a_o very_a arrogant_a thing_n and_o though_o he_o 1.34.46_o he_o def._n 1.34.46_o allege_v that_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n in_o rev._n 2.1_o be_v one_o and_o but_o one_o before_o many_o minister_n yet_o neither_o do_v this_o import_n any_o lordship_n in_o he_o either_o in_o name_n or_o practice_v neither_o be_v this_o precedence_n or_o praeeminence_n signify_v by_o the_o word_n angel_n but_o it_o be_v gather_v by_o compare_v this_o word_n with_o the_o know_a circumstance_n of_o those_o time_n further_o he_o allege_v that_o 3.152_o that_o def._n 3.152_o prince_n be_v call_v pastor_n and_o for_o the_o same_o cause_n be_v lord_n wherein_o there_o be_v no_o truth_n nor_o indeed_o any_o good_a sense_n the_o like_a be_v that_o where_o he_o add_v the_o title_n of_o father_n be_v as_o great_a as_o lord._n nay_o the_o name_n of_o father_n be_v amiable_a but_o lord_n may_v and_o also_o they_o use_v to_o force_v and_o compel_v neither_o do_v the_o pope_n at_o first_o take_v the_o name_n of_o father_n peculiarly_a to_o himself_o to_o note_v thereby_o any_o lordship_n as_o his_o due_n but_o to_o deceive_v the_o world_n by_o his_o pretend_a love_n over_o all_o wherein_o he_o desire_v to_o seem_v a_o common_a father_n in_o another_o 4.71.72_o another_o def._n 4.71.72_o place_n he_o teach_v that_o bishop_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v call_v apostle_n upon_o which_o ground_n he_o 15â_n he_o def._n 3_o 15â_n will_v conclude_v that_o therefore_o the_o name_n of_o lord_n be_v lawful_a for_o they_o i_o answer_v the_o name_n of_o apostle_n and_o also_o of_o bishop_n may_v be_v use_v sometime_o
general_o &_o improper_o sometime_o strict_o and_o proper_o and_o we_o ought_v always_o to_o speak_v thus_o viz._n proper_o when_o we_o reason_n and_o dispure_v of_o any_o matter_n if_o the_o doct._n think_v general_o and_o improper_o bishop_n may_v be_v call_v apostle_n and_o likewise_o that_o apostle_n may_v be_v call_v bishop_n and_o if_o 4.72_o if_o def._n 4.72_o theodore_v mean_a so_o i_o will_v not_o gainsay_v but_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n yea_o and_o now_o still_o these_o name_n may_v be_v interchangeable_o use_v but_o this_o will_v prove_v nothing_o for_o the_o d._n purpose_n for_o so_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o mere_a equivocation_n therein_o if_o he_o or_o any_o other_o think_v that_o bishop_n be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o new_a testam_fw-la call_v apostle_n in_o the_o strict_a and_o proper_a sense_n of_o those_o word_n doubtless_o they_o err_v egregious_o or_o that_o bishop_n than_o be_v call_v apostle_n by_o a_o daily_a ordinary_a and_o familiar_a a_o pâllation_n as_o our_o bishop_n be_v call_v lord_n which_o yet_o must_v be_v prove_v or_o else_o they_o have_v no_o colour_n from_o hence_o he_o make_v great_a ado_n about_o phil._n 2.25_o that_o from_o hence_o epaphroditus_n may_v be_v prove_v to_o have_v be_v the_o philippian_n bishop_n etc._n defenc._n 4.65_o etc._n etc._n though_o he_o may_v be_v their_o bishop_n yet_o the_o circumstance_n of_o this_o place_n show_v that_o this_o be_v mean_v of_o his_o bring_v relief_n unto_o paul_n from_o the_o philippian_n as_o some_o do_v to_o the_o saint_n at_o jerusalem_n from_o the_o corinthian_n 2._o cor._n 8.23_o as_o for_o theodâret_n who_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o d._n opinion_n herein_o he_o be_v insufficient_a and_o no_o equal_a nor_o just_a foundation_n of_o this_o matter_n i_o know_v 1.15_o know_v bellarm._n de_fw-fr cleric_n 1.15_o bellarmine_n and_o other_o prelate_n will_v fain_o make_v somewhat_o of_o this_o unhandsome_a shift_n in_o their_o own_o defence_n yet_o they_o know_v not_o how_o all_o this_o be_v true_a and_o yet_o i_o grant_v as_o i_o say_v epaphroditus_n may_v be_v the_o philippian_n bishop_n as_o some_o write_v that_o he_o be_v but_o indeed_o i_o think_v rather_o he_o be_v with_o they_o as_o a_o evangelist_n proper_o like_v as_o timothy_n and_o after_o he_o tychicus_n be_v at_o ephesus_n and_z titus_n in_o 9_o in_o 2._o cor._n 8._o &_o 9_o achaia_n and_o afterward_o in_o crete_n and_o mark_v in_o alexandria_n &_o egypt_n as_o some_o say_v well_o but_o let_v it_o be_v grant_v which_o yet_o be_v not_o to_o be_v grant_v that_o bishop_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v by_o a_o daily_a ordinary_a and_o familiar_a appellation_n call_v apostle_n yet_o neither_o hence_o can_v it_o follow_v that_o they_o may_v be_v lord_n or_o may_v be_v so_o call_v for_o no_o apostle_n be_v ever_o so_o great_a in_o respect_n of_o outward_a jurisdiction_n over_o any_o one_o congregation_n none_o i_o say_v be_v ever_o a_o sole_a governor_n over_o one_o congreg_n as_o our_o l._n bishop_n be_v over_o many_o hundred_o beside_o this_o the_o d._n 3.148_o d._n def._n 3.148_o will_v have_v the_o term_n give_v to_o prelate_n by_o prelate_n and_o by_o their_o dependent_n in_o the_o time_n of_o constantiââ_n and_o since_o to_o be_v reason_n &_o warrant_v now_o unto_o we_o to_o call_v our_o bishop_n lord_n and_o most_o honourable_a lord_n which_o be_v like_a to_o that_o where_o he_o say_v 13._o say_v pag._n 13._o he_o see_v no_o reason_n why_o the_o church_n in_o constantine_n time_n shall_v not_o rather_o be_v propound_v as_o a_o pattern_n for_o imitation_n to_o church_n that_o live_v under_o christian_a prince_n than_o the_o church_n of_o former_a time_n a_o say_v fit_a for_o a_o diplodophilus_n fit_a for_o one_o who_o care_v not_o to_o take_v from_o christ_n his_o office_n and_o honour_n and_o to_o give_v it_o to_o prelate_n and_o prince_n for_o this_o be_v christ_n due_a and_o immutable_a right_n and_o divine_a glory_n in_o his_o testament_n to_o set_v the_o pattern_n of_o his_o visible_a church_n for_o we_o to_o imitate_v for_o ever_o and_o every_o where_o even_o in_o peace_n as_o well_o as_o in_o persecution_n as_o touch_v constantine_n and_o the_o bishop_n then_o and_o after_o for_o some_o hundred_o of_o year_n though_o they_o be_v godly_a &_o virtuous_a yet_o it_o can_v not_o be_v deny_v but_o the_o bishop_n even_o then_o present_o 7.11_o present_o nazianz._n orat._n post_n redit_fw-la in_o urb_n socrat._n 7.11_o be_v carry_v with_o much_o ambition_n and_o strive_v for_o praeeminence_n and_o outward_a greatness_n and_o the_o prince_n let_v they_o have_v it_o think_v that_o therein_o they_o do_v service_n to_o god_n but_o they_o know_v not_o that_o they_o do_v amiss_o yea_o indeed_o under_o constantine_n begin_v the_o diocese_n a_o roll_a bishop_n who_o till_o this_o time_n have_v but_o a_o name_n and_o no_o power_n diocesan_n 8._o diocesan_n reas._n for_o reform_v pag._n 8._o heretofore_o i_o guess_v they_o may_v have_v be_v elder_a but_o the_o truth_n be_v they_o have_v no_o life_n nor_o strength_n of_o diocesan_n till_o under_o constantine_n and_o the_o nicen_n council_n which_o i_o have_v declare_v in_o 24._o in_o declar._n pa._n 24._o a_o other_o place_n likewise_o after_o which_o time_n ambition_n and_o dominion_n ecclesiastical_a do_v still_o grow_v and_o increase_v more_o and_o more_o even_o in_o the_o best_a father_n whereby_o antichrist_n at_o the_o last_o do_v easy_o come_v up_o in_o which_o regard_n master_n brightman_n judge_v that_o the_o prophecy_n of_o the_o woman_n be_v drive_v into_o the_o wilderness_n by_o the_o dragon_n 12._o t._n brightm_n in_o apoc._n 12._o rev._n 12._o begin_v to_o take_v effect_n under_o constantine_n and_o to_o be_v accomplish_v still_o more_o and_o more_o till_o in_o the_o end_n utter_a darkness_n and_o tyranny_n overflow_v now_o then_o be_v the_o deed_n and_o word_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o these_o time_n meet_v rule_n for_o we_o to_o follow_v namely_o as_o touchinge_a prelacy_n and_o church_n government_n be_v it_o equal_a to_o make_v these_o our_o judge_n herein_o no_o by_o no_o mean_n which_o i_o have_v signify_v also_o 109â_n also_o pag._n 109â_n before_o yea_o if_o there_o be_v no_o peril_n as_o there_o be_v much_o in_o follow_v their_o word_n and_o deed_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o church_n government_n aforesaid_a yet_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o offer_v so_o much_o wrong_n to_o christ_n and_o his_o word_n as_o to_o seek_v for_o direction_n and_o warrant_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o conscience_n any_o where_o but_o in_o his_o word_n howbeit_o notwithstanding_o all_o this_o though_o those_o title_n give_v to_o bishop_n under_o constantine_n and_o after_o as_o here_o he_o allege_v they_o be_v too_o glorious_a and_o stately_a for_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n yet_o none_o of_o they_o impli_v such_o lordship_n nor_o sole_a authority_n spiritual_a as_o with_o we_o the_o english_a word_n lord_n bishop_n do_v imply_v for_o they_o they_o have_v not_o such_o sole_a authority_n as_o i_o have_v 66._o have_v pag._n 64.63_o 66._o already_o show_v nor_o long_a time_n after_o as_o now_o they_o *_o have_v wherefore_o neither_o do_v these_o allegation_n of_o the_o doct._n that_o be_v the_o title_n give_v to_o bishop_n under_o constantin_n nor_o 100_o year_n after_o fit_v his_o turn_n neither_o will_v they_o serve_v his_o purpose_n final_o it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v how_o the_o doctor_n deny_v that_o 15â_n that_o def._n 3_o 15â_n bishop_n may_v behave_v themselves_o as_o lord_n of_o the_o church_n &_o yet_o hold_v they_o may_v be_v call_v lord_n sure_o his_o conscience_n tell_v he_o that_o it_o be_v to_o much_o which_o he_o give_v they_o for_o else_o why_o may_v they_o not_o behave_v then selve_o answerable_o and_o according_a as_o their_o just_a name_n be_v where_o he_o say_v 153._o say_v pag._n 153._o the_o title_n of_o lord_n bishop_n be_v not_o give_v with_o relation_n but_o as_o a_o simple_a title_n of_o honour_n and_o reverence_n and_o the_o relation_n be_v not_o in_o the_o word_n lord_n but_o in_o the_o word_n bishop_n this_o be_v plain_o a_o mere_a shift_n and_o a_o untruth_n for_o the_o relation_n be_v in_o both_o these_o word_n lord_n bishop_n joint_o that_o be_v to_o their_o people_n they_o be_v bishop_n with_o spiritual_a lordly_a power_n that_o be_v they_o have_v sole_a authority_n spiritual_a over_o they_o and_o so_o they_o be_v call_v lord_n spiritual_a which_o 150._o which_o pag._n 150._o he_o seem_v in_o a_o other_o place_n to_o acknowledge_v thus_o all_o in_o vain_a have_v the_o d._n labour_v to_o make_v good_a the_o lawfulness_n of_o our_o l._n bishop_n now_o four_o let_v we_o note_v that_o from_o this_o point_n that_o the_o church_n government_n ought_v to_o be_v always_o with_o the_o people_n
say_v somewhat_o in_o the_o church_n may_v 1.7_o may_v def._n 1.7_o be_v of_o apostolical_a institution_n down_n d_o down_n and_o yet_o not_o straightways_o divini_fw-la iuris_fw-la of_o divine_a right_n and_o every_o 29._o every_o pag._n 29._o apostolical_a and_o so_o divine_a ordinance_n be_v not_o general_o perpetual_o and_o immutable_o necessary_a which_o he_o do_v often_o repeat_v in_o his_o 4._o book_n it_o seem_v to_o be_v take_v from_o bellarmine_n the_o jesuit_n controv._n 1._o lib._n 4._o cap._n 2._o i_o be_o sure_a it_o be_v contrary_a to_o holy_a scripture_n which_o show_v that_o the_o apostle_n whole_a practice_n in_o the_o church_n be_v christ_n very_a commandment_n commandemet_v the_o apostle_n practice_n be_v christ_n commandemet_v and_o unchangeable_a by_o man_n christ_n say_v to_o his_o apost_n 28.20_o apost_n math._n 28.20_o teach_v all_o nation_n to_o do_v whatsoever_o i_o have_v command_v you_o and_o paul_n testify_v to_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n 11.23_o corinth_n 1_o cor._n 11.23_o he_o receive_v of_o the_o lord_n that_o which_o he_o deliver_v to_o they_o and_o he_o charge_v other_o 2.15_o other_o 2_o thes_n 2.15_o to_o stand_v fast_o and_o to_o keep_v the_o ordinance_n which_o they_o have_v be_v teach_v either_o by_o word_n or_o by_o his_o epistle_n therefore_o whatsoever_o be_v apostolical_a be_v indeed_o divine_a and_o it_o be_v christ_n very_a commandment_n and_o in_o respect_n of_o we_o general_o and_o immutable_o necessary_a and_o so_o we_o affirm_v that_o the_o people_n consent_n in_o church_n government_n be_v a_o practice_n apostolical_a as_o by_o those_o scripture_n 19_o scripture_n pag._n 76._o &_o the_o margin_n of_o pag._n 19_o above_o specify_v it_o be_v prove_v therefore_o it_o be_v also_o christ_n commandment_n and_o therefore_o also_o unchangeable_a by_o man_n yea_o touch_v church_n censure_n it_o be_v express_o christ_n commandment_n math._n 18.17_o therefore_o i_o conclude_v see_v we_o &_o not_o they_o do_v stand_v with_o the_o all-sufficiencie_n of_o holy_a scripture_n with_o the_o entire_a and_o absolute_a office_n of_o christ_n our_o saviour_n viz._n his_o prophetical_a and_o kingly_a office_n even_o in_o teach_v and_o injoin_v a_o certain_a form_n of_o his_o church_n and_o government_n absolute_o and_o unchangeable_o for_o ever_o and_o see_v we_o not_o they_o do_v thus_o asscribe_v unto_o christ_n this_o divine_a honour_n due_a in_o deed_n to_o his_o own_o person_n whole_o and_o only_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v easy_o perceave_v that_o we_o &_o not_o they_o have_v the_o truth_n also_o we_o &_o not_o they_o be_v free_a from_o schism_n will_v any_o defend_v our_o adversary_n herein_o &_o deny_v that_o they_o thus_o teach_v against_o the_o honour_n of_o christ_n or_o of_o his_o word_n in_o his_o new_a testament_n or_o that_o the_o point_n which_o they_o hold_v do_v force_n man_n to_o any_o such_o impious_a consequent_n first_o therefore_o i_o will_v show_v that_o such_o consequentes_fw-la mus_fw-la of_o necessity_n follow_v from_o their_o opinion_n then_o i_o will_v âote_v their_o express_a word_n whosoever_o will_v not_o hold_v one_o uniform_a opinion_n of_o the_o church_n and_o government_n thereof_o as_o we_o do_v who_o believe_v the_o people_n consent_n therein_o to_o be_v always_o necessary_a but_o do_v prefer_v the_o diocesan_n and_o provincial_a church-governement_n by_o l._n bishop_n and_o yet_o do_v also_o allow_v of_o that_o form_n of_o a_o church_n and_o governent_n where_o be_v no_o diocesan_n bishop_n at_o all_o yea_o where_o the_o people_n free_a consent_n and_o voycegiving_a be_v receive_v they_o of_o necessity_n must_v say_v that_o the_o form_n of_o christ_n visible_a church_n &_o of_o the_o government_n thereof_o may_v both_o be_v institute_v and_o also_o change_v by_o man_n of_o force_n they_o must_v say_v that_o christ_n in_o his_o new_a testament_n be_v not_o the_o teacher_n institutor_n framer_n lord_n and_o lawgiver_n of_o his_o visible_a church_n as_o he_o be_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n they_o must_v deny_v christ_n prophetical_a and_o kingly_a office_n towards_o we_o in_o respect_n of_o appoint_v his_o visible_a church_n and_o government_n as_o also_o they_o must_v deny_v that_o christ_n testament_n be_v a_o sufficient_a rule_n for_o we_o every_o where_o and_o for_o ever_o but_o that_o uniform_a opinion_n our_o adversary_n do_v deny_v therefore_o such_o be_v the_o consequent_n which_o man_n be_v force_v to_o acknowledge_v who_o will_v hold_v as_o our_o adversary_n do_v now_o hear_v their_o word_n d._n downame_n say_v 4.104_o say_v d._n down_o def._n 4.104_o where_o the_o government_n by_o bishop_n can_v not_o be_v have_v another_o form_n may_v be_v use_v yea_o he_o affirm_v 4.103_o affirm_v def._n 1.29_o def._n 4.103_o the_o apostolical_a and_o so_o divine_a ordinance_n of_o government_n 82._o government_n pag_n 82._o by_o the_o bishop_n alone_o as_o he_o think_v timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v *_o command_v to_o govern_v be_v changeable_a by_o man_n and_o this_o in_o his_o 4._o book_n he_o often_o inculcate_v and_o repeat_v but_o he_o say_v he_o teach_v thus_o 3.107_o thus_o def._n 3.107_o out_o of_o charity_n to_o those_o church_n which_o have_v no_o l._n bishop_n and_o in_o 108._o in_o pag._n 108._o favour_n of_o they_o see_v this_o doctor_n how_o for_o favour_n of_o man_n he_o will_v spoil_v christ_n jesus_n of_o his_o due_a honour_n &_o glory_n such_o be_v his_o charity_n to_o man_n that_o it_o make_v he_o uncharitable_a and_o undutiful_a to_o his_o saviour_n and_o to_o his_o bless_a gospel_n but_o he_o will_v say_v perhaps_o that_o he_o grant_v this_o change_n of_o the_o apostolic_a ordinance_n and_o precept_n only_o upon_o necessity_n fie_o what_o necessity_n may_v break_v the_o apostle_n ordinance_n and_o precept_n yea_o such_o precept_n whereof_o the_o apostle_n say_v 14._o say_v 1_o tim._n 6.13_o 14._o i_o charge_v thou_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n who_o quicken_v all_o thing_n and_o before_o jesus_n christ_n etc._n etc._n that_o thou_o keep_v this_o commandment_n without_o spot_n and_o unrebukeable_a until_o the_o appear_v of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ._n again_o what_o necessity_n have_v the_o french_a and_o dutch_a church_n etc._n etc._n to_o be_v without_o diocesan_n and_o provincial_n l._n bishop_n nay_o how_o easy_o may_v they_o have_v such_o if_o they_o think_v they_o apostolic_a and_o woeful_a it_o be_v god_n know_v if_o they_o have_v need_n of_o this_o faver_n and_o charity_n of_o the_o doctor_n to_o maintain_v themselves_o withal_o against_o the_o papist_n objection_n but_o let_v we_o go_v on_o gabriel_n pawell_n also_o in_o that_o which_o he_o punish_v with_o the_o great_a allowance_n of_o the_o l._n bb._n of_o canterburic_n and_o london_n they_o being_n say_v express_o adiaph_n express_o g._n powel_n a_o prefat_n âd_a adiaph_n christ_n be_v not_o the_o law-gives_a of_o his_o church_n archbishop_z whitgâfe_n against_o master_n cartwright_n of_o bless_a memory_n say_v that_o to_o hold_v the_o form_n of_o the_o church_n &_o government_n thereof_o to_o be_v constant_a always_o one_o and_o unchangeable_a by_o man_n be_v presa_n be_v d._n whitgâ_n against_o t._n c._n in_o the_o presa_n a_o false_a principle_n and_o rot_a pillar_n so_o rotten_o write_v that_o great_a atlas_n of_o the_o prelacy_n in_o england_n d._n bilson_n make_v it_o the_o main_a drift_n of_o the_o three_o chapt._n of_o his_o perpet_n government_n to_o deny_v this_o part_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n he_o say_v 15._o say_v d._n bilson_n perp._n gov_n pag._n 14._o 15._o the_o kingdom_n and_o throne_n which_o christ_n reserve_v to_o himself_o far_o pass_v direct_v and_o order_v of_o outward_a thing_n in_o the_o church_n which_o he_o have_v leave_v to_o other_o nay_o sure_o he_o have_v ãâã_d have_v isa_n 42._o ãâã_d not_o leave_v it_o to_o other_o he_o still_o reserve_v this_o authority_n &_o dignity_n to_o himself_o under_o the_o gospel_n as_o well_o as_o he_o do_v under_o the_o law_n and_o it_o be_v more_o than_o frivolous_a by_o advaunce_v christ_n inward_a kingdom_n by_o his_o spirit_n which_o the_o doct._n do_v in_o this_o chapter_n to_o deny_v his_o outward_a kingdom_n which_o order_v the_o outward_a spiritual_a thing_n in_o his_o church_n such_o as_o be_v the_o institute_n of_o sacrament_n the_o ordain_v of_o the_o ministry_n the_o appoint_v of_o excommunication_n the_o command_v of_o sacred_a society_n and_o assembly_n etc._n etc._n be_v the_o power_n of_o these_o outward_a thing_n leave_v to_o other_o it_o be_v not_o it_o may_v not_o be_v he_o say_v here_o indeed_o that_o 16._o that_o pag._n 16._o the_o outward_a face_n of_o the_o church_n where_o the_o good_a and_o bad_a by_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n be_v gather_v together_o may_v be_v call_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o of_o christ_n and_o he_o say_v well_o but_o in_o this_o he_o either_o contradict_v his_o general_a purpose_n &_o discourse_n or_o else_o
he_o mean_v that_o it_o may_v be_v so_o call_v but_o not_o true_o which_o be_v but_o double_a deal_n for_o present_o after_o he_o say_v 17._o say_v pag._n 17._o he_o separate_v the_o true_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n from_o the_o external_a order_n and_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n which_o some_o in_o these_o day_n more_o zealous_a than_o wise_a do_v not_o separate_v so_o he_o call_v the_o faithful_a worshipper_n of_o christ_n but_o be_v it_o such_o wisdom_n i_o pray_v to_o separate_v from_o christ_n this_o his_o divine_a honour_n and_o glory_n and_o to_o give_v it_o to_o other_o nay_o this_o be_v accurse_a wisdom_n then_o a_o ministry_n suppose_v to_o be_v settle_v by_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n he_o deny_v to_o be_v any_o part_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n have_v he_o any_o reason_n for_o it_o yea_o a_o strange_a one_o say_v he_o christ_n kingdom_n be_v proper_a to_o his_o person_n as_o though_o the_o power_n and_o authority_n to_o institute_v &_o settle_v such_o a_o ordinance_n may_v not_o be_v proper_a to_o christ_n person_n and_o yet_o the_o execution_n thereof_o commit_v to_o his_o officer_n and_o deputy_n and_o nevertheless_o all_o be_v christ_n still_o commissive_a christ_n have_v a_o kingdom_n commissive_a it_o be_v the_o king_n authority_n which_o the_o deputy_n of_o ireland_n execute_v and_o may_v it_o not_o be_v christ_n power_n and_o government_n which_o his_o minister_n and_o deputy_n on_o earth_n do_v execute_v yea_o certain_o which_o this_o d._n acknowledge_v before_o say_v it_o may_v be_v call_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o of_o christ._n yet_o he_o do_v further_o strive_v against_o the_o truth_n in_o this_o cause_n make_v the_o minister_n the_o master_n of_o a_o family_n and_o the_o magistrate_n to_o be_v god_n ordinance_n alike_o which_o sure_o never_o any_o sound_a divine_a will_v say_v if_o we_o look_v but_o to_o moses_n law_n the_o falsity_n hereof_o be_v soon_o see_v every_o ministry_n in_o the_o jew_n church_n must_v have_v express_a and_o particular_a institution_n from_o god_n but_o natural_a reason_n &_o humane_a contract_n be_v sufficient_a to_o institute_v both_o the_o other_o and_o be_v not_o the_o case_n so_o with_o we_o now_o also_o under_o the_o gospel_n yea_o true_o wherefore_o these_o in_o deed_n be_v now_o god_n ordinance_n but_o not_o alike_o he_o conclude_v that_o the_o minister_n may_v not_o arrogat_fw-la any_o part_n of_o christ_n honour_n and_o power_n as_o incident_a to_o their_o call_n or_o function_n they_o may_v take_v to_o they_o the_o execution_n of_o that_o which_o to_o ordain_v be_v only_a christ_n right_a that_o power_n of_o he_o which_o he_o have_v in_o his_o word_n commit_v to_o they_o and_z as_o the_o d._n speak_v trust_v they_o with_o they_o may_v take_v to_o they_o viz._n the_o key_n and_o mystery_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n which_o they_o arrogate_v not_o but_o it_o be_v their_o right_n to_o take_v &_o use_v the_o same_o as_o christ_n himself_o have_v special_o appoint_v from_o this_o dissolute_a opinion_n aforesaid_a and_o so_o derogatory_n to_o the_o holy_a office_n of_o christ_n it_o flow_v that_o this_o d._n teach_v 348._o teach_v pag._n 339._o 348._o the_o people_n interest_n in_o church-governement_n stand_v only_o upon_o the_o ground_n of_o reason_n and_o nature_n and_o be_v derive_v from_o the_o rule_n of_o christian_a equity_n and_o society_n and_o that_o this_o be_v both_o lawful_a and_o 334._o and_o pag._n 334._o much_o to_o be_v commend_v and_o yet_o also_o that_o 349._o that_o pag._n 349._o the_o people_n may_v willing_o forsake_v and_o worthy_o loose_v the_o right_n which_o they_o have_v nay_o more_o he_o hold_v the_o apostolic_a and_o 300._o and_o pag._n 299._o 300._o divine_a form_n of_o church-governement_n by_o sole_a govern_v bishop_n as_o he_o maintain_v timotihe_n and_o titus_n and_o the_o angel_n of_o ephesus_n etc._n etc._n to_o have_v be_v may_v give_v place_n on_o occasion_n to_o those_o forename_a ground_n of_o reason_n and_o nature_n &_o 334._o &_o pag._n 348._o 334._o humane_a government_n thus_o he_o by_o deny_v the_o people_n consent_n to_o be_v 368._o be_v pag._n 368._o essential_a in_o the_o choice_n of_o their_o pastor_n do_v indeed_o make_v nothing_o essential_a to_o they_o for_o that_o which_o be_v essential_a must_v evermore_o be_v have_v to_o the_o true_a be_v of_o any_o thing_n it_o can_v never_o be_v alter_v nor_o absent_a from_o it_o as_o before_o 8â_n before_o pag._n 8â_n i_o have_v also_o note_v these_o our_o adversary_n say_v our_o assertion_n be_v raw_a and_o undigested_a fancy_n but_o what_o raw_a and_o undigested_a yea_o irreligious_a assertion_n they_o do_v hold_v and_o maintain_v it_o make_v i_o afraid_a even_o to_o think_v of_o it_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o observe_v somewhat_o contrary_a to_o their_o opinion_n out_o of_o some_o both_o of_o the_o ancient_n and_o the_o late_a writer_n cyprian_n note_v this_o in_o general_a as_o a_o odious_a error_n in_o the_o haeretike_n novatian_n though_o he_o aim_v at_o a_o other_o point_n in_o particular_a but_o in_o general_a this_o which_o they_o hold_v cyprian_n make_v no_o less_o than_o haereticall_a in_o he_o his_o word_n be_v 4.2_o be_v cypr_fw-la epist_n 4.2_o ille_fw-la post_fw-la dei_fw-la traditionem_fw-la humanam_fw-la conatur_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la facere_fw-la this_o man_n let_v go_v god_n ordinance_n indeavorâth_v to_o make_v a_o humane_a church_n again_o touch_v the_o order_n and_o form_n of_o the_o church_n and_o administration_n thereof_o he_o in_o another_o place_n fly_v only_o to_o christ_n and_o his_o word_n for_o authority_n &_o say_v 1.8_o say_v epist_n 1.8_o quisquis_fw-la alibi_fw-la collegerit_fw-la spargit_fw-la adulterum_fw-la est_fw-la impium_fw-la est_fw-la sacrilegun_v est_fw-la quodâunque_fw-la humano_fw-la furoâe_fw-la instituitur_fw-la ut_fw-la dispositio_fw-la divina_fw-la violetur_fw-la procul_fw-la ab_fw-la huiusmodi_fw-la hominum_fw-la contagione_fw-la discedite_fw-la whosoever_o gather_v elsewhere_o he_o scatter_v it_o be_v adulterous_a it_o be_v impious_a it_o be_v sacrilegious_a whatsoever_o be_v institute_v by_o man_n madness_n that_o god_n order_n shall_v be_v violate_v depart_v far_o away_o from_o the_o infection_n of_o such_o man_n and_o a_o little_a after_o nemo_fw-la vos_fw-la frat_fw-la res_fw-la errare_fw-la â_fw-la domi._n viâ_fw-la faciat_fw-la nemo_n vos_fw-fr christianos_n ab_fw-la evangelio_n christi_fw-la rapiat_fw-la brethren_n let_v no_o man_n cause_v you_o to_o err_v from_o the_o lord_n way_n let_v no_o man_n pull_v you_o christian_n from_o christ_n gospel_n of_o the_o church_n constitution_n and_o order_n again_o he_o say_v eccles._n say_v de_fw-fr vnitat_fw-la eccles._n verbis_fw-la christi_fw-la insistere_fw-la quaecunque_fw-la &_o docuit_fw-la &_o feat_n discere_fw-la &_o facere_fw-la debemus_fw-la crederese_n in_o christum_fw-la quomodo_fw-la dicit_fw-la qui_fw-la non_fw-la facere_fw-la quod_fw-la christus_fw-la facere_fw-la praecepit_fw-la we_o ought_v to_o insist_v in_o christ_n word_n whatsoever_o he_o teach_v &_o do_v we_o must_v learn_v and_o do_v how_o can_v one_o say_v he_o believe_v in_o christ_n who_o do_v not_o that_o which_o christ_n command_v thus_o in_o the_o order_n constitution_n and_o government_n of_o christ_n church_n this_o holy_a man_n of_o god_n lay_v a_o necessity_n on_o we_o to_o cleave_v always_o to_o that_o which_o be_v in_o christ_n testament_n not_o to_o humane_a reason_n nor_o to_o civil_a disposition_n at_o any_o time_n which_o our_o adversary_n do_v 2.73_o do_v perp._n gov_n pag._n 339._o def._n 2.73_o teach_v and_o maintain_v to_o be_v lawful_a augustine_n also_o of_o the_o visible_a church_n constitution_n beside_o that_o 138.139_o that_o pag._n 138.139_o above_o cite_v in_o he_o elsewhere_o write_v thus_o 1.33_o thus_o august_n contra_fw-la crescon_n gram._n 1.33_o ecclesiam_fw-la sine_fw-la ulla_fw-la ambiguitate_fw-la sancta_fw-la scriptura_fw-la demonstrat_fw-la â _o ibi_fw-la quaeramus_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la 3._o â_o de_fw-fr vnit._fw-la eccles._n cap._n 3._o ibi_fw-la discutiamus_fw-la causam_fw-la nostram_fw-la nâlo_fw-la humanis_fw-la documentis_fw-la sed_fw-la divinis_fw-la oraculis_fw-la sanctam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la demonstrari_fw-la the_o holy_a scripture_n demonstrate_v the_o church_n without_o any_o doubt_n there_o let_v we_o seek_v the_o church_n there_o let_v we_o try_v our_o cause_n i_o can_v abide_v that_o the_o holy_a church_n shall_v be_v show_v by_o man_n doctrine_n but_o by_o the_o divine_a oracle_n and_o in_o that_o sense_n jerome_n call_v christ_n visible_a church_n as_o it_o be_v under_o outward_a government_n eccles_n government_n hieron_n dâ_n 7._o ordin_n eccles_n fabrica_fw-la deâ_n a_o frame_n which_o god_n himself_o have_v builâ_n thus_o these_o ancient_n with_o who_o herein_o the_o godly_a learned_a of_o late_o do_v consent_v also_o zuinglius_fw-la say_v enough_o 101.102.104_o enough_o pag._n 101.102.104_o before_o calvin_n to_o cardinal_n sadolet_n say_v sad._n say_v calvin_n ad_fw-la sad._n non_fw-la te_fw-la adeo_fw-la pracisè_fw-la urgebo_fw-la ut_fw-la revocem_fw-la ad_fw-la illam_fw-la
conceive_v assurance_n to_o our_o soul_n of_o god_n gracious_a favour_n and_o everlasting_a goodness_n if_o we_o stand_v in_o that_o way_n which_o plain_o be_v christ_n 6.16_o gal._n 6.16_o as_o many_o as_o walk_v according_a to_o this_o rule_n peace_n shall_v be_v upon_o they_o &_o mercy_n and_o upon_o the_o israel_n of_o god_n but_o contrariwise_o our_o adversary_n allow_v of_o two_o way_n in_o the_o church_n spiritual_a government_n and_o administration_n the_o one_o apostolic_a the_o other_o humane_a both_o good_a as_o they_o say_v &_o both_o changeable_a by_o man_n but_o neither_o of_o they_o any_o certain_a ordinance_n or_o commandment_n of_o christ_n again_o when_o they_o make_v many_o allege_v many_o those_o which_o follow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o attestator_n before_o allege_v thousand_o several_a church_n in_o the_o world_n to_o use_v no_o other_o call_v of_o their_o minister_n but_o such_o as_o be_v of_o man_n institution_n and_o from_o natural_a reason_n do_v they_o in_o this_o give_v assurance_n to_o man_n conscience_n nay_o it_o can_v not_o be_v at_o the_o least_o man_n stand_v in_o such_o state_n will_v often_o doubt_v and_o make_v question_n whether_o the_o spiritual_a blessing_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n be_v promise_v or_o may_v be_v instrumental_o wrought_v in_o they_o by_o such_o a_o ministry_n not_o otherwise_o authorise_v and_o call_v then_o so_o for_o as_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o god_n save_v no_o man_n ordinary_o but_o by_o outward_a mean_n &_o that_o these_o outward_a mean_n be_v ordinary_o christ_n visible_a church_n the_o ordain_v of_o minister_n and_o the_o administer_a of_o god_n word_n sacrament_n and_o censure_n therein_o so_o it_o be_v most_o uncertain_a and_o much_o to_o be_v doubt_v whether_o god_n will_v acknowledge_v any_o of_o these_o outward_a mean_n and_o instrument_n to_o be_v his_o or_o will_v give_v his_o ordinary_a blessing_n unto_o they_o work_v say_v repentance_n sanctification_n &_o hereafter_o his_o heavenly_a glory_n in_o we_o by_o they_o unless_o the_o say_v outward_a mean_n and_o instrument_n be_v simple_o of_o that_o form_n and_o nature_n and_o be_v exercise_v by_o the_o power_n and_o authority_n of_o such_o person_n only_o as_o he_o himself_o have_v special_o ordain_v and_o sanctify_v in_o his_o word_n to_o that_o purpose_n this_o doubt_n i_o say_v at_o least_o doubt_n as_o also_o to_o stand_v under_o a_o nonresident_a may_v breed_v this_o doubt_n will_n and_o must_v needs_o arise_v from_o the_o opinion_n of_o our_o adversary_n and_o it_o can_v not_o but_o weaken_v the_o faith_n of_o many_o if_o in_o the_o end_n it_o do_v not_o whole_o subvert_v it_o which_o indeed_o may_v come_v to_o pass_v from_o this_o original_n divers_a and_o sundry_a way_n but_o our_o uniform_a constitution_n of_o the_o church_n and_o administration_n thereof_o cut_v of_o all_o occasion_n of_o such_o doubt_v and_o leave_v our_o conscience_n safe_o rest_v on_o christ_n alone_o and_o so_o much_o for_o this_o seaventh_o where_o this_o be_v hold_v viz._n that_o the_o people_n free_a consent_n ought_v to_o be_v always_o in_o the_o church_n government_n there_o necessary_o the_o visible_a catholic_a church_n of_o rome_n be_v ruin_v quite_o overthrow_v and_o destroy_v yea_o this_o assertion_n of_o we_o be_v make_v good_a her_o spiritual_a tyranny_n &_o usurpation_n be_v easy_o demonstrate_v and_o there_o be_v no_o man_n who_o see_v not_o this_o but_o contrariwise_o many_o see_v not_o and_o many_o will_v not_o see_v till_o they_o feel_v that_o which_o yet_o be_v as_o certain_a and_o as_o sure_o a_o consequence_n in_o true_a reason_n viz._n that_o where_o the_o people_n consent_n in_o the_o church_n government_n be_v condemn_v and_o hate_v church_n advantage_n to_o the_o pope_n by_o a_o diocesan_n church_n there_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v get_v advantage_n and_o in_o time_n advancement_n again_o notwithstanding_o that_o civil_a magistrate_n for_o a_o season_n do_v what_o they_o can_v to_o resist_v the_o same_o i_o know_v many_o will_n at_o the_o first_o think_v this_o a_o paradox_n yet_o very_o it_o will_v prove_v true_a for_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n not_o only_o in_o reason_n but_o by_o clear_a rule_n of_o divinity_n and_o religion_n must_v needs_o get_v ground_n of_o we_o if_o we_o willing_o give_v away_o this_o invincible_a bulwark_n and_o fortress_n against_o they_o i_o mean_v christ_n visible_a church_n true_a and_o proper_a nature_n and_o that_o both_o intensive_a intensive_a christ_n visible_a church_n nature_n intensive_a which_o be_v the_o power_n of_o spiritual_a government_n receive_v from_o christ_n her_o author_n and_o founder_n wherein_o the_o people_n free_a consent_n be_v comprehend_v as_o before_o i_o have_v often_o rehearse_v extensive_a extensive_a and_o also_o the_o extensive_a quantity_n and_o outward_a body_n of_o the_o say_a church_n which_o in_o the_o gospel_n never_o reach_v to_o many_o ordinary_a congregation_n nor_o to_o any_o set_a circuit_n of_o ground_n at_o all_o as_o a_o diocesan_n church_n do_v but_o to_o one_o ordinary_a congregation_n only_o as_o i_o have_v 18._o have_v declarat_fw-la pag._n 18._o elsewhere_o plain_o declare_v this_o be_v the_o true_a and_o proper_a nature_n of_o christ_n visible_a church_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o i_o will_v all_o man_n do_v consider_v this_o viz._n that_o the_o effectual_a defence_n of_o our_o faith_n against_o popery_n be_v &_o must_v be_v the_o allege_v and_o press_v against_o they_o this_o nature_n and_o proper_a constitution_n of_o christ_n say_a visible_a church_n without_o which_o we_o shall_v labour_v against_o they_o all_o in_o vain_a and_o which_o our_o forefather_n zuinglius_fw-la luther_n and_o the_o rest_n wise_o hold_v and_o maintain_v as_o 104._o as_o chapt._n 3_o &_o 4._o and_o pag._n 102._o 103._o 104._o above_o we_o have_v see_v have_v easy_o &_o mighty_o from_o thence_o by_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n put_v they_o to_o flight_n and_o quell_v they_o and_o so_o may_v we_o do_v still_o but_o no_o otherwise_o in_o which_o regard_n it_o greeve_v i_o often_o time_n when_o i_o see_v many_o of_o our_o defender_n of_o the_o truth_n against_o the_o papist_n be_v otherwise_o learned_a and_o godly_a yet_o deal_v in_o this_o matter_n very_o uncircumspect_o and_o i_o may_v say_v praeposterous_o who_o make_v no_o great_a reckon_n to_o stand_v with_o the_o papist_n upon_o the_o proper_a nature_n of_o christ_n visible_a church_n and._n a_o great_a cause_n why_o cur_n controversy_n come_v not_o to_o a_o and._n or_o if_o they_o meddle_v with_o it_o they_o do_v not_o strict_o hold_v to_o that_o nature_n &_o form_n thereof_o which_o be_v leave_v we_o in_o the_o n._n testament_n be_v plain_o another_o and_o distinct_a from_o that_o of_o the_o jew_n under_o the_o law_n this_o very_o our_o man_n against_o that_o adversary_n do_v consider_v too_o little_a and_o they_o prosecute_v it_o less_o they_o treat_v more_o of_o christ_n invisible_a or_o militant_a then_o of_o the_o ministerial_a church_n so_o leave_v the_o question_n in_o deed_n and_o labour_v in_o thing_n which_o touch_v not_o the_o point_n whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o they_o resist_v they_o not_o with_o that_o fruit_n as_o they_o may_v for_o we_o must_v know_v that_o ordinary_o the_o church_n ministerial_a be_v the_o mean_n and_o instrument_n of_o true_a faith_n if_o the_o mean_n and_o procure_a cause_n which_o be_v most_o sensible_a to_o we_o be_v not_o first_o well_v clear_v and_o man_n conscience_n therein_o satisfy_v and_o the_o same_o demonstrate_v plain_o to_o be_v of_o divine_a institution_n the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n beside_o will_v be_v but_o uncertain_a if_o any_o say_v our_o forefather_n overcome_v the_o papist_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n cut_v down_o their_o other_o foul_a error_n objection_n viz._n purgatory_n freewill_n auricular_a confession_n real_a presence_n image_n pray_v to_o saint_n justification_n by_o work_n etc._n etc._n they_o overcome_v they_o not_o by_o affirm_v that_o the_o people_n ought_v to_o have_v always_o their_o free_a consent_n in_o church_n government_n and_o so_o may_v we_o also_o overcome_v they_o still_o i_o answer_v man_n be_v much_o deceive_v that_o do_v thus_o think_v answ_n our_o forefather_n as_o i_o say_v by_o this_o very_a assertion_n that_o the_o people_n ought_v to_o have_v their_o say_a free_a consent_n do_v utter_o overthrow_v the_o papist_n and_o without_o this_o they_o can_v not_o possible_o have_v so_o do_v for_o unless_o this_o assertion_n have_v be_v true_a neither_o can_v the_o first_o protestant_a pastor_n be_v true_o authorise_v and_o call_v neither_o can_v any_o of_o the_o protestant_n at_o first_o lawful_o have_v forsake_v the_o roman_a church_n whereof_o they_o all_o stand_v member_n and_o then_o i_o pray_v how_o can_v they_o have_v overcome_v they_o nay_o it_o have_v
proposition_n which_o they_o offer_v to_o maintain_v be_v such_o as_o if_o they_o be_v not_o true_a we_o can_v not_o just_o separat_fw-la from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n nor_o stand_v out_o against_o it_o those_o some_o proposittion_n which_o they_o mean_v be_v namely_o the_o four_o &_o eight_o set_v down_o in_o that_o offer_n which_o affirm_v that_o a_o church_n be_v but_o one_o ordinary_a congregation_n and_o that_o the_o people_n ought_v to_o have_v their_o free_a consent_n in_o the_o spiritual_a government_n thereof_o unto_o which_o may_v be_v add_v the_o 5.6.7_o and_o 10._o as_o be_v all_o of_o one_o nature_n by_o clear_a and_o certain_a consequence_n the_o soundness_n and_o firm_a truth_n of_o all_o the_o which_o have_v be_v sufficient_o prove_v and_o declare_v heretofore_o and_o may_v by_o such_o a_o right_a christian_a trial_n as_o there_o they_o desire_v be_v bring_v to_o further_a light_n wherefore_o d._n downame_n absurd_a reproach_n against_o that_o treatise_n call_v it_o most_o senseless_o 4.81_o senseless_o def_n 1.382_o &_o 4.81_o a_o unchristian_a and_o unmodest_a offer_n and_o the_o position_n therein_o schismatical_a novelty_n do_v declare_v with_o what_o gall_n of_o bitterness_n his_o heart_n over-floweth_a against_o the_o truth_n against_o his_o brethren_n as_o 2.48_o as_o def._n 2.48_o he_o dissemble_o call_v we_o and_o also_o against_o those_o noble_a pillar_n of_o the_o gospel_n before_o allege_v our_o attestator_n who_o be_v herein_o his_o utter_a adversary_n whatsoever_o he_o pretend_v to_o the_o contrary_n he_o as_o a_o cock_n on_o his_o own_o dunghill_n may_v crowâ_n what_o he_o listen_v but_o if_o the_o offer_n have_v be_v or_o may_v be_v accept_v in_o such_o equal_a order_n as_o be_v there_o tender_v he_o will_v be_v make_v to_o eat_v his_o word_n i_o doubt_v not_o and_o all_o the_o infamy_n of_o schism_n &_o novelty_n will_v fall_v upon_o his_o own_o head_n without_o which_o acceptanc_fw-la elet_n the_o doct._n know_v that_o his_o tedious_a and_o sophistical_a writing_n &_o all_o other_o such_o like_a will_v be_v hold_v by_o wise_a man_n to_o be_v vain_a boast_n and_o no_o better_a conquest_n then_o of_o such_o champion_n as_o draw_v their_o weapon_n strike_v fight_z and_o take_v on_o at_o adversary_n who_o hand_n they_o will_v be_v sure_a themselves_o have_v first_o tie_v fast_o yea_o who_o they_o will_v be_v sure_a to_o have_v in_o their_o power_n to_o imprison_v and_o persecute_v if_o any_o presume_v to_o move_v against_o they_o neither_o will_v they_o endure_v to_o be_v show_v the_o imminent_a danger_n from_o the_o common_a enemy_n till_o all_o come_v about_o their_o head_n and_o so_o much_o touch_v the_o important_a consequence_n of_o our_o present_a assertion_n chap._n 8._o a_o answer_n to_o divers_a chief_a objection_n of_o the_o adversary_n of_o this_o cause_n note_v also_o brief_o their_o immodest_a &_o not_o christian-like_a reproach_n against_o this_o evangelicall_n doctrine_n first_o we_o will_v consider_v here_o d._n downame_n second_o book_n of_o his_o defence_n answereââ_n d._n downame_n defence_n 2._o book_n answereââ_n affirm_v and_o maintain_v that_o there_o be_v proper_a diocesan_n church_n under_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v true_a the_o people_n then_o certain_o have_v not_o a_o free_a consent_n in_o church-governement_n a_o clear_a reason_n whereof_o i_o show_v before_o pag._n 85._o and_o i_o willing_o acknowledge_v it_o still_o yea_o and_o likewise_o that_o neither_o now_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v that_o under_o the_o apostle_n the_o church_n be_v proper_o diocesan_n the_o d._n affirm_v in_o the_o title_n of_o this_o second_o book_n of_o his_o defense_n and_o do_v his_o best_a to_o maintain_v it_o in_o the_o whole_a process_n thereof_o afterward_o where_o indeed_o i_o commend_v he_o above_o all_o other_o that_o ever_o write_v in_o this_o cause_n against_o we_o commendatior_n d_o downame_n commendatior_n namely_o for_o that_o he_o do_v more_o fit_o and_o right_o set_v down_o the_o point_n of_o the_o controversy_n which_o have_v so_o long_o trouble_v christian_a people_n in_o england_n 8._o chap._n 8._o than_o any_o other_o before_o he_o have_v do_v which_o apostle_n which_o whether_o proper_a diocesan_n church_n be_v under_o the_o apostle_n point_n only_o if_o it_o be_v christianly_o and_o plain_o decide_v will_v bring_v great_a contentment_n and_o a_o joyful_a unity_n i_o be_o persuade_v to_o many_o thousand_o but_o the_o proof_n of_o his_o assertion_n here_o do_v all_o fail_v he_o nay_o they_o be_v strange_o abuse_v and_o pervert_v by_o he_o special_o his_o scripture_n and_o herein_o he_o be_v little_a to_o be_v commend_v let_v we_o examine_v therefore_o his_o scripture_n and_o then_o the_o rest_n yet_o by_o the_o way_n we_o will_v define_v a_o proper_a diocesan_n church_n church_n the_o definition_n of_o a_o diocesan_n church_n before_o we_o begin_v with_o he_o a_o diocesan_n church_n be_v a_o society_n of_o profess_a christian_n who_o spiritual_a government_n be_v practise_v without_o the_o people_n sieâ_n consent_n and_o who_o pastor_n have_v a_o plurality_n of_o ordinarâe_a congregation_n in_o his_o charge_n such_o a_o church_n we_o deny_v to_o have_v be_v under_o the_o apostle_n and_o i_o pray_v the_o reader_n to_o have_v recourse_n to_o those_o seven_o reason_n of_o i_o which_o i_o have_v etc._n have_v declarat_fw-la pag._n 20.21_o etc._n etc._n elsewhere_o set_v down_o to_o prove_v this_o my_o denial_n and_o to_o disprove_v his_o assertion_n now_o what_o do_v the_o doctor_n bring_v to_o prove_v his_o opinion_n expect_v not_o good_a reader_n that_o i_o shall_v follow_v he_o in_o his_o vain_a flourish_n and_o needle_n amplification_n repetition_n invective_n &_o other_o passage_n more_o fit_a for_o ostentation_n &_o to_o satisfy_v his_o intemperate_a humour_n then_o for_o profit_n my_o desire_n be_v so_o as_o i_o may_v with_o perspicuity_n in_o the_o cause_n to_o use_v brevity_n and_o if_o not_o to_o deâiver_v multa_fw-la paucis_fw-la yet_o to_o take_v heed_n not_o to_o deliver_v pauca_fw-la multis_fw-la as_o he_o do_v wherefore_o i_o will_v pick_v out_o that_o which_o ãâã_d see_v material_a in_o he_o the_o rest_n i_o will_v âet_o pass_v in_o his_o first_o chapter_n pag._n 4._o he_o jet_v down_o a_o most_o confuse_a distribution_n of_o the_o divers_a sense_n of_o the_o greek_a word_n ecclesia_fw-la 2.4_o d._n down_o defen_n 2.4_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o we_o usual_o translate_v ãâã_d church_n wherein_o he_o commit_v 5._o error_n pertinent_a to_o our_o question_n first_o from_o this_o in_o mat._n 18.17_o act._n 15.22_o he_o âould_v make_v a_o synod_n or_o consistone_n which_o have_v answer_v before_o pa._n 108._o etc._n etc._n seâondly_o a_o nationall_n church_n of_o the_o jew_n act._n 7.38_o which_o likewise_o i_o have_v answer_v in_o reas._n for_o reform_v pag._n 5._o in_o the_o margin_n three_o christian_n nationall_n church_n in_o the_o nobe_a plural_a as_o he_o speak_v namely_o in_o rom._n 16.4_o 1._o cor._n 16.1_o â9_n 2._o cor._n 8.1_o gal._n 1.2.22_o which_o place_n âe_n abuse_v &_o pervert_v most_o rude_o and_o desperate_o the_o word_n do_v express_o signify_v nothing_o but_o a_o nomâer_n of_o ordinary_a congregation_n parish_n such_o we_o mean_v by_o parish_n âath_v of_o they_o assemble_v in_o one_o âlace_n or_o at_o most_o contain_v 28.29.31.32_o contain_v see_v my_o declarat_fw-la pa_n 10._o and_o 18.19_o &_o 28.29.31.32_o no_o mo_z ordinary_a assembly_n than_o one_o and_o he_o without_o yea_o contrary_a to_o the_o express_a âetter_n fanci_v to_o himself_o a_o nationall_n church_n from_o no_o ground_n nor_o show_v of_o ground_n in_o these_o place_n four_o he_o bring_v act._n 5.11_o and_o 8.1_o and_o 11.12_o and_o 12.1.5_o and_o 13.1_o and_o 14.23_o &_o 20.17.28_o 1._o cor._n 1.2_o 2._o cor._n 8.23_o 2._o thes_n 1.1_o 1._o tim._n 5.16_o jam._n 5.14_o apoc._n 1.4.11.20_o and_o 2.1_o etc._n etc._n to_o prove_v a_o church_n of_o a_o city_n and_o country_n adjoin_v where_o his_o error_n be_v like_a to_o the_o former_a what_o shall_v i_o say_v to_o this_o man_n not_o one_o of_o all_o these_o signifi_v a_o church_n of_o a_o city_n and_o country_n adjoin_v if_o he_o mean_v it_o to_o be_v extend_v or_o intend_v to_o mo_z ordinary_a congregation_n then_o only_o one_o which_o be_v his_o meaning_n it_o be_v true_a the_o church_n of_o these_o city_n here_o specify_v viz._n of_o jerusalem_n antioch_n ephesus_n corinth_n thessalonica_n etc._n etc._n may_v have_v member_n then_o which_o dwell_v scatter_o and_o some_o a_o good_a way_n of_o from_o the_o place_n of_o their_o ordinary_a main_a meeting_n and_o such_o also_o as_o do_v assemble_v often_o in_o divers_a uncertain_a company_n as_o in_o time_n of_o trouble_n there_o be_v reason_n &_o it_o often_o come_v to_o pass_v but_o yet_o in_o those_o primitive_a time_n they_o all_o in_o each_o church_n than_o make_v no_o mo_z but_o parish_n but_o which_o
in_o a_o good_a sense_n âay_n becal_v a_o parish_n one_o ordinary_a assembly_n as_o i_o have_v say_v the_o true_a grammar_n sense_n and_o proper_a meaning_n of_o the_o word_n ecclesia_fw-la in_o those_o time_n do_v prove_v it_o what_o divinitic_n shall_v we_o expect_v from_o these_o doctor_n whâ_n will_v pervert_v grammar_n which_o ouâ_n doctor_n be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o but_o his_o error_n herein_o be_v wilful_a all_o sound_a 32._o sound_a see_v my_o declarat_fw-la pag._n 18_o 32._o autor_n of_o the_o greek_a tongue_n according_a to_o who_o the_o apostle_n do_v speak_v do_v show_v that_o ecclesia_fw-la in_o the_o time_n then_o and_o always_o before_o signify_v one_o ordinary_a congregation_n only_o and_o not_o many_o his_o five_o error_n here_o be_v that_o the_o new_a testament_n note_v some_o church_n not_o define_v whether_o a_o entire_a church_n or_o but_o a_o part_n and_o he_o cit_v act._n 9.31_o and_o 15._o 3.4.41_o and_o 18.22_o rom._n 16.16.23.1_o cor._n 4.17_o and_o 6.4_o and_o 11.16_o and_o 14.33_o with_o a_o great_a many_o other_o but_o all_o these_o be_v likewise_o by_o he_o gross_o abuse_v for_o in_o all_o these_o place_n the_o scripture_n speak_v entire_o &_o proper_o not_o by_o a_o figure_n whereof_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n appear_v in_o the_o text_n only_o in_o act._n 15.4_o the_o church_n signify_v a_o part_n namely_o the_o people_n because_o the_o text_n express_o distinguish_v it_o here_o from_o their_o guide_v who_o be_v a_o part_n also_o thus_o in_o all_o the_o whole_a write_n of_o the_o apostle_n there_o be_v not_o one_o word_n which_o show_v a_o diocesan_n church_n to_o have_v be_v then_o wherefore_o in_o this_o point_n he_o be_v quite_o overthrow_v rest_v the_o d._n pervert_v his_o text_n on_o which_o his_o sermon_n &_o defense_n rest_v yea_o his_o very_a text_n apoc._n â_o 20_o which_o be_v the_o whole_a foundation_n of_o his_o sermon_n and_o defence_n be_v find_v to_o be_v utter_o pervert_v and_o abuse_v together_o with_o the_o other_o place_n so_o that_o all_o which_o be_v build_v upon_o it_o &_o follow_v in_o his_o write_n after_o be_v nothing_o but_o cavillation_n and_o namely_o that_o against_o myself_o in_o his_o pag._n 6._o where_o he_o say_v i_o have_v first_o strong_o conceit_v that_o there_o be_v no_o true_a visible_a church_n but_o a_o parish_n &_o then_o have_v hale_v the_o place_n of_o scripture_n where_o ecclesia_fw-la be_v mention_v to_o the_o confirmation_n of_o my_o conceit_n let_v he_o not_o abuse_v people_n as_o he_o do_v by_o the_o equivocation_n of_o the_o word_n parish_n for_o i_o mean_v not_o that_o the_o apostolic_a church_n be_v parish_n as_o we_o call_v a_o parish_n now_o in_o england_n that_o be_v limit_v within_o a_o certain_a circuit_n of_o ground_n though_o a_o church_n may_v be_v so_o limit_v yet_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a neither_o be_v it_o so_o then_o but_o then_o every_o church_n be_v such_o a_o parish_n as_o i_o note_v a_o little_a 5.29_o little_a pag._n 201._o &_o declar._n pag._n 18.19_o &_o reas._n for_o ref_o pa._n 5.29_o before_o and_o so_o it_o be_v very_o true_a then_o why_o say_v he_o that_o i_o have_v first_o conceit_v that_o there_o be_v no_o true_a visible_a church_n but_o a_o parish_n he_o may_v have_v see_v it_o conceit_v before_o i_o by_o those_o noble_a and_o sacred_a instrument_n 214.215_o instrument_n before_o pag._n 103.104_o &_o 32._o etc._n etc._n and_o after_o pag._n 214.215_o zuinglius_fw-la luther_n &_o the_o rest_n of_o our_o attestator_n but_o malice_n drive_v he_o against_o i_o as_o it_o have_v drive_v he_o against_o i_o in_o other_o slander_n likewise_o wherefore_o rather_o he_o may_v have_v say_v that_o in_o this_o not_o i_o etc._n if_o in_o this_o the_o scripture_n be_v hale_v zuinglius_fw-la have_v do_v it_o etc._n etc._n but_o they_o have_v hale_v the_o scripture_n from_o who_o i_o have_v learn_v it_o but_o i_o hope_v those_o worthy_n know_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o greek_a ecclesia_fw-la better_o then_o our_o doctor_n though_o he_o be_v conceit_v enough_o of_o his_o own_o learning_n and_o they_o maintain_v it_o prosperous_o against_o strong_a adversaty_n than_o he_o âis_n or_o ever_o will_v be_v but_o in_o deed_n he_o ought_v to_o blush_v to_o charge_v i_o in_o this_o case_n with_o hale_v the_o scripture_n scripture_n himself_o hale_a of_o scripture_n when_o himself_o be_v thus_o find_v to_o hale_v they_o and_o pervert_v they_o most_o unconscionable_o as_o before_o be_v show_v he_o be_v often_o upon_o this_o 2.104.65_o this_o def._n 2.104.65_o that_o the_o church_n of_o cenchreae_n rom._n 16.1_o be_v a_o membrall_a church_n to_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n and_o subject_a to_o it_o but_o i_o have_v 30._o have_v declarat_fw-la pag._n 30._o elsewhere_a show_v this_o his_o presumption_n in_o take_v the_o apostle_n word_n figurative_o here_o also_o without_o cause_n as_o if_o the_o apostle_n call_v but_o a_o part_n of_o a_o church_n by_o the_o name_n of_o a_o church_n there_o be_v no_o reason_n in_o the_o text_n why_o he_o shall_v here_o speak_v synecdochical_o nay_o to_o take_v the_o apostle_n so_o be_v contrary_a even_o to_o his_o own_o rule_n i_o will_v press_v he_o with_o his_o own_o word_n i_o will_v know_v of_o he_o what_o reason_n he_o have_v to_o forsake_v the_o grammatical_a sense_n 33._o sense_n def._n 1._o pag._n 33._o and_o where_o the_o holy_a ghost_n speak_v proper_o how_o dare_v be_v to_o expound_v he_o figurative_o here_o i_o can_v leave_v of_o this_o point_n concern_v his_o proof_n from_o the_o new_a testament_n for_o diocesan_n church_n but_o that_o he_o â_o he_o chap._n â_o resume_v rev._n 1.20_o which_o be_v his_o text_n and_o labour_v to_o make_v show_n of_o some_o reason_n therein_o first_o he_o say_v 42.43.44_o say_v pag._n 42.43.44_o those_o 7._o church_n contain_v the_o city_n and_o country_n adjoin_v this_o be_v his_o minor_n which_o be_v not_o only_o contrary_a to_o the_o property_n of_o the_o word_n ecclesia_fw-la before_o note_a but_o also_o contrary_a to_o the_o express_a text_n beside_o which_o say_v this_o ephesian_a church_n be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d in_o ephesus_n 2.1_o rev._n 2.1_o not_o without_o nor_o contain_v that_o large_a country_n &_o territorie_n adioy_v as_o he_o say_v it_o do_v then_o the_o like_o the_o text_n say_v of_o the_o church_n in_o smyrna_n and_o of_o the_o church_n in_o pergamus_n and_o so_o of_o all_o the_o rest_n signify_v express_o that_o every_o of_o these_o church_n be_v contain_v at_o least_o when_o they_o meet_v within_o their_o city_n city_n his_o shift_v hereabout_o pag._n 105_o be_v nothing_o and_o that_o of_o ââkening_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d to_o it_o be_v as_o little_a for_o act._n 24.12_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d be_v in_o the_o city_n and_o do_v not_o extend_v itself_o to_o the_o country_n adjoin_v viz._n to_o the_o civil_a province_n of_o each_o of_o they_o this_o reason_n therefore_o of_o his_o be_v very_o untrue_a yet_o he_o will_v fortify_v it_o further_o 43.56_o further_o pag._n 43.56_o assume_v again_o that_o our_o saviour_n write_v to_o all_o the_o church_n of_o asia_n number_v but_o seven_o if_o he_o write_v to_o all_o than_o it_o may_v seem_v that_o these_o 7._o be_v general_a church_n contain_v in_o and_o under_o they_o many_o other_o inferior_a congregation_n for_o it_o be_v not_o like_a but_o in_o asia_n proper_o so_o call_v which_o be_v the_o roman_a province_n and_o flacco_fw-la and_o cicer._n orat_fw-la pro_fw-la l._n flacco_fw-la contain_v phrygia_n mysia_n caria_n &_o lydia_n there_o be_v more_o ordinary_a christian_a congregation_n then_o only_o 7._o at_o that_o time_n nay_o it_o be_v plain_o false_a our_o saviour_n here_o write_v not_o to_o all_o the_o church_n of_o asia_n the_o text_n beside_o mention_v 20.7_o mention_v act._n 20.7_o troas_n 4.13_o troas_n colos_n 4.13_o colossâ_n hierapolis_n which_o be_v questionless_a within_o these_o ââundes_n magnesia_n &_o trallis_n in_o all_o likelihood_n be_v now_o also_o epist_n mention_v in_o ignatius_n epist_n and_o be_v no_o member_n now_o of_o any_o of_o those_o seven_o ãâã_d the_o revelation_n and_o it_o be_v more_o than_o ââkely_a that_o many_o other_o beside_o these_o âââere_v name_v be_v also_o indeed_o christ_n ââould_v that_o all_o within_o asia_n yea_o &_o out_o âf_a asia_n too_o shall_v exemplary_o take_v admonition_n by_o this_o which_o he_o write_v âetsonally_o &_o direct_o to_o these_o seven_o âone_n which_o be_v all_o that_o he_o mean_v in_o âhose_v word_n 1â_n word_n rev._n 2_o 1â_n let_v he_o that_o have_v a_o ear_n âeare_z what_o the_o spirit_n say_v to_o the_o church_n âut_fw-la this_o be_v nothing_o to_o prove_v that_o all_o âhese_fw-mi other_o church_n be_v member_n subâect_v to_o those_o seven_o yet_o two_o reason_n ââore_o 4._o ââore_o chap._n 4._o he_o have_v one_o be_v
this_o 65._o this_o pag._n 65._o the_o apoâles_n appoint_a minister_n to_o whole_a city_n and_o country_n adjoin_v to_o labour_v so_o far_o as_o they_o âere_z able_a the_o conversion_n of_o all_o true_a what_o âhen_o therefore_o they_o appoint_v they_o âo_o stand_v minister_n still_o to_o whole_a city_n and_z country_n adjoin_v i_o deny_v âhis_n consequence_n it_o be_v a_o plain_a fallacy_n âb_fw-la eo_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la secundum_fw-la quâd_fw-la fallacy_n fallacy_n ad_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la ãâã_d pray_v sir_n when_o logic_n fail_v you_o play_v not_o the_o sophister_n the_o apostle_n appoint_v minister_n to_o convert_v what_o they_o can_v in_o great_a city_n and_o country_n adjoin_v yea_o and_o in_o the_o whole_a 13.33_o whole_a math._n 13.33_o world_n but_o not_o to_o stand_v minister_n &_o pastor_n to_o all_o they_o when_o they_o shall_v be_v convert_v but_o only_o according_a tâ_n the_o order_n and_o form_n of_o a_o church_n seâ_n down_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o represent_v to_o we_o each_o ordinary_a congregation_n as_o a_o entire_a church_n wherefore_o they_o may_v not_o remain_v as_o pastor_n to_o all_o when_o all_o be_v convert_v because_o so_o ordinary_a pastor_n after_o the_o time_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n shall_v become_v substantial_o contrary_a to_o the_o ordinary_a pastor_n constitute_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n testament_n it_o in_o his_o blasphemy_n to_o avouch_v that_o the_o apostle_n intend_v the_o church_n form_n shall_v be_v substantial_o contrary_a to_o that_o which_o be_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o certain_o be_v never_o the_o apostle_n intent_n it_o be_v no_o less_o than_o blasphemy_n for_o any_o that_o will_v persist_v in_o say_v the_o apostle_n intend_v so_o you_o will_v ask_v how_o be_v pastor_n so_o large_a and_o so_o general_a contrary_a substantial_o to_o pastor_n of_o but_o one_o ordinary_a congregation_n i_o answer_v they_o be_v substantial_o contrary_a in_o that_o these_o may_v and_o do_v admit_v the_o christian_a people_n free_a consent_n in_o church_n government_n the_o other_o can_v not_o these_o can_v personal_o administer_v to_o their_o whole_a flock_n they_o possible_o can_v not_o but_o by_o substitute_n and_o curate_n as_o we_o call_v they_o for_o there_o the_o proper_a pastor_n themselves_o be_v &_o of_o necessity_n must_v be_v grand_a pluraliste_n and_o nonresident_n which_o plain_o be_v substantial_a difference_n in_o pastor_n beside_o that_o the_o one_o can_v execute_v a_o whole_a and_o entire_a pastoral_n office_n the_o other_o can_v not_o etc._n etc._n as_o â_o as_o declarat_fw-la pag._n 12.13.14_o 15_o 16._o &_o â_o elsewhere_a i_o have_v more_o full_o declare_v his_o 2._o reason_n be_v this_o 2.69_o this_o def._n 2.69_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n the_o church_n be_v not_o divide_v into_o parish_n âor_a presbyter_n assign_v to_o their_o several_a cure_n therefore_o than_o a_o church_n be_v not_o a_o paâish_n i_o answer_v here_o again_o he_o do_v nothing_o but_o equivocat_n let_v he_o understand_v a_o parish_n in_o that_o sense_n as_o before_o have_v define_v it_o 204.205_o pa._n 204.205_o and_o so_o i_o affirm_v that_o by_o the_o very_a apostle_n the_o church_n be_v divide_v into_o several_a parish_n that_o be_v âach_v church_n be_v itself_o a_o distinct_a paâish_n and_o several_o divide_v from_o all_o oâher_n also_o the_o presbyter_n than_o be_v assign_v to_o their_o several_a cure_n viz._n to_o these_o parish_n or_o church_n but_o if_o he_o âake_v a_o parish_n as_o it_o be_v a_o congregation_n limit_v within_o a_o certain_a circuit_n of_o âround_n and_o as_o a_o diocese_n be_v subdivide_v ânto_o many_o of_o they_o as_o they_o be_v now_o so_o âve_v speak_v not_o of_o they_o yet_o common_o âr_o altogether_o 77._o altogether_o pag._n 77._o he_o do_v so_o speak_v of_o âhem_n wherefore_o here_o every_o man_n may_v ââe_v his_o vanity_n he_o do_v fly_v the_o true_a question_n and_o shufle_v in_o thing_n that_o âe_v never_o intend_v then_o his_o gross_a untruth_n &_o unschollerlike_a assertion_n ought_v ãâã_d be_v mark_v where_o he_o say_v 75._o say_v pag_n 75._o the_o âord_n ecclesia_fw-la be_v of_o a_o large_a extent_n then_o to_o signify_v only_o one_o assembly_n i_o appeal_v to_o all_o auâentike_a greek_a author_n thucydides_n deâosthenes_n plato_n aristotle_n isocrates_n etc._n etc._n out_o âf_n who_o plentiful_a allegation_n may_v be_v bring_v all_o of_o they_o show_v that_o this_o word_n ecclesia_fw-la do_v evermore_o signify_v only_o one_o assembly_n and_o never_o a_o disperse_a multitude_n hold_v many_o ordinary_a set_a meeting_n in_o far_o remote_a place_n as_o diocesan_n and_o large_a church_n do_v now_o according_a to_o these_o and_o other_o greek_n live_v in_o the_o apostle_n day_n do_v the_o apostle_n speak_v and_o this_o i_o have_v heretofore_o often_o 110._o often_o reas._o for_o ref_o pag_n 64._o declarat_fw-la pag_n 31._o 32._o &_o above_o pa._n 110._o propound_v and_o affirm_v as_o a_o principal_a ground_n and_o cause_n of_o our_o dissent_n from_o the_o church_n state_n in_o england_n and_o the_o ground_n be_v certain_a it_o can_v not_o be_v with_o reason_n speak_v against_o the_o d._n here_o 15._o here_o pag._n 14._o 15._o put_v in_o to_o the_o contrary_a the_o use_n of_o the_o word_n ecclesia_fw-la in_o eusebius_n who_o use_v it_o to_o signify_v sometime_o a_o diocesan_n and_o provincial_n church_n he_o do_v so_o sometime_o i_o deny_v it_o not_o and_o so_o after_o he_o the_o father_n do_v use_v the_o word_n likewise_o as_o epiphanius_n theodoret_n chrysostome_n and_o the_o councille_n and_o history_n writer_n etc._n etc._n all_o this_o we_o know_v well_o but_o what_o have_v we_o to_o do_v with_o these_o author_n so_o late_o and_o so_o partial_a as_o these_o all_o be_v touch_v the_o exposition_n of_o the_o greek_a word_n ecclesia_fw-la the_o time_n that_o eusebius_n write_v in_o write_v when_o eusebius_n write_v be_v about_o 340._o year_n of_o christ_n or_o little_o less_o all_o the_o rest_n write_v after_o he_o at_o which_o time_n or_o before_o viz._n present_o under_o constantine_n the_o outward_a form_n of_o the_o church_n do_v so_o alter_v and_o change_v from_o that_o under_o the_o apostle_n even_o in_o substantial_a point_n of_o church_n polity_n or_o in_o such_o point_n as_o do_v come_v near_o to_o the_o substance_n of_o it_o that_o it_o appear_v outward_o to_o be_v almost_o not_o the_o same_o and_o as_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n alter_v so_o the_o father_n and_o council_n which_o be_v then_o much_o affect_v that_o state_n do_v alter_v the_o old_a use_n of_o âhe_n word_n pertain_v to_o these_o matter_n as_o they_o practise_v so_o likewise_o they_o speak_v and_o write_v and_o so_o have_v most_o man_n follow_v after_o they_o whereby_o at_o the_o last_o antichrist_n be_v undoubted_o advance_v but_o our_o noble_a 214._o noble_a our_o attestator_n before_o mention_v &_o special_o pag._n 104._o &_o after_o pag._n 214._o forefather_n of_o late_a have_v discover_v this_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n have_v find_v out_o also_o the_o corruption_n &_o depravation_n even_o of_o this_o word_n ecclesia_fw-la which_o have_v be_v extend_v large_a and_o far_o than_o apostolical_o it_o be_v the_o which_o abuse_v of_o this_o very_a word_n doubtless_o be_v a_o pregnant_a reason_n and_o mean_n among_o other_o to_o extend_v the_o church_n and_o government_n thereof_o to_o that_o universality_n which_o it_o come_v to_o and_o be_v still_o vehement_o challenge_v by_o the_o catholic_n wherefore_o great_a cause_n have_v we_o ad_fw-la originem_fw-la reverti_fw-la to_o go_v back_o even_o up_o to_o the_o first_o original_a and_o beginning_n as_o cyprian_n well_o advise_v us._n for_o so_o say_v he_o cessat_fw-la error_n humanus_fw-la thus_o and_o not_o otherwise_o error_n which_o have_v begin_v from_o man_n will_v cease_v wherefore_o we_o must_v refuse_v eusebius_n epiphanius_n theodoret_n and_o all_o either_o in_o or_o after_o their_o time_n for_o judge_n or_o interpreter_n of_o matter_n or_o word_n special_o touch_v church-governement_n the_o form_n whereof_o incline_v towards_o alteration_n yea_o somewhat_o before_o they_o as_o we_o may_v perceive_v in_o 6._o in_o can_v 6._o nic._n concile_v through_o humane_a ambition_n and_o desire_n of_o greatness_n which_o be_v incident_a even_o to_o the_o godly_a &_o best_a man_n but_o under_o constantin_n and_o after_o it_o degenerate_v much_o more_o wherefore_o in_o 127._o in_o see_v before_o pa._n 125._o 127._o conscience_n to_o god_n and_o to_o his_o bless_a word_n we_o must_v leave_v all_o man_n when_o they_o so_o palpable_o differ_v from_o the_o scripture_n as_o in_o this_o cause_n they_o do_v &_o cleave_v only_o and_o unseparable_o to_o the_o plain_a and_o 8.20_o and_o math_n 22.29_o joh._n 5.39.40_o isa_n 8.20_o proper_a writing_n of_o christ_n testament_n he_o 5._o he_o in_o his_o chap._n 5._o indeavour_v to_o make_v void_v some_o of_o our_o reason_n against_o diocesan_n church_n under_o
their_o trust_n in_o the_o live_a god_n 2.13_o god_n chap._n 2.13_o they_o dig_v to_o themselves_o pit_n that_o can_v hold_v no_o water_n it_o be_v true_a the_o universal_a and_o perpetual_a practice_n of_o christ_n church_n be_v to_o be_v hold_v always_o good_a and_o holy_a this_o i_o grant_v but_o it_o be_v because_o such_o practice_n evermore_o have_v the_o apostle_n plain_a writing_n for_o it_o and_o with_o it_o which_o the_o church_n say_v practice_n can_v not_o be_v destitute_a of_o but_o yet_o suppose_v our_o adversary_n have_v some_o kind_n of_o general_a consent_n of_o man_n for_o they_o as_o they_o pretend_v see_v they_o can_v not_o indeed_o produce_v the_o scripture_n more_o than_o the_o papist_n do_v who_o also_o pretend_v the_o like_a universal_a consent_n for_o their_o turn_n or_o suppose_v that_o they_o do_v but_o pretend_v all_o this_o universality_n &_o perpetuity_n be_v far_o from_o it_o indeed_o then_o why_o i_o praâ_n shall_v not_o we_o answer_v they_o as_o d._n bilson_n sometime_o answer_v the_o say_v papist_n say_v 360_o say_v answ_n to_o the_o seminar_n part_n 4._o pa._n 360_o if_o you_o want_v the_o foundation_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n he_o mean_v the_o scripture_n in_o vain_a you_o do_v seek_v to_o make_v a_o show_n of_o catholicisme_n with_o such_o patch_n and_o pamplet_n etc._n etc._n when_o you_o muster_v the_o father_n to_o disprove_v the_o scripture_n and_o to_o establish_v a_o unwritten_a faith_n under_o the_o credit_n of_o tradition_n you_o corrupt_v the_o writer_n and_o abuse_v the_o reader_n 362._o reader_n pag._n 362._o now_o cite_v not_o only_o 9_o but_o 9_o score_n father_n if_o you_o will_v for_o tradition_n &_o the_o more_o you_o stir_v the_o worse_a you_o spcede_v 300._o spcede_v pag._n 300._o truth_n he_o mean_v the_o scripture_n be_v authority_n sufficient_a against_o all_o the_o world_n 301._o world_n pag._n 301._o one_o man_n with_o truth_n be_v warrant_n against_o all_o the_o world_n yea_o every_o private_a man_n for_o his_o own_o person_n may_v embrace_v god_n law_n whosoever_o say_v nay_o and_o as_o tertullian_n have_v against_o this_o no_o man_n may_v prescribe_v nor_o space_n of_o time_n nor_o patronage_n of_o person_n nor_o privilege_n of_o place_n 299._o place_n pag._n 299._o though_o the_o whole_a world_n pronounce_v again_o the_o word_n yet_o god_n will_v be_v true_a and_o all_o man_n liar_n 384._o liar_n pag._n 384._o god_n speak_v not_o now_o but_o in_o the_o scripture_n how_o excellent_o be_v these_o thing_n write_v if_o he_o himself_o and_o his_o associate_n will_v follow_v the_o same_o or_o will_v suffer_v we_o to_o follow_v it_o the_o effect_n whereof_o be_v that_o not_o only_o we_o be_v bind_v evermore_o to_o hold_v fast_o god_n word_n and_o never_o to_o admit_v the_o carnal_a reason_n of_o humane_a consent_n in_o divine_a matter_n such_o as_o our_o question_n of_o the_o form_n of_o christ_n church_n be_v but_o also_o it_o notify_v d._n bilsons_n open_a contradiction_n to_o himself_o who_o press_v hardly_o against_o we_o that_o which_o he_o deny_v to_o the_o papist_n be_v god_n a_o accepter_n of_o person_n be_v it_o ill_a for_o papist_n to_o plead_v universal_a consent_n and_o yet_o must_v we_o content_v ourselves_o with_o it_o &_o rest_n thereon_o shall_v he_o say_v to_o we_o 223.235_o we_o perp._n gov_n pag._n 223.235_o be_v not_o the_o whole_a church_n a_o lawful_a and_o sufficient_a witness_n in_o that_o case_n and_o that_o it_o be_v enough_o 228._o enough_o pag._n 228._o if_o any_o christian_n person_n deserve_v to_o be_v credit_v and_o yet_o shall_v he_o say_v to_o papist_n 38â_n papist_n lib._n 4_o 38â_n it_o be_v alike_o haereticall_a to_o believe_v without_o scripture_n aâ_n to_o believe_v against_o scripture_n yea_o even_o to_o ourselves_o when_o he_o listen_v he_o can_v say_v 286._o say_v perp._n gov_n pag._n 286._o make_v we_o good_a proof_n out_o of_o scripture_n or_o leave_v tie_v god_n ordinance_n to_o your_o appetite_n wherefore_o we_o must_v crave_v leave_n in_o our_o cause_n also_o to_o answer_v he_o and_o all_o of_o his_o mind_n with_o his_o own_o word_n afore_o rehearse_v and_o likewise_o with_o d._n rainold_n that_o 257._o that_o cons_n 257._o no_o humane_a proof_n be_v sure_a in_o divinity_n &_o 19â_n &_o pag._n 19â_n truth_n be_v not_o to_o be_v try_v by_o consent_n of_o father_n &_o 45â_n &_o pag._n 45â_n for_o myself_o i_o assure_v you_o that_o neither_o dead_a nor_o quick_a father_n nor_o child_n shall_v persuade_v i_o any_o thing_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n which_o they_o can_v prove_v by_o moses_n &_o the_o prophet_n or_o which_o he_o mean_v by_o the_o apostle_n writing_n now_o thus_o the_o church_n universal_a &_o perpetual_a consent_n be_v no_o good_a proof_n in_o divinity_n the_o whole_a church_n consent_n at_o some_o time_n only_o be_v a_o proof_n much_o worse_o and_o by_o no_o mean_n to_o be_v admit_v though_o augustin_n in_o a_o certain_a place_n it_o seem_v hold_v it_o good_a yet_o it_o be_v his_o error_n as_o where_o he_o say_v 118._o say_v august_n epist_n 118._o si_fw-la quid_fw-la tota_fw-la hodiè_fw-la per_fw-la orbem_fw-la frequentat_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la hoc_fw-la quin_fw-la ita_fw-la faciendum_fw-la sit_fw-la disputare_fw-la insolentissimae_fw-la insaniae_fw-la est_fw-la if_o the_o whole_a church_n through_o out_o the_o world_n at_o this_o day_n observe_v any_o thing_n it_o be_v insolent_a madness_n to_o reason_n against_o it_o certain_o there_o have_v be_v and_o may_v be_v be_v be_v as_o sometime_o polygamy_n be_v catholic_a error_n which_o yet_o questionless_a may_v be_v yea_o ought_v to_o be_v reprove_v by_o all_o they_o that_o understand_v they_o well_o but_o have_v our_o adversary_n a_o universal_a consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n at_o any_o time_n alas_o they_o be_v far_o from_o it_o neither_o d._n bilson_n nor_o d._n downame_n nor_o they_o all_o have_v allege_v neither_o can_v they_o allege_v half_o a_o quarter_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n at_o any_o time_n what_o then_o then_o they_o be_v to_o lavish_a of_o their_o word_n in_o save_v they_o have_v the_o universal_a consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n they_o indeed_o come_v short_a of_o it_o by_o many_o hundred_o thousand_o a_o poor_a few_o god_n know_v they_o cite_v in_o comparison_n of_o all_o it_o may_v be_v they_o name_v some_o of_o the_o chief_a &_o most_o famous_a in_o their_o day_n yet_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o all_o who_o live_v then_o be_v of_o their_o mind_n 402._o d._n bilson_n against_o the_o seminar_n lib._n 1._o part_n 2._o pag._n 402._o neither_o be_v it_o necessary_a that_o all_o difference_n shall_v be_v record_v in_o writing_n nor_o that_o all_o record_n shall_v be_v preserve_v &_o come_v to_o our_o hand_n so_o that_o they_o be_v far_o from_o prove_v a_o universal_a consent_n at_o any_o time_n much_o less_o at_o all_o time_n of_o the_o church_n but_o what_o speak_v i_o of_o universality_n and_o perpetuity_n let_v our_o adversary_n not_o equivocat_n let_v they_o deal_v plain_o let_v they_o use_v no_o deceit_n in_o word_n nor_o force_n to_o man_n conscience_n and_o then_o i_o assure_v thou_o good_a reader_n nothing_o but_o novelty_n and_o iniquity_n be_v in_o their_o defence_n and_o assertion_n against_o us._n i_o have_v show_v before_o that_o in_o our_o controversy_n which_o we_o have_v at_o this_o day_n ââ_o day_n above_o pa._n 98.97_o ââ_o we_o speak_v against_o only_o a_o proper_a diocesan_n church_n and_o the_o bishop_n thereof_o where_o the_o people_n free_a consent_n be_v whole_o deny_v they_o as_o it_o be_v in_o england_n and_o our_o adversary_n defend_v namely_o this_o diocesan_n church_n and_o bishop_n of_o this_o particular_o and_o precise_o be_v all_o their_o 1_o their_o def._n 2.114_o epist_n to_o the_o king_n pag._n 1_o great_a and_o glorious_a commendation_n and_o praise_n which_o they_o publish_v now_o to_o the_o point_n be_v this_o kind_n of_o diocesan_n church_n and_o this_o kind_n of_o bishop_n apostolical_a have_v they_o universal_a &_o perpetual_a approbation_n for_o this_o nothing_o less_o i_o appeal_v herein_o to_o our_o right_a worthy_a attestator_n before_o allege_v yea_o to_o all_o indifferent_a and_o unpartial_a witness_n yea_o to_o the_o partial_a also_o in_o time_n of_o 66._o of_o pag._n 64._o 65._o 66._o antiquity_n who_o do_v stand_v with_o us._n by_o all_o true_a evidence_n it_o will_v be_v as_o clear_a as_o the_o light_n at_o noon_n day_n that_o this_o foresay_a proper_a diocesan_n church_n and_o bishop_n be_v not_o in_o the_o world_n till_o after_o 200._o year_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o time_n limit_v by_o we_o indeed_o not_o till_o after_o 300._o nay_o it_o be_v after_o 400_o and_o long_o also_o as_o i_o have_v show_v 88_o show_v pag._n 66._o 67._o 88_o before_o so_o that_o both_o d._n bilson_n and_o d._n downame_n defence_n which_o they_o have_v make_v for_o
the_o present_a church-state_n in_o england_n even_o in_o the_o substantial_a point_n of_o government_n therein_o be_v clean_o frustrate_v neither_o be_v the_o same_o apostolical_a neither_o have_v it_o universal_a nor_o perpetual_a nor_o indeed_o any_o old_a approbation_n among_o christian_n as_o they_o colourable_o pretend_v but_o it_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v novel_a novel_a a_o proper_a diocesan_n church_n be_v novel_a and_o mere_o of_o the_o wit_n and_o will_v of_o man_n and_o that_o after_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n rise_v the_o contrary_a obiecton_n of_o our_o adversary_n i_o will_v here_o observe_v euseb_n d._n dove_n 3._o falsification_n of_o euseb_n as_o near_o as_o i_o can_v first_o that_o which_o d._n downame_n borrow_v of_o d._n dove_n viz._n that_o mark_v constitute_v a_o diocesan_n church_n in_o alexandria_n but_o this_o i_o have_v show_v 91._o show_v pag._n 90_o 91._o before_o to_o be_v a_o mere_a forgery_n of_o these_o two_o d._n d._n ground_v upon_o a_o false_a translation_n of_o their_o author_n eusebius_n and_o here_o i_o can_v not_o but_o remember_v a_o second_o and_o a_o three_o like_o falsify_v of_o eusebius_n by_o d._n dove_n in_o his_o defence_n the_o former_a of_o these_o be_v pag._n 13._o where_o he_o say_v eusebius_n word_n be_v these_o 3.4_o these_o euseb_n lib_n 3.4_o timothy_n be_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a precinct_n of_o ephesus_n in_o as_o ample_a manner_n as_o titus_n of_o all_o the_o church_n of_o crete_n eusebius_n say_v not_o that_o timothy_n be_v but_o he_o say_v it_o be_v report_v that_o timothy_n be_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n as_o titus_n of_o the_o church_n of_o crete_n again_o eusebius_n say_v not_o of_o the_o whole_a precinct_n of_o ephesus_n nor_o in_o as_o ample_a manner_n there_o be_v no_o such_o word_n in_o eusebius_n author_n this_o be_v no_o translate_n but_o pervert_v a_o author_n thirly_n that_o which_o eusebius_n have_v indeed_o viz._n timothy_n be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v bishop_n of_o the_o parish_n in_o ephesus_n this_o he_o render_v not_o but_o pervert_v for_o in_o ephesus_n be_v not_o without_o the_o city_n much_o less_o the_o whole_a precinct_n of_o ephesus_n contain_v the_o large_a country_n adjoin_v yea_o that_o the_o church_n in_o ephesus_n be_v but_o a_o parish_n then_o ignatius_n show_v write_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o ephesus_n &_o say_v to_o they_o ephes._n they_o iânat_n aâ_n ephes._n when_o you_o come_v oft_o together_o into_o the_o same_o place_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o the_o whole_a then_o do_v come_v together_o in_o one_o place_n and_o it_o be_v not_o only_o false_a but_o absurd_a to_o say_v that_o the_o like_a may_v be_v speak_v now_o of_o the_o place_n the_o can_v they_o all_o come_v together_o in_o one_o place_n diocesan_n church_n of_o london_n thus_o therefore_o eusebius_n be_v pervert_v twice_o by_o d._n dove_n his_o 3._o falsify_v of_o he_o be_v where_o eusebius_n say_v of_o john_n the_o apostle_n in_o a_o certain_a city_n graec._n city_n euseb_n lib._n 3.23_o graec._n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d have_v refresh_v the_o brother_n and_o look_v on_o the_o bishop_n that_o be_v set_v over_o all_o the_o say_a brethren_n of_o that_o place_n he_o commit_v a_o young_a man_n to_o he_o but_o the_o d._n set_v it_o down_o thus_o john_n the_o apostle_n commit_v the_o charge_n of_o a_o young_a man_n to_o a_o bishop_n 18._o bishop_n pag._n 15._o 18._o qui_fw-la super_fw-la cunstâs_fw-la episcopos_fw-la erat_fw-la constitutuâ_n which_o be_v set_v over_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n thereabouts_o as_o if_o then_o there_o have_v be_v a_o archbishop_n or_o a_o bishop_n over_o bishop_n so_o say_v this_o doctor_n as_o out_o of_o eusebius_n but_o he_o abuse_v his_o author_n eusebius_n have_v not_o such_o a_o word_n and_o yet_o d._n downame_n also_o 4.112_o also_o def._n 4.112_o allege_v the_o same_o place_n though_o he_o cunning_o forbear_v to_o mention_v the_o word_n doct._n downame_n further_a press_v eusebius_n in_o that_o he_o say_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d it_o be_v report_v that_o titus_n be_v bishop_n of_o the_o church_n of_o crete_n 233._o as_o also_o perpet_n govern_v pag._n 233._o he_o translate_v it_o be_v record_v in_o history_n but_o he_o can_v not_o make_v that_o good_a in_o this_o place_n for_o the_o word_n signifi_v any_o relation_n or_o narration_n or_o report_v of_o a_o matter_n and_o eusebius_n use_v always_o to_o name_v his_o author_n &_o at_o full_a to_o set_v down_o the_o word_n when_o he_o ground_v upon_o any_o write_a history_n so_o he_o cit_v very_o often_o egesippus_fw-la clemens_n dionysius_n tertullian_n etc._n etc._n wherefore_o questionless_a here_o he_o mean_v some_o other_o report_n or_o tradition_n and_o speech_n of_o man_n i_o know_v not_o who_o and_o in_o set_v down_o such_o matter_n he_o be_v nothing_o curious_a many_o time_n as_o 92._o as_o pag._n 91._o 92._o before_o i_o have_v signify_v not_o seldom_o he_o report_v fabulous_a thing_n yea_o when_o he_o name_v his_o author_n credit_n eusebius_n of_o no_o absolute_a credit_n as_o be_v well_o know_v and_o yet_o he_o be_v all_o the_o warrant_n and_o ground_n which_o any_o writer_n have_v either_o young_a or_o old_a for_o tius_n his_o be_v bishop_n of_o crete_n theodoret_n epiphanius_n chrysostomus_n jerome_n etc._n etc._n name_n dorotheus_n synop_n be_v not_o worth_a the_o name_n have_v all_o their_o inducement_n so_o to_o think_v from_o hence_o all_o these_o also_o themselves_o be_v great_a prelate_n or_o lover_n of_o prelate_n and_o therefore_o we_o may_v hold_v they_o partial_a in_o set_v down_o and_o receive_v such_o report_n what_o wisdom_n then_o be_v in_o do._n downame_n to_o say_v it_o be_v a_o uncharitable_a and_o unlearned_a part_n yea_o intolerable_a impudency_n to_o deny_v credit_n to_o such_o authority_n it_o be_v rather_o intolerable_a impiety_n and_o plain_a idolatry_n to_o set_v up_o these_o and_o such_o like_a for_o rule_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o warrant_n to_o our_o conscience_n as_o the_o d._n labour_v to_o do_v in_o this_o cause_n howbeit_o further_o eusebius_n say_v not_o that_o titus_n be_v say_v to_o be_v bishop_n of_o crete_n but_o only_o so_o as_o timothy_n be_v bishop_n of_o ephesus_n where_o he_o seem_v to_o mean_v that_o both_o of_o they_o be_v then_o think_v to_o be_v not_o proper_a bishop_n but_o in_o the_o general_a sense_n and_o understanding_n of_o the_o word_n bishop_n and_o so_o he_o seem_v to_o mean_v also_o that_o mark_n be_v say_v to_o be_v bish_n of_o alexandria_n who_o yet_o he_o name_v a_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n &_o james_n a_o apostle_n in_o deed_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n i_o say_v in_o a_o general_a sense_n but_o not_o bishop_n proper_o and_o so_o true_o the_o other_o father_n after_o eusebius_n do_v seem_v to_o mean_v and_o we_o accord_v thus_o with_o they_o otherwise_o we_o must_v needs_o deny_v credit_n to_o they_o herein_o viz._n if_o eusebius_n etc._n etc._n say_v these_o be_v proper_a bishop_n for_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o they_o can_v be_v so_o see_v they_o be_v both_o superior_a and_o also_o divine_o distinguish_v from_o proper_a bishop_n as_o anon_o we_o shall_v see_v further_o where_o further_a occasion_n will_v be_v give_v we_o to_o answer_v d._n downame_n about_o timothy_n &_o titus_n bishoprike_v again_o 116._o again_o def._n 2.23_o and_o 116._o d._n downame_n cit_v out_o of_o council_n carthage_n 3._o and_o ephes_n 1._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d from_o the_o beginning_n and_o even_o from_o the_o apostle_n as_o 324._o as_o perpet_n gov_fw-mi pag._n 324._o doct._n bilson_n before_o he_o avouch_v but_o both_o of_o they_o wrest_v the_o councille_n for_o they_o say_v not_o so_o only_o they_o say_v that_o diocese_n shall_v remain_v such_o as_o they_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n that_o be_v ever_o since_o diocese_n be_v appoint_v not_o from_o the_o beginning_n simple_o but_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o diocese_n which_o though_o it_o be_v long_o before_o these_o council_n yet_o as_o i_o judge_v it_o be_v not_o before_o 92.93_o before_o about_o the_o year_n 260._o see_v before_o pag._n 92.93_o dionysius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o touch_v the_o apostle_n the_o ephesin_n council_n speak_v of_o the_o apostle_n canon_n be_v strange_o deceive_v in_o attribute_v they_o to_o the_o apostle_n as_o any_o one_o may_v perceive_v if_o he_o see_v the_o can._n 4.5.8.17_o 18.27.47.49.65_o 68_o 84.25_o wherefore_o they_o be_v false_o father_v on_o the_o apostle_n be_v but_o base_a and_o bastardly_a stuff_n in_o respect_n of_o they_o and_o yet_o they_o intend_v no_o 98._o no_o see_v before_o pag._n 88_o 97._o 98._o proper_a diocesan_n church_n viz._n like_o we_o in_o england_n neither_o be_v these_o canon_n before_o constantine_n age_n so_o that_o our_o d._n d._n do_v argue_v from_o hence_o very_o unworthy_o but_o d._n
down_n 2.106_o down_n def._n 2.106_o boast_v much_o that_o ignatius_n call_v himself_o rom._n himself_o ignat._n epâad_v rom._n bishop_n of_o syria_n why_o what_o then_o ignatius_n here_o show_v his_o nation_n not_o the_o extent_n of_o his_o bishopric_n he_o show_v he_o be_v a_o bishop_n of_o syria_n or_o a_o syrian_a bishop_n &_o not_o the_o bishop_n of_o all_o syria_n likewise_o to_o the_o magnes_fw-la the_o ad_fw-la magnes_fw-la magnesian_o that_o his_o church_n be_v a_o most_o famous_a &_o notable_a church_n in_o syria_n not_o the_o only_a church_n there_o much_o less_o extend_v over_o all_o syria_n neither_o be_v philip_n archbishop_n of_o crete_n as_o the_o doctor_n 2.125_o doctor_n defence_n 4.8_o and_o 2.125_o will_v make_v he_o seem_v by_o pervert_v and_o abuse_v eusebius_n again_o for_o his_o word_n â3_n word_n euse_n â_o â3_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d their_o bishop_n be_v to_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o church_n of_o gortyna_n mention_v a_o little_a before_o not_o to_o the_o very_a next_o word_n which_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v by_o themselves_o as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o parenthesis_n thus_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d together_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n in_o crete_n to_o take_v eusebius_n thus_o be_v the_o right_n take_v of_o he_o here_o for_o present_o himself_o open_v himself_o say_v it_o be_v the_o church_n of_o gortyna_n which_o be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d under_o he_o philip_n under_o philip_n and_o yet_o more_o plain_o after_o where_o with_o special_a respect_n to_o the_o former_a place_n in_o question_n he_o say_v of_o this_o philip_n 23._o philip_n cap._n 23._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d who_o we_o know_v by_o dionysius_n iâordes_v to_o have_v be_v bishop_n of_o the_o parish_n in_o gortyna_n so_o then_o he_o be_v not_o bishop_n of_o all_o crete_n by_o eusebius_n testify_v the_o doc._n in_o another_o place_n contradict_v himself_o and_o make_v pinytus_n at_o this_o very_a time_n to_o be_v bishop_n of_o 4.9_o of_o def._n 4.9_o candie_n that_o be_v of_o all_o crete_n as_o he_o mean_v in_o deed_n eusebius_n say_v that_o this_o pinytus_n be_v 4.21_o be_v euseb_n 4.21_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d bishop_n of_o they_o in_o crete_n but_o all_o man_n understand_v that_o he_o mean_v here_o to_o show_v but_o his_o nation_n not_o the_o extent_n of_o his_o bishopric_n for_o eusebius_n declaresh_a 23._o declaresh_a cap._n 23._o after_o that_o pinytus_n be_v gnossitaââ_n paraciae_fw-la episcopus_fw-la the_o bishop_n of_o the_o parish_n in_o gnossi_n which_o certain_o be_v not_o over_o all_o crete_n neither_o be_v gnosis_n the_o mother_n city_n of_o crete_n that_o which_o the_o doctor_n 2.93.100_o doctor_n def._n 2.93.100_o presume_v of_o evaristus_n bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o he_o there_o constitute_v a_o diocesan_n church_n and_o divide_a parish_n i_o have_v answer_v it_o 94._o it_o pag._n 93._o 94._o before_o his_o testimony_n out_o of_o tertullian_n cornelius_n of_o rome_n and_o cyprian_a for_o a_o diocesan_n church_n prove_v nothing_o touch_v the_o 2.97.98_o the_o def._n 2.97.98_o first_o tertullian_n say_v not_o that_o in_o rome_n or_o in_o any_o city_n then_o the_o christian_n be_v divide_v into_o many_o set_n constant_a and_o certain_a company_n tertallian_n tertallian_n and_o so_o have_v divers_a such_o ordinary_a assembly_n tertullian_n say_v no_o such_o matter_n which_o yet_o be_v the_o point_n indeed_o like_o a_o rhetorician_n he_o amplifi_v the_o multitude_n of_o christian_n and_o christianlie_n affect_v in_o his_o day_n and_o that_o be_v all_o that_o he_o do_v apol_n 37._o and_o ad_fw-la scapul_n they_o be_v in_o truth_n rhetorical_a amplification_n yet_o i_o say_v empire_n in_o the_o roman_a empire_n he_o comprehend_v in_o these_o great_a number_n all_o christianly_o affect_v and_o all_o their_o favourer_n not_o only_o the_o open_a member_n of_o the_o church_n 2._o cootiary_o he_o say_v they_o be_v one_o singular_a coetus_fw-la &_o aggregatio_fw-la def._n 2._o now_o such_o may_v be_v so_o many_o as_o he_o there_o note_v nothing_o of_o all_o this_o we_o deny_v but_o he_o show_v not_o that_o yet_o in_o any_o city_n the_o open_a resolut_a christian_n be_v divide_v into_o divers_a ordinary_a set_v company_n as_o i_o say_v the_o like_a do_v i_o answer_v to_o 9â_n to_o pag._n 9â_n that_o of_o the_o very_a great_a and_o innumerable_a people_n under_o cornelius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n they_o be_v so_o many_o that_o no_o man_n among_o they_o know_v the_o first_o number_n of_o they_o and_o so_o i_o suppose_v at_o this_o day_n the_o church_n be_v in_o paris_n in_o rovan_n etc._n etc._n where_o yet_o the_o church_n be_v not_o divide_v into_o several_a constant_a and_o set_v meeting_n but_o all_o belong_v only_o to_o one_o certain_a &_o constant_a assembly_n again_o under_o cornelius_n the_o christian_a people_n be_v not_o so_o many_o but_o one_o trophimus_n a_o presbyter_n draw_v away_o from_o he_o 4.2_o he_o cypr._n epist_n 4.2_o the_o great_a part_n of_o they_o after_o novatian_n &_o repent_v he_o bring_v they_o back_o with_o he_o again_o also_o the_o church_n assemble_v in_o one_o place_n to_o elect_v 4._o elect_v cypr._n epi._n 3.13_o and_o 4._o cornelius_n and_o a_o little_a before_o 6.22_o before_o euseb_n 6.22_o fabianus_n to_o be_v their_o bishop_n wherefore_o they_o be_v not_o absolute_o innumerable_a but_o this_o be_v plain_a and_o it_o can_v not_o be_v disprooved_a that_o yet_o the_o church_n in_o rome_n have_v not_o divers_a set_n constant_a ordinary_a assembly_n nor_o yet_o cyprian_n church_n in_o carthage_n 250._o anno_fw-la 250._o all_o the_o which_o come_v together_o for_o 55.56.57.58_o for_o see_v pag._n 55.56.57.58_o his_o election_n and_o under_o he_o also_o for_o all_o ordinary_a church_n business_n the_o do._n say_v untrue_o of_o he_o that_o 2.40_o that_o def._n 2.40_o he_o be_v bishop_n of_o africa_n nazianzen_n do_v make_v he_o bishop_n hesperiae_fw-la vniversae_fw-la of_o all_o spain_n at_o least_o as_o well_o as_o of_o africa_n and_o prudentius_n go_v further_a say_v he_o cypr._n he_o de_fw-fr passiâââ_n cypr._n usque_fw-la in_o ortum_fw-la solis_fw-la &_o usque_fw-la obitum_fw-la from_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o sun_n to_o the_o go_v down_o thereof_o but_o do_v any_o man_n believe_v that_o cypriââs_n bishopric_n be_v so_o large_a or_o that_o these_o author_n mean_v so_o nothing_o less_o they_o mean_v only_o that_o the_o example_n of_o this_o holy_a man_n and_o his_o doctrine_n do_v good_a thus_o far_o i_o grant_v also_o that_o by_o his_o letter_n he_o admonish_v and_o inform_v divers_a other_o bishop_n near_a about_o carthage_n and_o so_o he_o do_v cornelius_n of_o rome_n etc._n etc._n but_o this_o be_v out_o of_o his_o singular_a zeal_n for_o the_o truth_n and_o love_n to_o his_o brethren_n also_o he_o prevayl_v much_o in_o so_o do_v howbeit_o this_o be_v through_o his_o great_a credit_n &_o reverence_n they_o have_v of_o he_o it_o be_v not_o out_o of_o any_o metropolitan_a power_n that_o he_o have_v or_o superior_a office_n which_o he_o exercise_v over_o they_o for_o he_o have_v none_o such_o though_o he_o be_v a_o metropolitan_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o place_n where_o he_o be_v bishop_n and_o altogether_o 8â_n altogether_o defen_n 4_o 8â_n so_o do_v polycrates_n of_o ephesus_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d he_o lead_v or_o guide_v the_o asian_a bishop_n and_o no_o otherwise_o 2.115_o otherwise_o def._n 2.115_o irenaeus_n b._n of_o lion_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d do_v look_v unto_o certain_a church_n thereabouts_o in_o france_n and_o victor_n b._n of_o rome_n be_v a_o metropolitan_a no_o otherwise_o also_o although_o without_o any_o prejudice_n to_o we_o we_o may_v well_o grant_v these_o to_o have_v be_v then_o such_o metropolitan_o &_o diocesan_n power_n diocesan_n viz._n with_o priority_n of_o order_n not_o maioritie_n of_o power_n as_o before_o we_o acknowledge_v julianus_n of_o alexandria_n to_o have_v be_v who_o be_v somewhat_o ancient_a than_o they_o other_o diocesan_n or_o metropolitan_a bishop_n after_o these_o who_o both_o d._n downame_n and_o d._n bilson_n do_v name_n plentiful_o as_o they_o hurt_v not_o our_o main_a assertion_n viz._n that_o no_o proper_a diocesan_n church_n be_v in_o the_o world_n before_o 200._o year_n after_o christ_n so_o neither_o do_v we_o envy_v their_o appear_v which_o be_v etc._n be_v see_v pag._n 88_o 94._o etc._n etc._n so_o late_o as_o it_o be_v these_o d._n d._n do_v argue_v earnest_o from_o jerom_n say_v that_o âvagr_fw-la that_o jerom._n ad_fw-la âvagr_fw-la bishop_n above_o presbyter_n be_v at_o alexandria_n even_o from_o mark_v the_o evangelist_n which_o we_o willing_o agree_v unto_o for_o they_o be_v not_o diocesan_n bishop_n not_o over_o many_o ordinary_a congregation_n and_o such_o also_o be_v those_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v mention_v in_o the_o 2.1_o the_o rev._n 2.1_o revelation_n this_o we_o constant_o avouch_v
if_o our_o proof_n stand_v or_o subvertion_n if_o your_o answer_n be_v good_a for_o if_o this_o fail_v well_o may_v bishop_n claine_v their_o authority_n by_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n by_o any_o divine_a precept_n express_v in_o the_o scripture_n they_o can_v not_o say_v he_o so_o let_v we_o see_v then_o how_o sound_o this_o will_v stand_v but_o first_o i_o desire_v he_o to_o remember_v if_o it_o happen_v that_o this_o his_o proof_n out_o of_o the_o scripââââ_n ãâã_d subvert_v and_o then_o he_o be_v force_v to_o fly_v to_o the_o church_n custom_n for_o succour_n that_o himself_o have_v ruin_v cast_v down_o and_o deface_v that_o weak_a hold_v all_o ready_a so_o that_o there_o he_o can_v have_v no_o relief_n now_o then_o to_o his_o proof_n out_o of_o scripture_n that_o titus_n &_o timothy_n be_v bishop_n he_o frame_v 4._o argument_n for_o it_o 1._o that_o power_n to_o ordain_v sit_v minister_n to_o convent_n &_o discharge_v unfit_a prescribe_v to_o titus_n &_o timothy_n be_v no_o power_n proper_a to_o evangelist_n we_o grant_v this_o whole_o even_o the_o conclusion_n it_o be_v another_o point_n and_o nothing_o against_o us._n the_o conclusion_n of_o his_o 2._o argument_n be_v like_a to_o the_o former_a therefore_o we_o grant_v it_o also_o for_o this_o prove_v not_o that_o timothy_n or_o titus_n be_v proper_a bishop_n which_o be_v the_o question_n yet_o in_o the_o minor_a where_o he_o say_v that_o presbytery_n claim_v this_o power_n comit_v to_o timothy_n &_o tite_n even_o to_o ordain_v examine_v censure_n &_o deprive_v pastor_n i_o deny_v this_o to_o be_v true_a presbytery_n claim_v not_o this_o power_n neither_o have_v they_o it_o proper_o &_o original_o as_o bucer_n show_v 33._o show_v pag_n 33._o before_o proper_o and_o original_o the_o whole_a church_n have_v this_o power_n the_o presbytery_n have_v only_o the_o authority_n of_o administer_a the_o same_o &_o that_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o piscator_fw-la and_o vâsinus_n â1_n vâsinus_n pag._n 46._o â1_n before_o do_v express_v and_o further_o i_o answer_v by_o that_o distinction_n above_o note_v this_o power_n of_o ordain_v examine_v censure_v etc._n etc._n commit_v to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n the_o presbytery_n in_o deed_n have_v and_o execute_v material_o but_o not_o formal_o which_o make_v his_o minor_a proposition_n to_o be_v false_a most_o clear_o his_o 3._o argument_n be_v conclude_v in_o no_o form_n but_o where_o he_o 391._o he_o perp._n gov_n pag._n 391._o say_v the_o precept_n of_o ordain_v and_o censure_v be_v deliver_v to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n and_o to_o those_o that_o shall_v succeed_v they_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n ergo_fw-la timothy_n power_n &_o function_n in_o this_o behalf_n must_v be_v perpetual_a this_o be_v true_a likewise_o material_o but_o not_o formal_o their_o successor_n be_v to_o execute_v the_o same_o in_o deed_n always_o as_o touch_v the_o material_a action_n those_o thing_n must_v be_v do_v but_o under_o divers_a form_n of_o ministery_n or_o manner_n of_o administration_n here_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v proper_o evangelistes_n do_v these_o action_n under_o the_o form_n of_o a_o evangelisticall_a ministry_n sometime_o apostle_n do_v the_o same_o action_n but_o under_o the_o form_n of_o a_o apostolical_a ministry_n after_o they_o bishop_n do_v the_o same_o action_n also_o but_o under_o the_o form_n of_o a_o proper_a bishop_n office_n etc._n etc._n wherefore_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o these_o action_n material_o which_o timothy_n and_o titus_n do_v prove_v not_o the_o office_n and_o ministry_n of_o timothy_n and_o titus_n formal_o to_o be_v perpetual_a this_o be_v a_o very_a weak_a conclusion_n and_o very_o crooked_a his_o 4._o argument_n be_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n without_o exception_n have_v so_o construe_v the_o apostle_n word_n to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n touch_v their_o government_n and_o he_o name_v eusebius_n jerome_n ambrose_n etc._n etc._n d._n rainolds_n answer_v hart_n the_o priest_n 267._o confer_v pag._n 267._o i_o perceive_v the_o pope_n must_v fetch_v his_o supremacy_n from_o earth_n and_o not_o from_o heaven_n you_o be_v fall_v from_o scripture_n to_o eusebius_n even_o so_o our_o adversary_n when_o all_o be_v do_v they_o must_v fetch_v the_o diocesan_n l._n bishop_n office_n from_o earth_n and_o not_o from_o heaven_n they_o fall_v from_o scripture_n to_o eusebius_n etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o not_o eusebius_n not_o the_o rest_n do_v construe_v those_o precept_n to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n as_o belong_v only_o to_o bishop_n much_o ââ5_n much_o see_v before_o pag._n â24_n ââ5_n less_o do_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n without_o exception_n this_o be_v a_o strange_a hyperbole_n but_o these_o writer_n acknowledge_v timothy_n and_o titus_n to_o have_v ben_fw-mi bishop_n nay_o not_o diocesan_n l._n bishop_n they_o neither_o acknowledge_v nor_o know_v any_o such_o in_o their_o time_n as_o before_o have_v be_v show_v yet_o only_o of_o these_o our_o question_n be_v again_o they_o hold_v timothy_n &_o titus_n not_o to_o be_v bishop_n at_o all_o proper_o but_o in_o a_o general_a sense_n as_o 238._o as_o pag._n 230._o 238._o before_o i_o observe_v if_o they_o mean_v otherwise_o they_o miss_v the_o truth_n say_v d._n rainolds_n 267_o conf._n p._n 267_o howbeit_o they_o suffer_v none_o but_o bishop_n either_o to_o ordain_v or_o degrade_v presbyter_n yet_o as_o i_o say_v before_o not_o absolute_o with_o out_o the_o people_n consent_n as_o our_o l._n bishop_n do_v if_o any_o among_o they_o incline_v to_o neglect_v the_o people_n herein_o they_o do_v contrary_a to_o the_o canon_n of_o those_o time_n last_o it_o be_v true_a these_o ancient_n to_o much_o rest_v on_o custom_n &_o counsaill_n of_o man_n and_o humane_a policy_n in_o set_v the_o church_n government_n they_o as_o jerome_n incline_v to_o much_o to_o approve_v diocesan_n provincial_n and_o patriarchall_a bishop_n with_o too_o absolute_a power_n only_o ground_v upon_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n though_o they_o know_v they_o want_v divine_a disposition_n whence_o afterward_o antichrist_n easy_o spring_v up_o now_o than_o i_o pray_v with_o what_o colour_n can_v doct._n bilson_n from_o those_o precept_n to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n plead_v for_o our_o diocesan_n and_o provincial_n l._n bishop_n who_o they_o nothing_o concern_v and_o say_v the_o word_n be_v singular_a the_o charge_n be_v vehement_a the_o party_n be_v bishop_n 299._o bishop_n perp._n gov_n pag._n 299._o and_o how_o vain_o do_v he_o insult_v without_o reason_n charge_v we_o that_o 30â_n that_o pag._n 30â_n fire_n will_v better_o agree_v with_o water_n than_o we_o with_o ourselves_o which_o be_v his_o familiar_a custom_n not_o we_o after_o he_o let_v we_o see_v what_o d._n downame_n say_v for_o timothy_n and_o titus_n bishoprike_v true_o in_o effect_n he_o say_v nothing_o more_o for_o he_o follow_v d._n bilson_n most_o diligent_o yet_o he_o have_v a_o cartload_n of_o word_n about_o this_o point_n which_o he_o know_v well_o to_o be_v his_o only_a refuge_n wherein_o yet_o he_o can_v find_v no_o help_n first_o i_o will_v examine_v the_o pith_n of_o his_o discourse_n and_o they_o i_o will_v set_v down_o reason_n of_o i_o own_o prove_v sound_o that_o timothy_n &_o titus_n be_v not_o proper_a bishop_n first_o he_o say_v 75_o say_v def._n 4._o p._n 75_o it_o be_v presuppose_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n that_o the_o apostle_n commit_v to_o they_o bishoply_n authority_n it_o be_v untrue_a this_o be_v not_o presuppose_v then_o the_o epistle_n be_v the_o very_a pattern_n and_o precedent_n of_o bishoply_n function_n &c_n &c_n well_o what_o then_o then_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v bishop_n i_o deny_v this_o consequence_n there_o be_v no_o truth_n in_o this_o and_o t.c._n answer_n to_o d._n whitgifts_n like_a argument_n be_v sound_o and_o good_a though_o this_o great_a logician_n call_v it_o 76._o it_o pag._n 76._o sleight_n and_o frivolous_a the_o direction_n to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n about_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n be_v not_o 77._o not_o pag._n 77._o peculiar_a to_o bishop_n as_o he_o untrue_o add_v in_o the_o end_n for_o himself_o give_v this_o power_n and_o that_o right_o to_o other_o christian_n 99_o christian_n pag._n 99_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n and_o the_o truth_n give_v it_o to_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n the_o 4.11_o the_o eph_n 4.11_o superior_n of_o bishop_n his_o reason_n 77._o reason_n pag._n 77._o these_o be_v perpetual_a direction_n be_v a_o excellent_a reason_n to_o prove_v that_o this_o power_n be_v indeed_o essential_o seat_v by_o christ_n in_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o people_n people_n the_o power_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n essential_o in_o the_o people_n for_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o such_o christian_a congregation_n only_o be_v perpetual_a apostle_n
voice-giving_a which_o be_v then_o ordinary_a in_o pastor_n call_v timothy_n i_o say_v come_v not_o to_o ephesus_n by_o the_o people_n election_n nor_o titus_n to_o crect_n paul_n only_o authorize_v they_o to_o that_o ministry_n therefore_o their_o call_n or_o send_v thither_o be_v also_o extraordinary_a and_o tâmothie_n attain_v gift_n by_o extraordinary_a mean_n viz_o by_o the_o apostle_n miraculous_a lay_v on_o of_o hand_n though_o the_o d._n deny_v it_o then_o he_o add_v 3._o other_o error_n 1._o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n be_v whole_o in_o timothy_n and_o ãâã_d titus_n our_o attestator_n 38.4â_n attestator_n above_o pa._n 23_o 26_o 36_o 38.4â_n disprove_v thââ_n 2._o the_o function_n may_v be_v the_o very_a same_o where_n one_o person_n govern_v the_o church_n whole_o and_o alone_o &_o where_o thâ_n people_n do_v necessary_o concur_v with_o he_o though_o his_o word_n be_v not_o these_o yet_o his_o sense_n be_v clear_o so_o and_o all_o the_o next_o page_n he_o beat_v upon_o the_o same_o fearful_o affirm_v that_o the_o difference_n 102._o difference_n pag._n 102._o seem_v not_o to_o be_v so_o essential_a though_o he_o hold_v so_o yet_o see_v how_o he_o falter_v 3._o where_o he_o add_v the_o title_n or_o call_n to_o a_o church_n seem_v to_o be_v variable_a which_o be_v all_o gross_a untruth_n coâuted_v in_o my_o &c_n my_o pag_n 12_o at_o 34_o 35._o 38_o &c_n &c_n declarat_fw-la &_o the_o 3._o run_v among_o those_o evil_a opinion_n here_o 133.134_o here_o pag._n 133.134_o before_o censure_v that_o which_o he_o add_v as_o it_o be_v a_o proof_n for_o he_o the_o jew_n church_n governor_n come_v to_o their_o place_n 103._o place_n pag_n 103._o by_o succession_n and_o lineal_a descent_n but_o in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n by_o free_a election_n be_v absolute_o against_o himself_o for_o neither_o of_o these_o title_n or_o come_v to_o the_o church-governement_n have_v be_v lawful_a by_o any_o mean_n but_o because_o god_n so_o ordain_v and_o it_o be_v so_o ordain_v by_o god_n in_o his_o word_n it_o be_v they_o absolute_o unchangeable_a by_o man_n as_o in_o the_o law_n so_o likewise_o under_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v the_o law_n of_o christ_n where_o he_o say_v the_o apostle_n commit_v not_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n to_o all_o minister_n i_o answer_v they_o do_v as_o i_o have_v 25._o have_v declarar_fw-la pag_n 25._o elsewhere_o show_v their_o commit_v it_o to_o 104._o to_o pag_n 104._o timothy_n etc._n etc._n deny_v it_o not_o to_o the_o other_o presbyter_n in_o the_o several_a church_n neither_o do_v the_o angel_n power_n in_o the_o revelation_n 2._o exclude_v the_o joint_a power_n of_o his_o fellow_n presbyter_n with_o he_o nor_o yet_o the_o people_n free_a concurrence_n with_o they_o all_o his_o last_o reason_n be_v if_o while_o the_o apostle_n live_v it_o be_v behooveful_a to_o substitute_v bishop_n in_o the_o church_n then_o much_o more_o after_o their_o decease_n but_o the_o former_a be_v evident_a therefore_o the_o late_a also_o this_o i_o whole_o grant_v we_o mislike_v not_o bishop_n in_o the_o end_n he_o fall_v to_o the_o authority_n of_o those_o bastard_n 105._o bastard_n pag._n 105._o subscription_n &_o namely_o of_o the_o epistle_n to_o tim._n and_o titus_n touch_v the_o which_o i_o refer_v he_o to_o mr._n cudworth_n in_o his_o supplement_n to_o mr._n perkins_n on_o the_o 6._o the_o at_o the_o end_n of_o chap._n 6._o galatian_n where_o he_o shall_v find_v they_o to_o be_v of_o no_o 106._o no_o pag._n 106._o great_a antiquity_n nor_o better_a credit_n than_o such_o counterfeit_a dross_n may_v be_v the_o 107._o the_o pag._n 107._o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n which_o follow_v 244.259_o follow_v pag._n 244.259_o have_v be_v sufficient_o answer_v now_o i_o will_v gather_v brief_o our_o proof_n that_o timoth._n or_o titus_n be_v not_o proper_a bishop_n bishop_n proof_n that_o timothy_n etc._n etc._n be_v no_o bishop_n they_o be_v 8._o in_o number_n first_o the_o h._n ghost_n make_v 4.11_o make_v ephe._n 4.11_o evangelist_n and_o bishop_n or_o pastor_n distinct_a person_n therefore_o the_o apostle_n can_v not_o make_v they_o one_o and_o consequent_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v evangelist_n as_o be_v know_v neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v make_v proper_a bishop_n sec_n a_o evangelist_n have_v a_o office_n ibid._n office_n ibid._n superior_a extraordinary_a temporary_a and_o unlimited_a a_o bishop_n be_v inferior_a ordinary_a perpetual_a and_o limit_v to_o one_o church_n now_o these_o quality_n be_v incompatible_a they_o can_v neither_o be_v together_o nor_o successive_o in_o one_o person_n therefore_o timothy_n and_o titus_n evangelistes_n neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v proper_a bishop_n at_o any_o time_n three_o after_o timothy_n have_v be_v at_o ephesus_n he_o be_v a_o evangelist_n 4.5_o 2._o tim._n 4.5_o for_o paul_n charge_v he_o so_o to_o be_v and_o carry_v himself_o neither_o be_v there_o cause_n nor_o reason_n why_o paul_n here_o shall_v speak_v improper_o and_o general_o therefore_o he_o speak_v proper_o 240._o proper_o see_v pag._n 240._o &_o he_o be_v still_o a_o proper_a evangelist_n and_o consequent_o not_o asleep_o proper_a bishop_n and_o so_o likewise_o titus_n fourt_n timothy_n ministie_a at_o ephesus_n extend_v to_o other_o distinct_a and_o entire_a church_n viz._n to_o smyrna_n to_o sardis_n to_o pergamus_n to_o colossi_fw-la to_o hierapolis_n to_o laodicea_n etc._n etc._n and_o not_o to_o the_o church_n in_o ephesus_n only_o but_o the_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n ministry_n be_v limit_v and_o appropriate_v to_o the_o church_n in_o ephesus_n only_o as_o also_o of_o smyrna_n to_o smyrna_n of_o sardis_n to_o sardis_n etc._n etc._n as_o the_o angel_n in_o rev._n 2._o do_v show_n therefore_o timothy_n be_v not_o proper_o the_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n and_o then_o neither_o titus_n of_o crete_n five_o timothy_n be_v thesame_a &_o no_o other_o at_o ephesus_n than_o he_o be_v at_o philippi_n and_o corinth_n at_o athens_n and_o thessalonica_n in_o phrygia_n galatia_n mysia_n &_o troas_n but_o in_o these_o bee_n be_v no_o proper_a bishop_n of_o any_o place_n therefore_o neither_o be_v he_o a_o proper_a bishop_n at_o ephesus_n so_o likewise_o 29.30.6_o likewise_o declarat_fw-la pag._n 29.30.6_o titus_n in_o crete_n sixth_o proper_a bishop_n in_o those_o day_n be_v not_o call_v without_o the_o coââent_n and_o voice_n of_o their_o church_n as_o before_o 164.251_o before_o pag._n 164.251_o have_v be_v show_v but_o titus_n come_v to_o crete_n and_o timothy_n into_o asia_n only_o by_o the_o apostle_n paul_n send_v utter_o without_o the_o people_n calling_n to_o who_o they_o minister_v in_o all_o those_o church_n therefore_o titus_n in_o crete_n &_o timothy_n in_o ephesus_n be_v no_o bishop_n seven_o if_o titus_n be_v a_o proper_a bishop_n in_o crete_n than_o many_o distinct_a and_o entire_a church_n be_v not_o commit_v to_o he_o but_o only_o one_o but_o to_o titus_n in_o crete_n many_o distinct_a &_o entire_a church_n be_v commit_v and_o not_o one_o only_a therefore_o titus_n in_o crete_n be_v no_o proper_a bishop_n the_o assumption_n be_v plain_a because_o he_o have_v many_o 1.5_o many_o tit._n 1.5_o city_n in_o his_o charge_n and_o every_o city_n have_v a_o distinct_a and_o entire_a church_n for_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d 14.23_o ãâã_d act._n 14.23_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d in_o every_o city_n &_o in_o every_o church_n do_v signify_v all_o one_o thing_n and_o eusebius_n 4.22_o eusebius_n euse_n 4.22_o make_v they_o so_o likewise_o but_o every_o proper_a bishop_n be_v limit_v and_o appropriate_v to_o one_o church_n only_o the_o d._n say_v assign_v but_o that_o word_n be_v to_o loose_v indeed_o a_o bishop_n be_v limit_v &_o appropriate_v &_o as_o it_o be_v confine_v to_o one_o church_n d._n bilson_n say_v 232._o say_v perpet_n gov_fw-mi pag_n 227._o 232._o affix_v therefore_o titus_n be_v no_o bishop_n nor_o timothy_n neither_o last_o whatsoever_o reason_n make_v titus_n &_o timothy_n provincial_n bishop_n in_o crete_n and_o in_o asia_n the_o same_o serve_v to_o make_v paul_n or_o peter_n universal_a bishop_n and_o to_o have_v universal_a bishop_n their_o successor_n at_o rome_n but_o no_o reason_n be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v paul_n or_o peter_n universal_a ordinary_a bishop_n of_o rome_n nor_o that_o they_o shall_v have_v universal_a bishop_n their_o successor_n therefore_o no_o reason_n sufficient_a to_o make_v titus_n in_o crete_n or_o timothy_n at_o ephesus_n provincial_n bishop_n and_o so_o much_o of_o timothy_n and_o titus_n that_o they_o be_v indeed_o no_o proper_a bishop_n which_o point_n yet_o doct._n bilson_n 241._o bilson_n see_v before_o pag._n 241._o confess_v to_o be_v their_o only_a hold_n after_o this_o let_v we_o now_o show_v how_o d._n downame_n gross_o 14â_n gross_o def._n 2_o 14â_n abuse_v calvin_n and_o beza_n affirm_v that_o they_o join_v with_o the_o bishop_n
of_o england_n in_o maintain_v diocesan_n and_o provincial_n church_n abuse_v calvin_n and_o beza_n abuse_v and_o that_o therein_o they_o be_v against_o us._n first_o though_o calvin_n do_v note_n in_o this_o chapt._n the_o church_n state_n 4.4.1_o state_n institut_fw-la 4.4.1_o before_o the_o papacy_n yet_o he_o say_v not_o neither_o be_v it_o before_o papalitie_n begin_v again_o your_o government_n may_v be_v not_o withstand_v from_o the_o papist_n as_o indeed_o it_o be_v though_o this_o church_n state_n there_o note_v by_o calvin_n be_v before_o the_o papacy_n 4._o chap._n 4._o for_o your_o government_n be_v by_o he_o describe_v in_o his_o 5._o his_o chap._n 5._o next_o chapter_n where_o he_o say_v sect._n say_v sect._n i_o be_o in_o eligendo_fw-la totum_fw-la illud_fw-la ius_fw-la populi_fw-la sublatum_fw-la est_fw-la ad_fw-la solos_fw-la canonicos_fw-la integra_fw-la potestas_fw-la translata_fw-la est_fw-la ill_n in_o quem_fw-la volunt_fw-la conferunt_fw-la episcopatum_fw-la eum_fw-la mox_fw-la in_o conspestu_fw-ge plebis_fw-la producunt_fw-la non_fw-la examinandun_v sed_fw-la adorandum_fw-la now_o all_o the_o right_a of_o the_o people_n to_o choose_v thâir_n pastor_n be_v take_v away_o the_o whole_a power_n be_v transfer_v to_o the_o canon_n or_o prebendary_n only_o they_o bestow_v the_o bishopric_n on_o who_o they_o will_v he_o they_o bring_v forth_o before_o the_o people_n not_o to_o be_v try_v but_o to_o be_v worship_v of_o they_o and_o though_o he_o say_v this_o be_v 5._o be_v in_o the_o title_n of_o chap._n 5._o tyrannide_fw-la papatus_fw-la by_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o papacy_n yet_o every_o one_o see_v it_o to_o be_v the_o same_o kind_n that_o be_v use_v in_o england_n &_o which_o differ_v substantial_o from_o the_o ancient_a form_n of_o church_n government_n yea_o from_o that_o by_o he_o note_v in_o his_o 4._o chapter_n which_o be_v not_o it_o that_o you_o exercise_v &_o labour_n to_o maintain_v so_o any_o may_v see_v from_o who_o in_o deed_n you_o have_v receive_v your_o government_n second_o he_o say_v those_o before_o have_v almost_o nothing_o dissonant_n from_o god_n word_n where_o he_o grant_v they_o have_v somewhat_o and_o therefore_o he_o will_v not_o that_o this_o church_n government_n shall_v be_v 149._o be_v see_v before_o pag._n 149._o our_o pattern_n though_o he_o hold_v it_o not_o whole_o intolerable_a what_o mean_v the_o vain_a doctor_n to_o say_v we_o 146._o we_o pag._n 146._o ourselves_o do_v extend_v our_o assertion_n to_o two_o hundred_o year_n we_o do_v not_o extend_v our_o pattern_n so_o far_o indeed_o we_o say_v a_o proper_a diocesan_n church_n be_v not_o before_o that_o time_n but_o we_o take_v our_o pattern_n of_o a_o church_n only_o from_o the_o new_a testam_fw-la as_o we_o ought_v against_o which_o fundamental_a point_n of_o christian_a religion_n see_v how_o profane_o and_o yet_o absurd_o he_o reason_v aswell_o they_o may_v allege_v that_o no_o whole_a country_n ought_v to_o be_v convert_v because_o none_o be_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n as_o to_o deny_v a_o whole_a country_n to_o be_v a_o church_n usedâ_n shall_v weâ_n not_o use_v that_o form_n of_o a_o church_n which_o the_o apost_n usedâ_n because_o it_o be_v not_o so_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n never_o do_v i_o hear_v a_o more_o senseless_a speech_n and_o yet_o it_o savour_v all_o of_o impiety_n every_o visible_a church_n may_v contain_v no_o mo_z ordinary_a congregation_n than_o the_o new_a testament_n show_v that_o a_o church_n contain_v then_o which_o be_v but_o one_o and_o yet_o a_o whole_a country_n may_v be_v convert_v to_o the_o faith_n and_o be_v convert_v may_v be_v reduce_v into_o many_o church_n in_o number_n according_a to_o the_o form_n 16.19_o form_n galat._n 1_o â_o 21._o and_o â_o cor._n 8.1_o &_o 1_o cor._n 16.19_o extant_a in_o christ_n testament_n and_o god_n forbid_v we_o shall_v profess_v to_o do_v otherwise_o as_o for_o calvin_n beside_o that_o above_o note_v in_o he_o 149._o he_o pag._n 149._o speak_v of_o the_o order_n set_v down_o in_o scripture_n he_o say_v the_o same_o be_v it_o â_o it_o instit_fw-la 4._o â_o â_o quo_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la svam_fw-la gubernari_fw-la voluit_fw-la dominus_fw-la wherewith_o the_o lord_n will_v have_v his_o church_n to_o be_v govern_v always_o again_o â_o again_o sect._n â_o ecclesiae_fw-la disitpationem_fw-la vel_fw-la rvinam_fw-la potiùs_fw-la &_o exitium_fw-la molitur_fw-la quisquis_fw-la ordinem_fw-la hunc_fw-la de_fw-la quo_fw-la disputamus_fw-la &_o hoc_fw-la genus_n regiminis_fw-la vel_fw-la abolere_fw-la studet_fw-la vel_fw-la quasi_fw-la minus_fw-la necessarium_fw-la elevat_fw-la he_o seek_v the_o ruin_n and_o destruction_n of_o the_o church_n whosoever_o indeavour_v to_o abolish_v this_o order_n and_o this_o kind_a of_o government_n whereof_o we_o treat_v or_o make_v light_n of_o it_o as_o less_o necessary_a speak_v as_o i_o say_v of_o that_o same_o kind_n of_o ordinary_a government_n which_o be_v find_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v calvins_n mind_n can_v we_o think_v that_o he_o will_v like_v of_o the_o doctor_n mutability_n no_o nor_o of_o his_o call_v he_o and_o beza_n 140._o beza_n defen_n 2._o pag._n 140._o author_n of_o discipline_n and_o he_o the_o first_o or_o chief_a founder_n of_o it_o beside_o be_v not_o this_o doct._n a_o cunning_a dissembler_n who_o can_v say_v of_o calvin_n that_o his_o memory_n with_o i_o be_v bless_v and_o yet_o curseâh_a and_o revile_v his_o discipline_n as_o he_o call_v it_o three_o be_v it_o truth_n &_o must_v we_o abide_v it_o that_o calvin_n agree_v with_o the_o do._n against_o lay_v elder_n as_o he_o call_v they_o and_o his_o refuter_fw-la reprove_v he_o for_o that_o speech_n he_o mock_v say_v what_o shall_v become_v of_o i_o now_o he_o say_v he_o will_v salve_v it_o but_o how_o forsooth_o he_o confess_v calvin_n be_v against_o he_o both_o touch_v the_o scripture_n and_o also_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o first_o church_n how_o salve_v he_o the_o matter_n then_o calvin_n say_v that_o afterward_o every_o city_n have_v a_o college_n of_o elder_n all_o which_o be_v teacher_n what_o then_o can_v not_o calvin_n think_v that_o this_o may_v somewhat_o differ_v from_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o this_o be_v thus_o about_o and_o after_o the_o nicen_n council_n hitherward_o and_o yet_o in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o the_o church_n after_o the_o apostle_n there_o be_v some_o such_o lie_v elder_n be_v it_o not_o possible_a that_o calvin_n may_v thus_o mean_a but_o that_o he_o must_v needs_o agree_v in_o this_o matter_n with_o the_o d._n and_o gross_o contradict_v himself_o thus_o forsooth_o our_o d._n will_v needs_o have_v it_o in_o word_n commend_v calvin_n &_o beza_n for_o the_o learned_a disciplinarian_o but_o indeed_o make_v they_o what_o he_o can_v to_o seem_v fool_n four_o neither_o calvin_n nor_o beza_n 144._o beza_n pag._n 14â_n 144._o agree_v with_o they_o nor_o material_o differ_v from_o we_o about_o a_o diocesan_n church_n as_o he_o almost_o every_o where_o repeat_v that_o they_o do_v and_o be_v still_o beat_v upon_o it_o but_o false_o for_o first_o calvin_n make_v not_o even_o then_o the_o city_n &_o country_n to_o be_v but_o one_o body_n he_o say_v 2._o say_v instit_fw-la 4.4_o 2._o velut_fw-la corpus_fw-la as_o it_o be_v a_o body_n he_o mean_v not_o that_o it_o be_v a_o perfect_a body_n but_o that_o there_o be_v some_o resemblance_n of_o one_o body_n because_o of_o the_o consociation_n of_o all_o under_o one_o bishop_n yet_o indeed_o he_o make_v each_o parish_n than_o a_o body_n substantial_o say_v 1â_n say_v sect._n 1â_n cum_fw-la parochijs_fw-la novi_fw-la presbyter_n destinabantur_fw-la tunc_fw-la loci_fw-la multitudinem_fw-la nominatim_fw-la consentire_fw-la oportuit_fw-la when_o new_a presbyter_n be_v appoint_v to_o parish_n than_o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o place_n must_v namely_o consent_v this_o power_n make_v they_o a_o body_n indeed_o and_o to_o the_o diocese_n they_o belong_v but_o as_o it_o be_v to_o a_o body_n or_o as_o have_v some_o resemblance_n of_o a_o body_n which_o yet_o consist_v in_o deed_n of_o many_o distinct_a body_n &_o someway_o independent_a this_o be_v the_o diocesan_n church_n which_o calvin_n and_o beza_n also_o speak_v of_o and_o be_v constitute_v at_o geneva_n and_o in_o france_n and_o in_o the_o lowcountry_n etc._n etc._n but_o this_o be_v not_o the_o 89._o the_o see_v before_o pag._n 88_o 89._o proper_a diocesan_n church_n which_o be_v in_o england_n there_o be_v a_o substantial_a difference_n between_o this_o improper_a and_o unperfit_a diocesan_n body_n and_o that_o which_o be_v proper_a and_o perfect_a now_o then_o how_o do_v calvin_n and_o beza_n agree_v with_o the_o bishop_n of_o england_n touch_v a_o diocesan_n church_n as_o he_o so_o oft_o vaunt_v and_o boast_v that_o they_o do_v or_o how_o do_v they_o dissent_v from_o we_o we_o see_v they_o do_v not_o the_o doct._n do_v but_o slander_v they_o neither_o 2.147_o neither_o def._n 2.147_o do_v beza_n
mean_a that_o any_o first_o presbyter_n in_o a_o church_n be_v formal_o appoint_v to_o ãâã_d diocese_n under_o the_o apostle_n some_o kind_n of_o 89._o of_o see_v before_o pag._n 89._o diocese_n be_v apostolic_a but_o he_o show_v sufficient_o that_o these_o bb._n diocese_n begin_v somewhile_o after_o the_o apostle_n in_o that_o he_o say_v 6.24_o say_v bez._n de_fw-fr grad_v min._n 6.24_o they_o be_v first_o frame_v according_a to_o the_o division_n of_o the_o province_n under_o the_o roman_a empire_n which_o very_o be_v nor_o regard_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n nor_o in_o the_o next_o age_n after_o wherefore_o beza_n mean_v the_o first_o presbyter_n thus_o assign_v formal_o be_v after_o the_o apostle_n &_o their_o abuse_a name_n bishop_n also_o last_o i_o can_v pass_v how_o insolent_o the_o d._n etc._n d._n def._n 3.15_o etc._n etc._n taunt_v i_o for_o observe_v many_o sort_n of_o bishop_n and_o namely_o for_o 7._o for_o in_o reas_fw-la for_o ref_o pag._n 7._o set_v down_o six_o sort_n of_o they_o also_o for_o be_v ignorant_a whether_o jerusalem_n or_o caesarea_n have_v the_o patriarchship_n &_o for_o suppose_v diocesan_n rule_v bishop_n may_v begin_v with_o dionysius_n at_o aâexandria_n and_o for_o not_o speak_v any_o thing_n of_o metropolitan_o beginning_n let_v the_o d._n know_v i_o be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o jerusalem_n have_v the_o patriarchship_n but_o it_o be_v a_o question_n and_o that_o i_o mean_v to_o touch_v whether_o jerusalem_n exercise_v ordinary_a jurisdiction_n over_o caeâarea_n &_o the_o province_n thereof_o or_o not_o margin_n pag._n 8._o in_o margin_n but_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o no_o worth_n therefore_o i_o pass_v it_o substance_n metropolitan_o diocesan_n patriarch_n all_o one_o in_o substance_n metropolitan_o in_o his_o sense_n ãâã_d speak_v not_o of_o when_o i_o reckon_v up_o the_o liver_n sort_n of_o bishop_n because_o in_o substance_n of_o their_o office_n they_o be_v all_o âne_n with_o diocesan_n archbishop_n and_o patriarch_n of_o who_o whosoever_o hold_v âne_a lawful_a will_v hold_v all_o so_o to_o be_v and_o âe_v who_o hold_v one_o apostolic_a will_v acknowledge_v they_o all_o apostolic_a this_o therefore_o also_o be_v no_o matter_n what_o âoever_o he_o make_v of_o it_o touch_v diââysius_n of_o alexandria_n i_o confess_v i_o be_v to_o âlame_v in_o think_v he_o may_v be_v the_o author_n of_o majoritie_n of_o power_n &_o rule_v ân_o diocesan_n bishop_n it_o be_v because_o i_o âudged_v it_o to_o be_v ancient_a than_o indeed_o ât_z be_v or_o then_o reason_n give_v it_o begin_v maioritie_n of_o power_n when_o it_o begin_v now_o âherefore_o i_o profess_v it_o can_v be_v rove_v to_o be_v ancient_a than_o the_o niceâ_n council_n or_o constantine_n the_o emperor_n as_o i_o note_v before_o once_o d._n bilson_n be_v also_o of_o this_o mind_n with_o i_o where_o he_o show_v that_o it_o be_v not_o 318._o not_o against_o the_o seminar_n part_n 2._o pag._n 318._o by_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n nor_o his_o apostle_n but_o long_o after_o by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n the_o custom_n of_o the_o time_n and_o the_o will_n of_o prince_n and_o touch_v my_o make_v many_o sort_n of_o bishop_n and_o my_o distinguish_n of_o the_o word_n the_o doct._n mislike_v that_o show_v his_o ignorance_n not_o a_o little_a or_o else_o he_o show_v that_o which_o be_v worse_o if_o he_o mislike_v that_o i_o make_v so_o many_o sort_n as_o six_o true_o it_o be_v my_o fault_n that_o i_o make_v so_o few_o jerom_n witness_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o his_o time_n come_v to_o that_o power_n paulatim_fw-la by_o little_a &_o little_a and_o the_o universal_a monarch_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n come_v not_o to_o his_o greatness_n at_o once_o papacy_n have_v papalitie_n go_v before_o in_o divers_a and_o sundry_a degree_n the_o word_n reason_n and_o experience_n do_v show_v in_o such_o alteration_n of_o government_n at_o least_o so_o many_o distinct_a difference_n yea_o mo_z also_o now_o therefore_o i_o desire_v the_o reader_n to_o give_v i_o leave_v upon_o better_a consideration_n to_o set_v down_o the_o distinction_n of_o bishop_n in_o 7._o difference_n bishop_n seven_o sort_n of_o bishop_n i_o affirm_v therefore_o that_o the_o name_n bishop_n in_o christian_a writer_n be_v give_v to_o seven_o divers_a sort_n which_o to_o observe_v be_v right_a needful_a and_o most_o profitable_a to_o end_v this_o great_a controversy_n first_o the_o name_n be_v general_o give_v even_o to_o 20._o to_o act._n 1_o 20._o apostle_n yea_o evangeliste_n also_o may_v so_o be_v call_v bishop_n as_o 240._o as_o pag._n 238._o 240._o before_o be_v show_v second_o it_o be_v give_v to_o pastor_n equal_a and_o 1.1_o and_o act._n 20.28_o philip_n 1.1_o many_o in_o one_o ordinary_a congregation_n to_o who_o also_o the_o name_n of_o presbyter_n be_v common_a such_o be_v the_o ministry_n now_o in_o the_o dutch_a &_o french_a church_n three_o one_o pastor_n of_o a_o church_n contain_v no_o mo_z ordinary_a congregation_n but_o one_o be_v by_o the_o ancient_a church_n writer_n call_v a_o bishop_n singular_o as_o linus_n be_v at_o rome_n anianus_n at_o alexandria_n onesimus_n at_o ephesus_n ignatius_n at_o antioch_n polycarpus_n at_o smyrna_n etc._n etc._n such_o also_o be_v the_o 2.1_o the_o rev._n 2.1_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n in_o ephesus_n and_o in_o smyrna_n etc._n etc._n the_o scripture_n give_v not_o he_o the_o name_n bishop_n peculiar_o when_o he_o have_v other_o assistant_n pastor_n with_o he_o but_o other_o writer_n do_v which_o true_o i_o will_v not_o strive_v against_o four_o the_o name_n bishop_n be_v give_v to_o a_o titular_a diocesan_n bishop_n of_o who_o none_o can_v be_v prove_v ancient_a than_o julianus_n the_o ten_o bishop_n in_o alexandria_n five_o diocesan_n bishop_n with_o 25._o with_o declarat_fw-la pag._n 24._o 25._o maioritie_n of_o power_n be_v call_v bishop_n these_o begin_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a or_o otherwise_o under_o constantine_n though_o the_o council_n speak_v of_o metropolitan_o long_o before_o yet_o their_o power_n over_o their_o brethren_n be_v not_o ratify_v by_o any_o law_n five_o diocesan_n bishop_n with_o 25._o with_o declarat_fw-la pag._n 24._o 25._o maioritie_n of_o power_n be_v call_v bishop_n these_o begin_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a or_o otherwise_o under_o constantine_n though_o the_o council_n speak_v of_o metropolitan_o long_o before_o yet_o their_o power_n over_o their_o brethren_n be_v not_o ratify_v by_o any_o law_n or_o public_a ordinnance_n till_o then_o it_o be_v before_o but_o arbitrary_a by_o the_o church_n affection_n and_o no_o otherwise_o six_o the_o diocesan_n l._n bishop_n or_o the_o sole_a govern_v bishop_n be_v call_v a_o bishop_n such_o be_v we_o now_o in_o england_n of_o the_o original_n and_o first_o beginning_n of_o such_o i_o have_v speak_v 67._o speak_v pag._n 66._o 67._o before_o seaventh_o a_o pope_n or_o universal_a pastor_n have_v this_o name_n bishop_n he_o begin_v at_o rome_n about_o 600._o year_n after_o christ_n but_o come_v not_o to_o his_o absolute_a greatness_n till_o divers_a hundred_o year_n after_o and_o this_o distinction_n will_v assure_o with_o case_n be_v iustify_v reason_n and_o experience_n do_v show_v such_o degree_n in_o proceed_v and_o thus_o far_o the_o answer_n to_o d._n downame_n defence_n of_o diocesan_n church_n objection_n be_v make_v also_o intensive_o viz._n against_o the_o christian_a people_n right_a to_o consent_v in_o church_n govern_v answer_v objection_n against_o the_o people_n power_n answer_v it_o be_v fit_a we_o shall_v answer_v these_o likewise_o so_o far_o as_o be_v needful_a first_a great_a &_o much_o pain_n have_v be_v take_v by_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o truth_n to_o deprave_v the_o plain_a and_o easy_a word_n of_o matthew_n 18.17_o tell_v the_o church_n they_o be_v content_a to_o take_v they_o any_o way_n so_o it_o be_v not_o the_o right_a way_n doct._n bilson_n spend_v a_o 4._o a_o d._n bilson_n perp_v gov_fw-mi chap._n 4._o whole_a chapter_n to_o make_v they_o seem_v to_o signify_v a_o senate_n or_o bench_n of_o jewish_a civil_a magistrate_n which_o he_o learn_v only_o from_o a_o physician_n erastus_n but_o there_o be_v a_o sufficient_a refutation_n of_o this_o opinion_n in_o the_o three_o argument_n of_o the_o divine_a beginning_n and_o institution_n of_o christ_n true_a visib_n church_n second_o d._n bilson_n contradict_v himself_o understand_v these_o word_n of_o a_o ecclesiastical_a senate_n or_o synod_n thus_o also_o do._n downame_n understand_v they_o as_o 107.108_o as_o pa._n 107.108_o before_o we_o have_v see_v where_o be_v a_o sufficient_a answer_n likewise_o thereunto_o three_o master_n johnson_n of_o the_o separation_n since_o in_o this_o point_n he_o turn_v his_o opinion_n upside_o down_o 1611._o down_o treat_n of_o the_o exposit_n of_o mat._n 18.19_o anno._n 1611._o affirm_v that_o these_o word_n signify_v that_o the_o jewish_a form_n of_o
government_n be_v by_o christ_n ordain_v for_o the_o gospel_n i_o discern_v not_o well_o whether_o he_o mean_v that_o this_o rule_n for_o the_o christian_a church_n government_n shall_v be_v form_v after_o the_o pattern_n of_o the_o jewish_a civil_a government_n or_o ecclesiastical_a or_o both_o whatsoever_o jewish_a form_n of_o government_n he_o mean_v his_o meaning_n can_v not_o be_v true_a for_o first_o if_o christ_n in_o these_o word_n mean_v the_o jewish_a governor_n they_o here_o be_v no_o direction_n at_o all_o for_o the_o christian_a church_n government_n here_o be_v nothing_o then_o that_o sound_v to_o any_o such_o purpose_n christ_n say_v not_o here_o let_v my_o disciple_n hereafter_o in_o their_o church_n follow_v the_o form_n and_o order_v judaical_a in_o this_o place_n there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n but_o as_o i_o suppose_v even_o mai._n johnson_n himself_o hold_v christ_n here_o in_o this_o place_n set_v a_o order_n of_o government_n for_o his_o church_n under_o the_o gospel_n this_o in_o deed_n be_v most_o certain_o true_a therefore_o his_o othet_n opinion_n that_o christ_n here_o send_v his_o disciple_n to_o the_o jewish_a governor_n be_v false_a i_o grant_v calvin_n and_o beza_n think_v that_o christ_n here_o allude_v to_o the_o jewish_a church_n government_n in_o their_o particular_a synagogue_n but_o very_o i_o can_v conceive_v why_o or_o how_o it_o shall_v be_v so_o be_v it_o speak_v with_o reverence_n to_o these_o rare_a servant_n of_o christ_n howbeit_o 18.17_o calâiâ_n and_o beza_n touch_v mat._n 18.17_o this_o nevertheless_o they_o hold_v from_o this_o place_n of_o matthew_n that_o the_o people_n have_v right_a so_o far_o that_o nothing_o in_o church_n government_n be_v obtrude_v on_o they_o by_o any_o ecclesiastical_a monarchy_n or_o oligarchie_n against_o their_o will_n now_o this_o be_v the_o truth_n and_o we_o willing_o agree_v unto_o it_o yield_v the_o sway_n of_o all_o government_n to_o the_o pastor_n with_o his_o assistant_n in_o ordinary_a case_n yet_o reserve_v still_o a_o power_n in_o the_o people_n to_o consent_v and_o when_o a_o church_n be_v destitute_a of_o guide_n as_o it_o have_v fall_v out_o &_o may_v again_o fall_v out_o on_o occasion_n than_o the_o people_n themselves_o have_v full_a power_n to_o accomplish_v any_o ecclesiastical_a action_n in_o the_o best_a order_n they_o can_v &_o particular_o church_n censure_n even_o by_o virtue_n of_o this_o text_n so_o that_o then_o the_o jewish_a church-governement_n can_v not_o be_v here_o allude_v unto_o much_o less_o require_v to_o be_v keep_v and_o practise_v by_o christian_n concern_v which_o together_o with_o all_o other_o jewish_a ordinance_n the_o apostle_n teach_v and_o confirm_v unto_o we_o that_o all_o 3.17_o all_o 2._o cor._n 3.17_o those_o old_a thing_n be_v pass_v away_o &_o that_o all_o thing_n of_o such_o nature_n under_o the_o gospel_n be_v make_v new_a and_o that_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v 12.27_o be_v hebr._n 12.27_o shake_v and_o change_v and_o remain_v not_o now_o unto_o us._n wherefore_o fowerthly_a they_o who_o understand_v these_o foresay_a word_n tell_v the_o church_n math._n 18.17_o to_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o whole_a christian_a people_n assemble_v in_o a_o ordinary_a assembly_n do_v as_o our_o attestator_n do_v viz._n that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v tell_v and_o that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v hear_v always_o in_o the_o best_a and_o most_o christian_a order_n that_o can_v be_v which_o i_o grant_v do_v and_o must_v in_o circumstance_n sometime_o differ_v they_o i_o say_v do_v true_o and_o right_o understand_v this_o place_n according_a to_o the_o intent_n of_o christ_n of_o which_o d._n bilson_n himself_o once_o teach_v sound_o say_v 70._o say_v against_o the_o seminaâ_n lib._n 3._o pa._n 70._o in_o math._n 18.17_o the_o whole_a multitude_n of_o the_o faithful_a where_o he_o and_o they_o the_o offender_n and_o the_o offend_a live_v be_v signify_v and_o 170._o and_o lib._n 2._o pag_n 170._o in_o act._n 20.28_o the_o church_n be_v take_v for_o the_o people_n yea_o the_o church_n be_v never_o take_v in_o the_o new_a or_o old_a testament_n for_o the_o priest_n alone_o but_o general_o for_o the_o whole_a congregation_n of_o the_o faithful_a let_v i_o ask_v a_o question_n be_v d._n bilson_n a_o brownist_n be_v he_o a_o anabaptist_n when_o he_o write_v thus_o why_o then_o do_v mai._n downame_n call_v we_o these_o odious_a name_n only_o for_o the_o same_o judgement_n or_o be_v he_o offend_v at_o we_o because_o we_o can_v not_o change_v &_o turn_v our_o profession_n to_o &_o fro_o as_o they_o do_v for_o advantage_n some_o will_v say_v if_o this_o sense_n of_o these_o word_n be_v true_a object_n then_o perpetual_o and_o necessary_o all_o scandal_n etc._n etc._n whatsoever_o must_v be_v try_v in_o the_o presence_n &_o under_o the_o judgement_n and_o sentence_n of_o the_o whole_a multitude_n as_o they_o of_o the_o separation_n do_v hold_v which_o also_o it_o seem_v be_v cyprian_n usual_a practice_n of_o old_a answ_n answ_n i_o answer_v this_o consequence_n be_v far_o from_o truth_n for_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n in_o matthew_n 18.17_o certain_o be_v thus_o &_o no_o otherwise_o to_o be_v take_v viz._n plain_o and_o literal_o for_o the_o whole_a congregation_n see_v there_o be_v 1.226_o be_v def._n 1.226_o no_o cause_n nor_o reason_n to_o the_o contrary_a as_o elsewhere_o be_v observe_v but_o yet_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o that_o manner_n of_o hear_v &_o sentence_v of_o cause_n must_v be_v in_o every_o church_n perpetual_o and_o necessary_o etc._n before_o pag._n 108._o etc._n etc._n i_o grant_v it_o may_v be_v so_o in_o some_o church_n at_o some_o time_n and_o so_o cyprian_n practice_n be_v &_o now_o it_o may_v be_v again_o in_o some_o estate_n of_o a_o church_n good_a and_o commendable_a but_o to_o hold_v those_o popular_a circumstance_n in_o every_o church_n be_v church_n separation_n itself_o be_v no_o such_o error_n as_o this_o be_v perpetual_a and_o necessary_a absolute_o as_o the_o separation_n do_v it_o be_v neithtr_n cyprian_n meaning_n nor_o chrsste_n nor_o any_o well_o advise_v christian_n and_o yet_o again_o no_o man_n may_v take_v from_o the_o people_n absolute_o all_o manner_n of_o free_a consent_n as_o the_o l._n bishop_n do_v this_o be_v a_o substantial_a breach_n on_o the_o other_o hand_n incidit_fw-la in_o scyllam_fw-la qui_fw-la vult_fw-la vitare_fw-la charyâdin_n extremity_n on_o both_o side_n be_v to_o be_v avoid_v as_o this_o so_o other_o text_n likewise_o do._n bilson_n will_v wrest_v from_o we_o in_o his_o 95._o his_o perp_n goââ_n pag._n 95._o 8._o chap._n touch_v jurisdiction_n first_o act._n 15.22.23.25.28_o where_o manifest_o the_o apostle_n join_v the_o people_n with_o themselves_o in_o determine_v a_o controversy_n it_o seem_v good_a to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o to_o we_o to_o lay_v no_o more_o burden_n on_o you_o now_o this_o he_o grant_v express_o say_v 9â_n say_v pag._n 9â_n the_o matter_n be_v handle_v in_o the_o audience_n and_o presence_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o with_o a_o general_a consent_n letter_n be_v write_v in_o the_o name_n of_o all_o to_o which_o 11â_n which_o horn_n against_o fecknam_n pa._n 11â_n b._n horn_n before_o he_o agree_v also_o nay_o d._n bilson_n go_v further_a say_v 373._o say_v perp._n gov_n pag._n 373._o this_o course_n the_o apostle_n teach_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n to_o follow_v by_o their_o example_n which_o be_v all_o that_o we_o desire_v yet_o he_o labour_v to_o frustrate_v this_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o to_o make_v it_o of_o no_o use_n to_o us._n to_o which_o intent_n he_o have_v 4._o exception_n 1._o â7_n 1._o pag._n â7_n paul_n stand_v not_o in_o doubt_n of_o his_o preach_n neither_o need_v he_o the_o consent_n of_o apostle_n or_o elder_n to_o his_o doctrine_n i_o answer_v he_o doubt_v not_o of_o his_o doctrine_n nor_o submit_v it_o to_o any_o to_o be_v censure_v yet_o he_o need_v the_o consent_n of_o other_o apostle_n and_o of_o the_o church_n at_o jerusalem_n for_o more_o countenance_n to_o his_o teach_n and_o that_o be_v all_o paul_n purpose_n here_o 2._o 97._o 2._o pag._n 97._o the_o apostle_n want_v neither_o authority_n nor_o sufficiency_n to_o determine_v the_o matter_n but_o they_o do_v in_o this_o case_n we_o must_v know_v therefore_o there_o be_v a_o twofold_a dertermine_n and_o decide_v of_o question_n one_o be_v particular_a and_o personal_a which_o every_o true_a pastor_n may_v perform_v in_o his_o ordinary_a teach_n much_o more_o the_o apostle_n single_o might_n and_o so_o paul_n be_v sufficient_a and_o do_v himself_o resolve_v many_o doubt_n to_o the_o roman_n to_o the_o corinthian_n to_o other_o without_o a_o council_n another_o determine_v and_o decide_v of_o question_n be_v cumulative_a as_o i_o may_v call_v it_o when_o it_o be_v do_v with_o more_o countenance_n and_o credit_n the_o former_a may_v
otherwise_o here_o as_o indeed_o it_o be_v beside_o i_o remember_v not_o above_o ofteâ_n above_o 1_o cor._n 12.28_o which_o be_v not_o ofteâ_n one_o such_o place_n as_o he_o signifi_v and_o yet_o there_o it_o be_v in_o the_o plural_a number_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d power_n not_o in_o the_o singular_a between_o which_o place_n and_o we_o in_o hand_n there_o be_v apparent_o very_o great_a difference_n again_o he_o say_v to_o deliver_v unto_o satan_n be_v more_o than_o to_o excommunicate_v it_o be_v not_o yea_o &_o himself_o hold_v so_o likewise_o 58._o likewise_o against_o the_o semina_fw-la part_n 3._o pag._n 58._o heretofore_o he_o which_o be_v excommunicate_a and_o as_o a_o heathen_a be_v out_o of_o christ_n kingdom_n and_o be_v out_o of_o christ_n kingdom_n he_o be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n therefore_o it_o be_v all_o one_o neither_o be_v it_o true_a that_o many_o be_v seclude_v from_o the_o company_n of_o the_o godly_a for_o a_o time_n that_o be_v not_o yield_v to_o satan_n or_o that_o many_o be_v deliver_v to_o satan_n by_o the_o church_n assemble_v together_o as_o this_o be_v do_v here_o without_o excommunication_n or_o that_o ananias_n and_o elymas_n be_v deliver_v to_o satan_n which_o himself_o 54._o himself_o against_o the_o seminar_n part_n 3._o pag._n 53_o 54._o be_o contradict_v he_o touch_v here_o many_o thing_n beside_o to_o no_o purpose_n viz._n this_o sinner_n be_v deliver_v to_o satan_n that_o it_o may_v bring_v he_o to_o repentance_n why_o and_o that_o be_v the_o proper_a end_n of_o excommunication_n again_o the_o end_n of_o this_o action_n be_v the_o destruction_n of_o the_o flesh_n which_o in_o excommunication_n have_v no_o sense_n except_o it_o be_v metaphorical_a it_o be_v not_o so_o this_o destruction_n of_o the_o flesh_n viz._n the_o lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n have_v great_a sense_n in_o excommunication_n and_o it_o seem_v rather_o a_o metonymicall_a phrase_n than_o a_o metaphorical_a as_o he_o name_v it_o he_o add_v excommunication_n indanger_v the_o spirit_n and_o touch_v not_o the_o flesh_n nay_o it_o be_v intend_v to_o save_v the_o spirit_n that_o be_v the_o regenerate_v man_n by_o repentance_n so_o the_o spirit_n be_v 5.5_o be_v 1._o cor._n 5.5_o here_o understand_v also_o excommunication_n touch_v the_o flesh_n for_o it_o serve_v to_o humble_a and_o mortify_v the_o lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n or_o the_o unregenerat_a man_n he_o say_v this_o be_v doom_n not_o by_o excommunication_n but_o by_o repentance_n strange_o speak_v i_o say_v it_o be_v do_v by_o both_o for_o these_o be_v subordinat_a not_o opposite_a as_o well_o he_o may_v say_v the_o lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v not_o destroy_v by_o god_n word_n but_o by_o repentance_n the_o truth_n of_o both_o be_v alike_o here_o also_o the_o one_o of_o itself_o be_v no_o consequent_a to_o the_o other_o for_o many_o be_v preach_v unto_o that_o never_o repent_v aswella_n excommunicate_v that_o never_o repent_v and_o yet_o who_o know_v not_o that_o god_n have_v ordain_v that_o repentance_n shall_v follow_v from_o both_o as_o it_o do_v indeed_o in_o many_o who_o will_v not_o wonder_v to_o see_v such_o dally_a in_o such_o a_o man_n in_o a_o cause_n so_o serious_a the_o like_a be_v also_o where_o he_o say_v excommunication_n be_v before_o and_o after_o in_o other_o word_n express_v yea_o and_o this_o be_v not_o against_o our_o sense_n of_o deliver_v to_o satan_n but_o much_o for_o it_o see_v all_o the_o circunstance_n &_o coherence_n of_o the_o text_n here_o both_o before_o and_o after_o speak_v only_o of_o excommunication_n and_o the_o phrase_n itself_o to_o deliver_v to_o satan_n be_v so_o fit_a and_o agreeable_a to_o express_v the_o same_o even_o according_a to_o christ_n description_n of_o it_o 18.17_o it_o mat._n 18.17_o let_v he_o be_v to_o thou_o as_o a_o heathen_a that_o be_v without_o the_o church_n christ_n kingdom_n under_o the_o power_n and_o rule_v of_o satan_n in_o like_a state_n and_o condition_n as_o the_o very_a infidel_n and_o unbeliever_n be_v this_o therefore_o be_v much_o for_o us._n but_o say_v he_o 100_o he_o pag._n 100_o this_o be_v no_o such_o new_a find_v or_o vain_a exposition_n chrysostome_n jerome_n ambrose_n theodoret_n occumenius_n theophilact_n etc._n etc._n embrace_v it_o wonderful_a this_o opinion_n and_o these_o very_a testimony_n he_o cite_v 54.56_o cite_v against_o the_o semin_fw-fr part_n 3._o pag_n 54.56_o heretofore_o as_o be_v the_o papist_n then_o he_o â5_n he_o pag_n â5_n resist_v &_o refute_v the_o samâ_n at_o large_a by_o 5._o by_o ambr._n in_o 1_o cor._n 5._o ambrose_n 49._o ambrose_n august_n in_o queât_n vet_z &_o nov_n test_n 49._o austin_n and_o râpar_fw-la and_o jerom_n ad_fw-la hiliod_n &_o ad_fw-la râpar_fw-la jerome_n insinuate_v that_o this_o 5._o this_o jerom._n in_o 1._o cor._n 5._o jerome_n which_o now_o he_o ground_v on_o &_o which_o then_o the_o papist_n allege_v be_v a_o counterfeit_a or_o suspect_v at_o least_o be_v this_o fidelity_n be_v this_o upright_o deal_n for_o advantage_n to_o join_v with_o the_o antichristian_a enemy_n yea_o against_o himself_o to_o allow_v of_o the_o self_n same_o witness_n which_o himself_o then_o brand_v with_o infamy_n oppose_v chrysostome_n to_o chrysostome_n jerome_n to_o jerome_n ambrose_n there_o to_o ambrose_n here_o and_o which_o pass_v interpret_n the_o same_o word_n of_o theodoret_n contrary_a here_o to_o that_o he_o do_v 59_o do_v pag._n 59_o there_o what_o mutability_n be_v this_o but_o to_o the_o point_n i_o answer_v this_o his_o sense_n out_o of_o chrysostome_n etc._n etc._n here_o can_v not_o be_v true_a viz._n that_o this_o deliver_n to_o satan_n be_v to_o be_v torment_v corporal_o by_o satan_n for_o then_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o corinth_n have_v this_o miraculous_a power_n give_v they_o at_o paul_n appointement_n they_o be_v then_o the_o visible_a instrumental_a doer_n of_o this_o apostolic_a miracle_n in_o paul_n behalf_n also_o than_o the_o apostle_n have_v power_n and_o do_v use_v to_o strike_v man_n who_o they_o never_o see_v nor_o speak_v with_o be_v far_o from_o they_o in_o other_o country_n all_o which_o how_o absurd_a they_o be_v who_o see_v not_o again_o this_o sinner_n 2._o sinner_n 2._o cor._n 2._o restore_v be_v without_o miracle_n his_o cast_v out_o therefore_o be_v so_o likewise_o neither_o can_v it_o be_v think_v that_o 8.20_o that_o 1._o tim._n 8.20_o paul_n corporal_o torment_v 103._o torment_v pag._n 103._o hymenaus_n and_o alexander_n he_o only_o excommunicate_v they_o and_o yet_o not_o he_o alone_o but_o with_o the_o church_n concurrence_n and_o consent_n whereof_o they_o be_v for_o so_o be_v his_o practice_n in_o other_o action_n of_o church-governement_n as_o we_o see_v in_o 226._o in_o pag._n 226._o another_o place_n he_o read_v 2._o thess_n 3.14_o not_o as_o it_o shall_v be_v he_o read_v if_o any_o obey_v not_o our_o say_n note_v he_o by_o a_o letter_n it_o shall_v be_v 1â_n be_v bez._n in_o thes_n 3_o 1â_n if_o any_o obey_v not_o our_o say_n in_o the_o epistle_n note_v he_o that_o be_v excommunicate_v he_o &_o withdraw_v yourselves_o from_o he_o as_o it_o be_v in_o vers_n 6._o this_o he_o require_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o the_o thessalonian_o to_o do_v not_o to_o signify_v such_o a_o one_o to_o paul_n that_o he_o may_v do_v it_o the_o word_n be_v not_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d signify_v to_o i_o but_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d set_v a_o mark_n on_o he_o viz._n of_o excommunication_n for_o it_o can_v bear_v no_o other_o sense_n now_o touch_v call_v to_o the_o ministry_n 66._o ministry_n chap._n 7._o pag._n 66._o he_o labour_v to_o take_v from_o we_o quite_o first_o act._n 1._o about_o mathias_n election_n to_o be_v a_o apostle_n it_o be_v true_a as_o he_o say_v a_o apostle_n may_v not_o be_v choose_v by_o man_n yet_o here_o god_n will_n be_v that_o man_n shall_v and_o they_o do_v go_v about_o this_o election_n and_o proceed_v in_o it_o and_o manage_v the_o same_o so_o far_o as_o possible_o man_n may_v that_o be_v man_n perform_v many_o weighty_a and_o remarkable_a part_n therein_o not_o that_o there_o be_v any_o simple_a necessity_n for_o man_n to_o concur_v herein_o but_o only_o it_o please_v god_n it_o shall_v be_v so_o for_o a_o example_n to_o posterity_n to_o follow_v &_o to_o practice_v all_o that_o be_v ordinary_a in_o the_o same_o d._n bilson_n except_v it_o be_v not_o express_v that_o the_o church_n intermedle_v in_o the_o choice_n of_o mathias_n which_o be_v not_o true_a for_o first_o all_o this_o action_n be_v perform_v 23._o perform_v act._n 1.15_o vers_fw-la 23._o in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o church_n second_o 24._o second_o vers_fw-la 24._o they_o appoint_v two_o and_o 26._o and_o vers_fw-la 26._o they_o pray_v and_o they_o cast_v lot_n and_o he_o be_v account_v by_o common_a consent_n as_o it_o
be_v ãâã_d be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d by_o voice_n with_o the_o eleven_o he_o say_v prayer_n and_o lot_n be_v perform_v by_o the_o apostle_n as_o the_o principal_a director_n of_o that_o action_n therefore_o they_o also_o present_v the_o two_o indeed_o they_o that_o do_v the_o one_o part_n do_v the_o other_o the_o coherence_n of_o the_o text_n show_v it_o well_o but_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o as_o he_o say_v for_o these_o thing_n be_v perform_v only_o by_o peter_n as_o the_o principal_a director_n of_o the_o whole_a action_n at_o this_o time_n the_o apostle_n be_v not_o where_o mention_v in_o this_o business_n there_o be_v not_o one_o tittle_n of_o they_o to_o the_o point_n all_o those_o particular_a action_n in_o this_o election_n before_o name_v before_o plural_o name_v name_v be_v and_o must_v be_v refer_v to_o all_o the_o disciple_n who_o be_v here_o express_o mention_v &_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o who_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v i_o say_v peter_n alone_o do_v they_o as_o the_o moderator_n and_o director_n but_o joint_o with_o he_o all_o the_o disciple_n concur_v and_o consent_v present_v these_o two_o pray_v say_v cast_v lot_n peter_n all_o the_o church_n join_v with_o peter_n and_o account_v the_o elect_v with_o the_o eleven_o thus_o this_o be_v decide_v in_o the_o text_n the_o force_n and_o coharence_n of_o the_o word_n convince_v it_o though_o the_o doct._n deny_v it_o he_o show_v act._n show_v hom._n 3._o iâ_n act._n chrysostome_n say_v 67._o say_v pag._n 67._o peter_n may_v most_o lawful_o have_v choose_v mathias_n i_o understand_v chrysostom_n meaning_n to_o be_v that_o he_o may_v lawful_o have_v nominate_v and_o propound_v one_o or_o mo_z and_o this_o be_v true_a otherwise_o chrysostom_n speech_n be_v amiss_o &_o the_o d._n know_v it_o to_o be_v untrue_a acknowledge_v that_o a_o apostle_n can_v not_o be_v choose_v by_o man_n as_o before_o i_o note_v this_o therefore_o he_o can_v not_o take_v hold_n of_o the_o 1.7_o the_o bellarm._n de_fw-fr cler._n 1.7_o jesuit_n catch_v at_o it_o likewise_o as_o he_o do_v but_o none_o of_o they_o all_o get_v by_o it_o why_o do_v he_o not_o rest_v on_o chrysostom_n other_o word_n here_o that_o peter_n himself_o do_v not_o appoint_v those_o two_o but_o all_o do_v it_o and_o he_o do_v all_o by_o the_o common_a sentence_n of_o the_o disciple_n nothing_o by_o his_o own_o authority_n nothing_o by_o command_n this_o be_v true_a this_o be_v plain_a this_o be_v for_o imitation_n for_o ever_o yet_o this_o he_o as_o also_o the_o jesuit_n reject_v though_o 1.4_o though_o cypr._n epist_n 1.4_o cyprian_a also_o say_v as_o much_o and_o our_o 153_o our_o rain_n confer_v pa._n 153_o late_a writer_n may_v calvin_n just_o tax_v the_o papist_n perverse_n boast_v of_o the_o father_n and_o we_o be_v to_o tax_v our_o present_a adversary_n likewise_o see_v they_o seem_v to_o draw_v against_o we_o all_o in_o one_o line_n say_v he_o of_o they_o to_o the_o french_a king_n ists_fw-ge pij_fw-la scilicet_fw-la filii_fw-la quâ_fw-la sunt_fw-la &_o ingenij_fw-la &_o iudicij_fw-la &_o animi_fw-la dexteritate_fw-la patrum_fw-la tantum_fw-la lapsus_fw-la &_o errores_fw-la adorant_fw-la gall._n calvin_n ad_fw-la reg._n gall._n quae_fw-la benedicta_fw-la sunt_fw-la vel_fw-la non_fw-la observant_a vel_fw-la dissimulant_fw-la vel_fw-la corrumpunt_fw-la ut_fw-la dicas_fw-la prorsùs_fw-la illis_fw-la cura_fw-la fuisse_fw-la in_o auro_fw-la legere_fw-la stercora_fw-la such_o good_a child_n they_o be_v to_o these_o father_n that_o only_o their_o fault_n and_o error_n they_o adore_v and_o it_o be_v all_o their_o care_n among_o their_o gold_n to_o gather_v dirt_n next_o act._n 6.5_o the_o multitude_n choose_v 7._o deacon_n first_o 68_o first_o pââpet_n gov_fw-mi pag._n 67._o 68_o he_o grant_v this_o then_o he_o will_v make_v it_o void_a for_o any_o use_n with_o we_o as_o bellarmine_n do_v likewise_o say_v he_o that_o the_o people_n shall_v very_o well_o like_a and_o full_o trust_v such_o as_o shall_v be_v steward_n of_o their_o good_n have_v evident_a reason_n and_o i_o pray_v be_v there_o not_o more_o reason_n that_o they_o shall_v very_o well_o like_a &_o full_o trust_v such_o as_o must_v be_v the_o guide_n of_o their_o soul_n those_o by_o who_o mean_n they_o shall_v go_v to_o heaven_n or_o to_o hell_n i_o trow_v there_o be_v much_o more_o reason_n for_o this_o neither_o be_v this_o 82._o this_o pag._n 82._o a_o matter_n exceed_v the_o reach_n of_o christian_a people_n viz._n to_o discern_v and_o try_v and_o like_o their_o 10.15_o their_o joh._n 10.3.4.5_o 1_o joh._n 4.1_o oct._n 17.11_o 1._o cor._n 10.15_o teacher_n against_o act._n 14.23_o he_o 70._o he_o pag._n 70._o object_v word_n for_o word_n out_o of_o bellarmine_n that_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d be_v not_o to_o be_v take_v here_o for_o the_o people_n voycegiving_a as_o the_o profane_a orator_n among_o the_o grecian_n apply_v it_o i_o answer_v it_o be_v necessary_a so_o to_o be_v take_v be_v not_o they_o the_o true_a author_n of_o the_o greek_a language_n do_v not_o all_o man_n try_v the_o true_a property_n of_o greek_a word_n and_o phrase_n by_o they_o nay_o but_o the_o church-writer_n understand_v it_o for_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n in_o ordination_n i_o answer_v they_o have_v change_v the_o native_a &_o right_a use_n of_o the_o word_n they_o keep_v not_o the_o original_a property_n of_o it_o as_o they_o do_v not_o in_o 109.127.218.211_o reas._o for_o refor_o pag._n 64_o 65_o &_o before_o pa._n 109.127.218.211_o many_o other_o word_n mo_z time_n change_v many_o word_n from_o their_o original_a verity_n wherefore_o the_o apostle_n doubtless_o speak_v and_o write_v greek_a not_o like_o the_o phrase_n which_o come_v up_o 300.4000_o year_n after_o they_o but_o as_o the_o authentic_a grecian_n before_o and_o in_o their_o time_n do_v speak_v thus_o than_o it_o be_v folly_n yea_o madness_n to_o interpret_v they_o by_o those_o so_o long_o after_o they_o again_o he_o say_v this_o word_n signifi_v never_o to_o take_v the_o consent_n of_o other_o which_o be_v not_o true_a as_o i_o have_v 47_o have_v reas_n for_o refor_o pag._n 47_o show_v out_o of_o demosthenes_n contra_fw-la timocrat_n where_o he_o say_v thus_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d which_o of_o the_o law_n the_o chief_a author_n shall_v appoint_v by_o the_o people_n voice-giving_a the_o same_o be_v ratify_v here_o the_o word_n plain_o signifi_v the_o guide_v take_v the_o consent_n of_o other_o further_o he_o object_v that_o this_o word_n sometime_o signifi_v 10.41_o signifi_v act._n 10.41_o general_o to_o appoint_v &_o no_o more_o i_o grant_v there_o be_v a_o synecdoche_n a_o synecdoche_n figurative_a and_o improper_a use_n of_o the_o word_n the_o necessity_n of_o the_o circumstance_n there_o make_v that_o it_o must_v be_v so_o but_o here_o in_o act._n 14.23_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n nor_o reason_n at_o all_o to_o take_v it_o improper_o or_o otherwise_o then_o as_o all_o authentic_a grecian_n do_v use_v it_o viz._n for_o appoint_v by_o the_o people_n voice_n or_o free_a consent_n as_o i_o have_v say_v these_o be_v d._n bilsons_n special_a objection_n against_o our_o text_n of_o scripture_n for_o the_o people_n consent_n in_o church_n government_n under_o the_o apostle_n bellarmine_n deal_v against_o one_o or_o two_o more_o he_o say_v 10._o joh._n 10._o we_o be_v command_v to_o hear_v christ_n voice_n and_o not_o a_o stranger_n and_o to_o try_v the_o spirit_n only_o by_o attend_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o other_o pastor_n hold_v their_o old_a custom_n and_o chief_o to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o rome_n where_o he_o presume_v that_o those_o other_o pastor_n can_v not_o err_v and_o chief_o they_o of_o rome_n but_o the_o apostle_n tell_v we_o that_o 3.4_o that_o rom._n 3.4_o every_o man_n be_v a_o liar_n that_o be_v subject_a to_o error_n wherefore_o the_o holy_a ghost_n bid_v the_o people_n to_o attend_v 8.20_o attend_v isa_n 8.20_o to_o the_o law_n and_o to_o the_o testimony_n in_o such_o case_n &_o 5.39_o &_o joh._n 5.39_o to_o search_v the_o seripture_n and_o show_v that_o in_o so_o do_v 1.19_o do_v 2._o pet._n 1.19_o we_o do_v well_o again_o the_o jesuit_n make_v a_o show_n of_o answer_v viz._n to_o 1._o pet._n 5.2_o that_o minister_n may_v not_o be_v lord_n over_o the_o church_n but_o he_o answer_v not_o only_o he_o say_v bishop_n be_v servant_n to_o the_o church_n as_o schoolmaster_n be_v to_o their_o scholar_n and_o magistrate_n to_o the_o people_n who_o yet_o do_v command_n and_o rule_v they_o sole_o which_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o text_n forbid_v minister_n to_o be_v lord_n over_o the_o 1.24_o the_o as_o also_o 2._o cor._n 1.24_o people_n he_o answer_v not_o that_o point_n last_o to_o this_o 1â_n this_o 1._o tim._n 3_o 1â_n the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n he_o say_v it_o be_v true_a
est_fw-la qui_fw-la ignoret_fw-la calvin_n say_v in_o this_o place_n mat._n 18.17_o 4.11.1_o 18.17_o calvin_n instit_fw-la 4.11.1_o ius_n judaici_n synedrij_fw-la transfertur_fw-la ad_fw-la christi_fw-la âegem_fw-la and_o 4.12.7_o and_o instit._fw-la 4.12.7_o illa_fw-la est_fw-la legitima_fw-la in_o excommuâcando_fw-la homine_fw-la progressio_fw-la si_fw-la non_fw-la soli_fw-la seniores_fw-la âorsum_fw-la id_fw-la faciant_fw-la sed_fw-la consciâ_fw-la &_o approbante_fw-la âcclesiâ_fw-la etc._n etc._n 4.1.15_o etc._n 4.1.15_o totius_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la hac_fw-la cognitio_fw-la est_fw-la clavium_fw-la potestatem_fw-la dominus_fw-la fidelium_fw-la soâetati_fw-la contulit_fw-la 4.1.22_o contulit_fw-la 4.1.22_o and_o he_o call_v excommunication_n 11.2_o excommunication_n 11.2_o fidelium_fw-la judicium_fw-la &_o the_o excommunicate_a say_v he_o be_v 12.4_o be_v ibidem_fw-la &_o 12.4_o fidelium_fw-la âuffragijs_fw-la damnatus_fw-la thus_o must_v these_o &_o âther_o worthy_a man_n of_o god_n be_v understand_v and_o not_o to_o contradict_v themselves_o beza_n also_o of_o the_o call_v of_o minister_n âaith_o 1â_n âaith_o bez._n confess_v 7_o 1â_n per_fw-la quod_fw-la ostium_fw-la sunt_fw-la ingress_n quis_fw-la âos_v vocavit_fw-la etc._n etc._n vbi_fw-la electio_fw-la presbyterij_fw-la vbi_fw-la âopuli_fw-la suffragia_fw-la by_o what_o door_n enter_v they_o who_o call_v they_o where_o be_v the_o election_n of_o âhe_n elder_n where_o be_v the_o people_n voice-giving_a by_o this_o show_v that_o he_o hold_v the_o people_n free_a consent_n to_o be_v necessary_a also_o in_o the_o make_n of_o minister_n finis_fw-la math._n 6.10_o thy_o will_v be_v doâ_n a_o table_n of_o the_o chief_a matter_n contain_v in_o this_o treatise_n a._n how_o a_o true_a church_n may_v be_v accidental_o pag._n 306._o the_o angel_n of_o ephesus_n a_o precedent_n during_o life_n pag._n 237._o the_o name_n angel_n or_o apostle_n give_v in_o scripture_n to_o minister_n also_o dominus_fw-la in_o latin_a etc._n etc._n prove_v not_o that_o they_o may_v be_v call_v lord_n iâ_n english_a pag._n 121._o 123._o etc._n etc._n all_o apostolic_a ordinance_n be_v divine_a &_o unchangeable_a by_o man_n pa._n 139._o 142._o the_o practice_n of_o antiquity_n for_o many_o age_n with_o us._n pag._n 53._o etc._n etc._n asia_n proper_o take_v how_o large_a pag._n 206._o comfortable_a assurance_n where_o pag._n 77._o 154._o 155._o 159._o our_o attestator_n be_v no_o browniste_n anabaptist_n schismatik_n fantastical_a fanatical_a doater_n pag._n 249._o 279._o 306._o b._n belgike_a liturgy_n and_o synod_n with_o us._n pa._n 50._o beza_n consent_v with_o we_o full_o in_o effect_n pag._n 22._o etc._n etc._n 49._o 50._o 322._o beza_n abuse_v pag._n 13._o 22._o 270._o etc._n etc._n 322._o beza_n fail_v pa._n 237._o d._n billons_n chief_a matter_n in_o his_o perp._n gov_n answer_v pag._n 99_o 107._o 108._o 110._o 112._o 116._o 120._o 121._o 132._o 143._o etc._n etc._n 146._o 148._o 239._o etc._n etc._n 250._o 261._o 276._o etc._n etc._n d._n bilsons_n contradistion_n pa._n 70._o 71._o 73._o 107._o 144._o 146._o 150._o 225._o 281._o 283._o 286._o 288._o 289._o 290._o 293._o 302._o 303._o 305._o we_o deny_v not_o bishop_n simple_o pag._n 14._o 264._o seven_o divers_a sort_n of_o bishop_n pa._n 274._o bishop_n next_o after_o the_o apostle_n differ_v from_o we_o in_o substance_n of_o their_o call_v p._n 98._o 99_o 128._o a_o bishop_n to_o a_o parish_n pag._n 32._o 104._o 213._o etc._n etc._n bohemian_a confession_n for_o us._n pag._n 48._o bucer_n for_o us._n pag._n 33._o bullinger_n for_o us._n pag._n 37._o c._n calvin_n full_o with_o us._n p._n 25._o etc._n etc._n 149._o 193._o 214._o 269._o 323._o calvin_n much_o abuse_v p._n 13._o 267._o etc._n etc._n 322._o 323._o call_v of_o minister_n must_v be_v by_o the_o congregation_n or_o else_o we_o shall_v go_v to_o wrack_n pag._n 159._o 160._o 161._o 167._o call_v of_o minister_n essential_o by_o the_o congregation_n pag._n 246._o 247._o 78._o 79._o 80._o 81._o 164._o 166._o 168._o the_o truth_n be_v not_o so_o fruitful_o defend_v where_o christ_n visible_a church_n &_o call_v to_o the_o ministry_n be_v not_o well_o clear_v pa._n 158._o 167._o circumstance_n in_o church_n government_n changeable_a by_o man_n pag._n 280._o 247._o chemnicius_n for_o us._n pag._n 47._o 178._o the_o church-controversie_n in_o england_n for_o uâ_n trifle_n pa._n 193._o 195._o 269._o 320._o a_o visible_a church_n what_o see_v ecclesia_fw-la the_o dignity_n and_o power_n of_o each_o visible_a church_n pag_n 164._o 165._o christ_n visible_a church_n divine_a constitution_n pa._n 74._o 75._o 142._o etc._n etc._n 147._o 102._o 104._o 154._o christ_n visible_a church_n form_n unchangeable_a by_o man_n pag._n 134._o 135._o 139._o 142._o 147._o 149._o 150._o 153._o 281._o a_o true_a visible_a church_n essential_o sometime_o with_o out_o guide_n pag._n 164._o 165._o 278._o 298._o 300._o why_o some_o strive_v to_o change_v the_o proper_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n church_n ecclesia_fw-la in_fw-la mat._n 18.17_o pa._n 216._o protestant_n may_v justify_v their_o church_n &_o call_v to_o the_o ministry_n sound_o if_o they_o will_n pag._n 262._o 264._o 266._o 267._o what_o god_n have_v give_v to_o the_o congregation_n man_n can_v not_o take_v away_o pag._n 76._o 77._o the_o offer_n of_o conference_n not_o without_o necessary_a cause_n and_o reason_n pag._n 196._o 250._o the_o true_a cause_n and_o reason_n why_o we_o conform_v not_o pag._n 137._o two_o main_a point_n of_o our_o whole_a controversy_n pag._n 10._o 303._o but_o the_o chief_a of_o all_o be_v about_o the_o people_n free_a consent_n in_o church_n govern_v pag._n 10._o 16._o 17._o cornelius_n b._n of_o rome_n proove_v no_o diocesan_n church_n nor_o bishop_n pag._n 233._o 234._o cyprian_n teach_v the_o people_n consent_n to_o be_v juris_fw-la divini_fw-la pag._n 57_o 59_o d._n danaeus_n strong_o with_o us._n pag._n 41._o 42._o a_o definition_n of_o christ_n true_a visible_a church_n pag._n 318._o a_o definition_n of_o a_o diocesan_n church_n pag._n 200._o a_o diocesan_n church_n proper_a &_o improper_a p._n 88_o one_o kind_n of_o improper_a diocesan_n church_n be_v apostolical_a pag._n 89._o the_o best_a sort_n of_o diocesan_n bishop_n not_o apostolic_a pa._n 15._o 89._o 90._o yet_o not_o simple_o evil_a pag._n 16._o 89_o 97._o nor_o yet_o expedient_a now_o ibid._n all_o our_o question_n be_v against_o the_o proper_a diocesan_n church_n pag._n 15._o 88_o 97._o 98._o 131._o 225._o substantial_a difference_n between_o a_o church_n and_o ministry_n of_o one_o congregation_n and_o of_o a_o diocese_n pag._n 208._o 128._o 129._o a_o diocesan_n church_n but_o in_o a_o shadow_n till_o constantine_n time_n p._n 126._o 226._o etc._n etc._n 231._o etc._n etc._n 253_o no_o proper_a diocesan_n church_n can_v be_v where_o the_o people_n free_o consent_v pag._n 84._o 85._o etc._n etc._n 88_o apropre_fw-fr diocesan_n church_n be_v new_a pag._n 226._o a_o proper_a diocesan_n church_n induce_v the_o pope_n pag._n 157._o 179._o the_o papist_n shame_n diocesan_n about_o their_o church_n constitution_n and_o call_n to_o the_o ministry_n pag._n 161._o 167._o 169._o 171._o 172._o 183._o 150._o diocesan_n bb._n be_v plurality_n man_n and_o nonresident_n pag._n 131._o 185._o diocesan_n bd._n metropolitan_n in_o office_n archbishop_n patriarch_n in_o substance_n be_v all_o one_o pag._n 273._o yea_o a_o universal_a bishop_n also_o pag._n 181._o 184._o 186._o 189._o 191._o in_o a_o proper_a diocesan_n church_n a_o true_a church_n may_v be_v but_o accidental_o pag._n 306._o 87._o dionysius_n the_o first_o titular_a diocesan_n bishop_n in_o the_o west_n pag._n 92._o 93._o diplodophilus_n one_o hold_v two_o way_n to_o heaven_n pag._n 104._o 125._o 151._o 153._o d._n dove_n turn_v eusebius_n false_o for_o his_o advantage_n 3_o time_n pag._n 226._o 227._o 90._o d._n downame_n defence_n answer_v pa._n 11._o etc._n etc._n 98._o 199._o etc._n etc._n 221._o etc._n etc._n 245._o etc._n etc._n d._n downame_n make_v apostle_n and_o evangelistes_n inferior_a in_o jurisdiction_n to_o bishop_n pag._n 241._o 260._o 251._o d._n downame_n levity_n pag._n 14._o 74._o 83._o 313_o d._n downame_n vain_a boast_n pag._n 217._o d._n down_o abuse_v scripture_n p._n 201._o 202._o 203._o e._n ecclesia_fw-la a_o church_n visible_a be_v only_o one_o ordinary_a congregation_n pa._n 102._o 103._o 104._o 108._o 110._o 201_o 202._o 203._o 205._o 209._o 213._o 214._o 322._o 323._o the_o question_n of_o elder_n or_o presbyter_n whole_o impertinent_a pag._n 11._o 12._o 62._o our_o adversary_n still_o equivocat_n or_o contradict_v themselves_o pag._n 14._o 15._o 98._o 99_o their_o equivocation_n pag._n 120._o 121._o 148._o 204._o 209._o 240._o evaristus_n title_n be_v but_o precinct_n or_o quarter_n in_o one_o congregation_n not_o parish_n pa._n 93._o eusebius_n of_o no_o perfect_a credtt_n 91._o 92._o 229._o and_o yet_o in_o many_o thing_n for_o us._n f._n fabulous_a and_o bastard_n writing_n cite_v by_o doct._n downame_n pag._n 257._o raw_n and_o undigested_a fancy_n pag._n 147._o father_n after_o 300._o year_n of_o christ_n no_o fit_a judge_n of_o
shall_v by_o a_o congregation_n signify_v either_o universal_a or_o provincial_n or_o diocesan_n church_n be_v a_o most_o false_a &_o unlikely_a conceit_n can_v any_o of_o these_o be_v one_o visible_a congregation_n in_o the_o singular_a number_n he_o allege_v as_o he_o think_v text_n for_o his_o pupose_v matt._n 16._o ephe._n 1._o and_o 5._o which_o sure_o may_v well_o yea_o they_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o a_o visible_a congregation_n viz._n indefinite_o take_v see_v hereof_o the_o divine_a beginning_n and_o institution_n of_o christ_n visible_a church_n argum._n 26._o &_o 23._o of_o mai._n beza_n 4.166_o beza_n def._n 4.166_o he_o affirm_v that_o he_o wish_v with_o all_o his_o heart_n for_o the_o diocesan_n bishop_n government_n in_o geneva_n which_o be_v as_o true_a as_o that_o which_o the_o jesuit_n blaze_v abroad_o how_o beza_n before_o his_o death_n recant_v his_o religion_n beza_n live_v to_o convince_v the_o jesuit_n of_o untruth_n to_o their_o face_n if_o he_o be_v now_o alive_a he_o will_v do_v the_o like_a to_o this_o doct._n and_o those_o other_o of_o who_o he_o say_v he_o hear_v it_o the_o like_a audacity_n be_v in_o that_o his_o report_n that_o the_o most_o learned_a &_o judicious_a divine_n in_o france_n and_o geneva_n can_v be_v content_a that_o diocesan_n bb._n government_n be_v renew_v among_o they_o the_o most_o learned_a in_o france_n and_o geneva_n very_o as_o they_o be_v who_o renew_v it_o scotland_n of_o late_a most_o learned_a and_o most_o judicious_a be_v they_o laus_fw-la proprio_fw-la sordescit_fw-la in_o ore_fw-la and_o i_o fear_v rather_o that_o know_v parable_n to_o be_v herein_o verify_v when_o the_o tree_n will_v have_v a_o king_n the_o olive_n figtree_n and_o vine_n refuse_v the_o bramble_n take_v it_o on_o he_o and_o say_v to_o the_o tree_n 9.15_o tree_n judg._n 9.15_o come_v &_o put_v your_o trust_n under_o my_o shadow_n when_o all_o shift_n fail_v the_o adversary_n will_v calumniate_v we_o as_o not_o dutiful_a to_o the_o king_n and_o civil_a government_n which_o tho_o d._n downame_n say_v 1.45_o say_v def._n 1.45_o he_o will_v not_o dispute_v yet_o he_o malicious_o insinuate_v as_o touch_v dutiful_a affection_n to_o the_o king_n person_n none_o can_v say_v more_o if_o he_o listen_v then_o d._n downame_n himself_o in_o my_o particular_a yea_o what_o word_n i_o speak_v when_o he_o hold_v his_o peace_n to_o a_o noble_a lord_n of_o scotl._n 1601._o an._n 1601._o when_o neither_o of_o we_o dare_v be_v see_v nor_o hear_v abroad_o for_o fear_v of_o who_o very_o of_o those_o who_o be_v his_o best_a friend_n since_o if_o i_o be_v they_o so_o dutiful_o animate_v towards_o the_o k._n when_o we_o only_o hope_v for_o his_o majesty_n god_n forbid_v i_o shall_v be_v less_o now_o when_o we_o have_v he_o be_v so_o malign_v &_o traduce_v as_o i_o be_o i_o can_v not_o but_o speak_v of_o this_o touch_v our_o duty_n general_o to_o his_o majesty_n authority_n and_o place_n the_o evidence_n of_o reason_n &_o sense_n plead_v for_o us._n scapul_n tertull._n ad_fw-la scapul_n we_o acknowledge_v with_o tertullian_n that_o he_o be_v solo_n deo_fw-la minor_fw-la less_o than_o god_n only_o in_o church_n government_n we_o impeach_v not_o his_o soveraigtie_a neither_o in_o matter_n nor_o manner_n therefore_o no_o way_n at_o all_o the_o matter_n be_v only_o about_o ezcommunication_n and_o make_v of_o minister_n and_o such_o like_a thing_n of_o the_o essential_a form_n whereof_o christ_n only_o be_v institutor_n his_o ecclesiastical_a servante_n be_v the_o minister_n the_o king_n be_v neither_o author_n nor_o minister_n unto_o this_o i_o suppose_v all_o agree_v for_o the_o manner_n see_v we_o hold_v each_o whole_a church_n in_o the_o great_a extent_n can_v be_v no_o mo_z ordinary_a congregation_n than_o one_o how_o can_v these_o either_o by_o their_o come_n together_o or_o by_o their_o consent_n in_o any_o spiritual_a business_n only_o for_o themselves_o i_o say_v how_o can_v these_o impeach_v the_o king_n power_n one_o hair_n his_o supreme_a universal_a oversee_n and_o order_v they_o and_o all_o other_o yea_o he_o chastise_v they_o when_o they_o do_v any_o thing_n amiss_o how_o can_v it_o be_v let_v how_o can_v it_o be_v hinder_v by_o such_o a_o handful_n and_o because_o he_o must_v use_v substitute_n ruler_n in_o his_o general_a oversee_n the_o church_n of_o his_o dominion_n we_o from_o our_o heart_n do_v honour_n they_o also_o and_o submit_v to_o they_o as_o to_o god_n lieutenant_n in_o their_o several_a place_n only_o we_o testify_v that_o if_o the_o king_n power_n be_v commit_v to_o any_o ecclesiastical_a person_n especial_o civil_a coactive_a power_n it_o draw_v with_o it_o both_o a_o breach_n of_o christ_n ordinance_n who_o say_v to_o such_o minister_n 19.11_o minister_n luc._n 22.25_o math._n 20.25_o 2._o chro._n 19.11_o you_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o and_o also_o a_o torture_n to_o christian_a subject_n conscience_n wherefore_o we_o desire_v of_o god_n that_o the_o king_n will_v be_v please_v to_o appoint_v as_o ichosaphat_n do_v a_o zebadiah_n to_o be_v general_a governor_n under_o he_o in_o church_n cause_n so_o far_o as_o it_o pertain_v to_o the_o king_n to_o deal_v in_o they_o and_o as_o king_n henry_n 8._o a_o l._n cromwell_n his_o vicegerent_n in_o rebus_fw-la ecclesiasticis_fw-la and_o as_o his_o majesty_n himself_o do_v as_o i_o have_v hear_v in_o scotland_n before_o he_o come_v among_o us._n which_o may_v be_v far_o more_o easy_o perform_v with_o inferior_a subordinate_a officer_n under_o they_o also_o for_o this_o purpose_n in_o every_o place_n in_o a_o monarchy_n then_o in_o any_o popular_a or_o aristocratical_a common_a wealth_n how_o unity_n how_o and_o very_o this_o be_v it_o and_o not_o a_o diocesan_n bishop_n which_o will_v bring_v great_a unity_n and_o that_o according_a to_o god_n if_o d._n downame_n will_v urge_v which_o he_o grate_v upon_o in_o this_o say_v 1.45_o say_v def._n 1.45_o pag._n 45._o that_o the_o church_n independent_a authority_n stand_v not_o with_o the_o king_n supremacy_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a and_o that_o which_o else_o where_o we_o say_v viz._n nothing_o may_v be_v obtrude_v on_o the_o church_n against_o their_o will_n i_o answer_v indeed_o every_o church_n power_n be_v independent_a spiritual_o and_o immediate_a under_o christ_n our_o meaning_n therefore_o be_v that_o by_o ptetended_a spiritual_a authority_n 9_o chap._n 9_o nothing_o may_v be_v obtrude_v &_o impose_v on_o any_o true_a church_n against_o their_o will_n but_o we_o grant_v that_o civil_a magistrate_n may_v and_o sometime_o ought_v to_o impose_v good_a thing_n on_o a_o true_a church_n against_o their_o will_n if_o they_o stiff_o err_v as_o sometime_o they_o may_v and_o i_o think_v doct._n downame_n also_o shall_v be_v of_o this_o mind_n with_o us._n etc._n this_o be_v thus_o answer_v often_o before_o pag._n 115._o etc._n etc._n hitherto_o our_o answer_n to_o some_o of_o our_o adversary_n chief_a objection_n and_o evil_a word_n and_o so_o i_o draw_v to_o a_o end_n chap._n ix_o a_o short_a advertisement_n to_o the_o upright_o heart_a and_o christian_a reader_n touch_v this_o write_n &_o cause_n yet_o first_o i_o desire_v the_o christian_a reader_n to_o be_v advertise_v of_o a_o few_o thing_n pertain_v to_o this_o cause_n seven_o thing_n i_o entreat_v he_o to_o take_v notice_n of_o first_o how_o great_a a_o blame_n and_o shame_v it_o be_v to_o d._n downame_n a_o principal_a logician_n to_o treat_v so_o large_o as_o in_o his_o sermon_n &_o defence_n he_o have_v do_v concern_v the_o nature_n form_n and_o constitution_n of_o christ_n true_a visible_a church_n and_o yet_o in_o all_o this_o not_o once_o to_o define_v the_o same_o which_o defect_n of_o d._n bilson_n also_o be_v to_o be_v note_v in_o his_o perpetual_a government_n of_o the_o church_n sure_o this_o one_o matter_n viz._n a_o definition_n of_o christ_n true_a visible_a church_n under_o the_o gospel_n well_o perform_v will_v have_v save_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o pain_n and_o trouble_n &_o will_v have_v prevent_v much_o error_n and_o thus_o it_o be_v wise_o teach_v by_o cicero_n that_o 1._o that_o cicer._n offic._n 1._o all_o purpose_n reasonable_a ought_v to_o be_v begin_v with_o a_o definition_n of_o the_o matter_n in_o band_n for_o the_o avoid_n therefore_o of_o this_o imputation_n i_o have_v in_o church_n in_o the_o divine_a beginning_n &_o institution_n of_o christ_n visible_a church_n another_o treatise_n define_v the_o say_a visible_a church_n of_o christ_n which_o i_o do_v and_o rest_v not_o on_o some_o other_o who_o have_v define_v the_o church_n heertofor_o because_o i_o desire_v to_o distinguish_v clear_o between_o the_o jewish_a church_n and_o the_o christian_a which_o very_o differ_v not_o in_o accident_n alone_o but_o in_o kind_n of_o government_n and_o in_o essential_a constitution_n substantial_o the_o jewish_a &_o christian_a church_n